This is a modern-English version of Up from Slavery: An Autobiography, originally written by Washington, Booker T..
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
UP FROM SLAVERY:
AN AUTOBIOGRAPHY
By Booker T. Washington
This volume is dedicated to my Wife Margaret James Washington And to my Brother John H. Washington Whose patience, fidelity, and hard work have gone far to make the work at Tuskegee successful.
This volume is dedicated to my wife Margaret James Washington and to my brother John H. Washington whose patience, loyalty, and hard work have greatly contributed to the success of the work at Tuskegee.
CONTENTS
Preface
Introduction
UP FROM SLAVERY
Chapter I. A Slave Among Slaves
Chapter II. Boyhood Days
Chapter III. The Struggle For An Education
Chapter IV. Helping Others
Chapter V. The Reconstruction Period
Chapter VI. Black Race And Red Race
Chapter VII. Early Days At Tuskegee
Chapter VIII. Teaching School In A Stable And A Hen-House
Chapter IX. Anxious Days And Sleepless Nights
Chapter X. A Harder Task Than Making Bricks Without Straw
Chapter XI. Making Their Beds Before They Could Lie On Them
Chapter XII. Raising Money
Chapter XIII. Two Thousand Miles For A Five-Minute Speech
Chapter XIV. The Atlanta Exposition Address
Chapter XV. The Secret Of Success In Public Speaking
Chapter XVI. Europe
Chapter XVII. Last Words
CONTENTS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__ A Slave Among Slaves
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__ Boyhood Days
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__ The Struggle For An Education
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__ Helping Others
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__ The Reconstruction Period
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__ Black Race And Red Race
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__ Early Days At Tuskegee
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__ Teaching School In A Stable And A Hen-House
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__ Anxious Days And Sleepless Nights
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__ A Harder Task Than Making Bricks Without Straw
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__ Making Their Beds Before They Could Lie On Them
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__ Raising Money
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__ Two Thousand Miles For A Five-Minute Speech
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__ The Atlanta Exposition Address
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__ The Secret Of Success In Public Speaking
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__ Europe
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__ Last Words
Preface
This volume is the outgrowth of a series of articles, dealing with incidents in my life, which were published consecutively in the Outlook. While they were appearing in that magazine I was constantly surprised at the number of requests which came to me from all parts of the country, asking that the articles be permanently preserved in book form. I am most grateful to the Outlook for permission to gratify these requests.
This book comes from a series of articles about my life that were published in the Outlook. While they were running in that magazine, I was amazed by the number of requests from all over the country asking for the articles to be collected in a book. I'm very thankful to the Outlook for allowing me to fulfill these requests.
I have tried to tell a simple, straightforward story, with no attempt at embellishment. My regret is that what I have attempted to do has been done so imperfectly. The greater part of my time and strength is required for the executive work connected with the Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute, and in securing the money necessary for the support of the institution. Much of what I have said has been written on board trains, or at hotels or railroad stations while I have been waiting for trains, or during the moments that I could spare from my work while at Tuskegee. Without the painstaking and generous assistance of Mr. Max Bennett Thrasher I could not have succeeded in any satisfactory degree.
I've tried to tell a simple, straightforward story without any embellishments. I regret that my efforts haven't been perfect. Most of my time and energy go to the management work at the Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute and raising the funds needed to support the institution. A lot of what I've written was done on trains, in hotels, or at train stations while waiting for trains, or during the few moments I could spare from my work at Tuskegee. Without the careful and generous help of Mr. Max Bennett Thrasher, I wouldn't have been able to succeed to any acceptable degree.
Introduction
The details of Mr. Washington's early life, as frankly set down in "Up from Slavery," do not give quite a whole view of his education. He had the training that a coloured youth receives at Hampton, which, indeed, the autobiography does explain. But the reader does not get his intellectual pedigree, for Mr. Washington himself, perhaps, does not as clearly understand it as another man might. The truth is he had a training during the most impressionable period of his life that was very extraordinary, such a training as few men of his generation have had. To see its full meaning one must start in the Hawaiian Islands half a century or more ago.* There Samuel Armstrong, a youth of missionary parents, earned enough money to pay his expenses at an American college. Equipped with this small sum and the earnestness that the undertaking implied, he came to Williams College when Dr. Mark Hopkins was president. Williams College had many good things for youth in that day, as it has in this, but the greatest was the strong personality of its famous president. Every student does not profit by a great teacher; but perhaps no young man ever came under the influence of Dr. Hopkins, whose whole nature was so ripe for profit by such an experience as young Armstrong. He lived in the family of President Hopkins, and thus had a training that was wholly out of the common; and this training had much to do with the development of his own strong character, whose originality and force we are only beginning to appreciate.
The details of Mr. Washington's early life, as openly described in "Up from Slavery," don't fully capture his education. He received the training that a Black youth gets at Hampton, which the autobiography does explain. However, the reader doesn’t get a complete picture of his intellectual background, as Mr. Washington himself might not fully understand it either. The reality is that he had a unique training during the most formative years of his life, one that few men of his era experienced. To grasp its full significance, you have to look back to the Hawaiian Islands over fifty years ago. There, Samuel Armstrong, a young man from missionary parents, saved enough money to cover his expenses at an American college. With this modest amount and the seriousness of his goal, he came to Williams College when Dr. Mark Hopkins was the president. Williams College offered many advantages for young people at that time, just as it does now, but the biggest was the strong influence of its renowned president. Not every student benefits from a great teacher; however, perhaps no young man benefited more from Dr. Hopkins's guidance than young Armstrong, whose entire being was perfectly positioned to take advantage of such an experience. He lived with President Hopkins’s family, receiving a type of training that was truly exceptional, and this experience played a significant role in shaping his strong character, whose distinctiveness and strength we are only beginning to recognize.
* For this interesting view of Mr. Washington's education, I am indebted to Robert C. Ogden, Esq., Chairman of the Board of Trustees of Hampton Institute and the intimate friend of General Armstrong during the whole period of his educational work.
* For this fascinating insight into Mr. Washington's education, I am grateful to Robert C. Ogden, Esq., Chairman of the Board of Trustees of Hampton Institute and a close friend of General Armstrong throughout his entire educational career.
In turn, Samuel Armstrong, the founder of Hampton Institute, took up his work as a trainer of youth. He had very raw material, and doubtless most of his pupils failed to get the greatest lessons from him; but, as he had been a peculiarly receptive pupil of Dr. Hopkins, so Booker Washington became a peculiarly receptive pupil of his. To the formation of Mr. Washington's character, then, went the missionary zeal of New England, influenced by one of the strongest personalities in modern education, and the wide-reaching moral earnestness of General Armstrong himself. These influences are easily recognizable in Mr. Washington to-day by men who knew Dr. Hopkins and General Armstrong.
In turn, Samuel Armstrong, the founder of Hampton Institute, took on the role of training young people. He had very limited resources, and it's likely that most of his students didn't learn the most important lessons from him; however, just as he had been a particularly eager student of Dr. Hopkins, Booker Washington became a uniquely eager student of his. So, the formation of Mr. Washington's character was shaped by the missionary passion of New England, influenced by one of the most impactful figures in modern education, along with the far-reaching moral commitment of General Armstrong himself. These influences are still recognizable in Mr. Washington today by those who knew Dr. Hopkins and General Armstrong.
I got the cue to Mr. Washington's character from a very simple incident many years ago. I had never seen him, and I knew little about him, except that he was the head of a school at Tuskegee, Alabama. I had occasion to write to him, and I addressed him as "The Rev. Booker T. Washington." In his reply there was no mention of my addressing him as a clergyman. But when I had occasion to write to him again, and persisted in making him a preacher, his second letter brought a postscript: "I have no claim to 'Rev.'" I knew most of the coloured men who at that time had become prominent as leaders of their race, but I had not then known one who was neither a politician nor a preacher; and I had not heard of the head of an important coloured school who was not a preacher. "A new kind of man in the coloured world," I said to myself—"a new kind of man surely if he looks upon his task as an economic one instead of a theological one." I wrote him an apology for mistaking him for a preacher.
I got a sense of Mr. Washington's character from a simple incident many years ago. I had never seen him and knew very little about him, other than that he was the head of a school in Tuskegee, Alabama. I had to write to him and addressed him as "The Rev. Booker T. Washington." In his reply, he didn't mention that I had called him a clergyman. But when I wrote to him again and continued to refer to him as a preacher, his second letter included a postscript: "I have no claim to 'Rev.'" At that time, I knew most of the Black men who had become prominent as leaders of their race, but I hadn't yet met one who wasn't a politician or a preacher; and I had never heard of the head of an important Black school who wasn't a preacher. "A new kind of man in the Black community," I thought—"a new kind of man for sure if he sees his role as an economic one instead of a theological one." I wrote him an apology for mistakenly thinking he was a preacher.
The first time that I went to Tuskegee I was asked to make an address to the school on Sunday evening. I sat upon the platform of the large chapel and looked forth on a thousand coloured faces, and the choir of a hundred or more behind me sang a familiar religious melody, and the whole company joined in the chorus with unction. I was the only white man under the roof, and the scene and the songs made an impression on me that I shall never forget. Mr. Washington arose and asked them to sing one after another of the old melodies that I had heard all my life; but I had never before heard them sung by a thousand voices nor by the voices of educated Negroes. I had associated them with the Negro of the past, not with the Negro who was struggling upward. They brought to my mind the plantation, the cabin, the slave, not the freedman in quest of education. But on the plantation and in the cabin they had never been sung as these thousand students sang them. I saw again all the old plantations that I had ever seen; the whole history of the Negro ran through my mind; and the inexpressible pathos of his life found expression in these songs as I had never before felt it.
The first time I went to Tuskegee, I was asked to speak to the school on Sunday evening. I sat on the platform of the large chapel and looked out at a sea of a thousand colorful faces, while the choir of over a hundred behind me sang a familiar religious tune, and the entire audience joined in the chorus with heartfelt enthusiasm. I was the only white person in the room, and the scene and the songs left an impression on me that I will never forget. Mr. Washington got up and asked them to sing one after another of the old songs I had heard throughout my life; but I had never before heard them sung by a thousand voices or by educated Black individuals. I had always associated them with the Negro of the past, not with the Black individuals striving to rise. They reminded me of the plantation, the cabin, and the slave, not the freedman seeking education. Yet, on the plantation and in the cabin, they had never been sung like these thousand students sang them. I was reminded of all the old plantations I had ever seen; the entire history of Black people flowed through my mind, and the deep sorrow of their lives resonated in these songs in a way I had never experienced before.
And the future? These were the ambitious youths of the race, at work with an earnestness that put to shame the conventional student life of most educational institutions. Another song rolled up along the rafters. And as soon as silence came, I found myself in front of this extraordinary mass of faces, thinking not of them, but of that long and unhappy chapter in our country's history which followed the one great structural mistake of the Fathers of the Republic; thinking of the one continuous great problem that generations of statesmen had wrangled over, and a million men fought about, and that had so dwarfed the mass of English men in the Southern States as to hold them back a hundred years behind their fellows in every other part of the world—in England, in Australia, and in the Northern and Western States; I was thinking of this dark shadow that had oppressed every large-minded statesman from Jefferson to Lincoln. These thousand young men and women about me were victims of it. I, too, was an innocent victim of it. The whole Republic was a victim of that fundamental error of importing Africa into America. I held firmly to the first article of my faith that the Republic must stand fast by the principle of a fair ballot; but I recalled the wretched mess that Reconstruction had made of it; I recalled the low level of public life in all the "black" States. Every effort of philanthropy seemed to have miscarried, every effort at correcting abuses seemed of doubtful value, and the race friction seemed to become severer. Here was the century-old problem in all its pathos seated singing before me. Who were the more to be pitied—these innocent victims of an ancient wrong, or I and men like me, who had inherited the problem? I had long ago thrown aside illusions and theories, and was willing to meet the facts face to face, and to do whatever in God's name a man might do towards saving the next generation from such a burden. But I felt the weight of twenty well-nigh hopeless years of thought and reading and observation; for the old difficulties remained and new ones had sprung up. Then I saw clearly that the way out of a century of blunders had been made by this man who stood beside me and was introducing me to this audience. Before me was the material he had used. All about me was the indisputable evidence that he had found the natural line of development. He had shown the way. Time and patience and encouragement and work would do the rest.
And the future? These were the ambitious young people of the race, working with a dedication that made the typical student life at most educational institutions look lazy. Another song echoed through the rafters. And as soon as the silence returned, I found myself in front of this incredible crowd of faces, not thinking about them, but about that long and painful chapter in our country's history that followed the one major mistake made by the Founding Fathers; I was reflecting on the ongoing major issue that generations of politicians had debated, and over which a million men fought, which had held back many English men in the Southern States a full hundred years behind their peers in every other part of the world—in England, in Australia, and in the Northern and Western States; I was thinking of this dark shadow that had burdened every large-minded leader from Jefferson to Lincoln. These thousand young men and women around me were its victims. I, too, was an innocent victim of it. The entire Republic was a victim of that fundamental mistake of bringing Africa into America. I firmly believed in the principle of a fair ballot, but I remembered the disaster that Reconstruction had made of it; I recalled the low standards of public life in all the "black" States. Every philanthropic effort seemed to have failed, every attempt at correcting abuses seemed questionable, and racial tensions seemed to be getting worse. Here was the century-old problem in all its sorrow seated and singing before me. Who deserved more pity—these innocent victims of a historic wrong, or I and men like me, who had inherited the problem? I had long discarded illusions and theories, and was ready to face the facts head-on, doing whatever a man could do in God's name to save the next generation from such a burden. But I felt the weight of nearly twenty hopeless years of thought, reading, and observation; for the old issues remained and new ones had emerged. Then I clearly saw that the path out of a century of mistakes had been forged by this man who stood beside me and was introducing me to this audience. Before me was the foundation he had built. All around me was the undeniable proof that he had discovered the natural course of development. He had shown the way. Time, patience, encouragement, and hard work would take care of the rest.
It was then more clearly than ever before that I understood the patriotic significance of Mr. Washington's work. It is this conception of it and of him that I have ever since carried with me. It is on this that his claim to our gratitude rests.
It was then clearer than ever that I understood the patriotic significance of Mr. Washington's work. This idea of him and his contributions has stayed with me ever since. It's on this understanding that his claim to our gratitude is based.
To teach the Negro to read, whether English, or Greek, or Hebrew, butters no parsnips. To make the Negro work, that is what his master did in one way and hunger has done in another; yet both these left Southern life where they found it. But to teach the Negro to do skilful work, as men of all the races that have risen have worked,—responsible work, which IS education and character; and most of all when Negroes so teach Negroes to do this that they will teach others with a missionary zeal that puts all ordinary philanthropic efforts to shame,—this is to change the whole economic basis of life and the whole character of a people.
Teaching Black people to read, whether in English, Greek, or Hebrew, doesn't change much. Making them work is what their masters did in one way, and hunger has done in another; still, both approaches left Southern life unchanged. But teaching Black people to do skilled work, like the men from all races who have risen have done—responsible work that involves education and character—especially when Black people teach other Black people to do this with a passion that surpasses all typical charitable efforts—this is what can transform the entire economic foundation of life and the character of a community.
The plan itself is not a new one. It was worked out at Hampton Institute, but it was done at Hampton by white men. The plan had, in fact, been many times theoretically laid down by thoughtful students of Southern life. Handicrafts were taught in the days of slavery on most well-managed plantations. But Tuskegee is, nevertheless, a brand-new chapter in the history of the Negro, and in the history of the knottiest problem we have ever faced. It not only makes "a carpenter of a man; it makes a man of a carpenter." In one sense, therefore, it is of greater value than any other institution for the training of men and women that we have, from Cambridge to Palo Alto. It is almost the only one of which it may be said that it points the way to a new epoch in a large area of our national life.
The plan itself isn't new. It was developed at Hampton Institute, but it was created there by white men. In fact, thoughtful students of Southern life had often theoretically laid out this plan. Handicrafts were taught during slavery on most well-managed plantations. However, Tuskegee is still a brand-new chapter in the history of African Americans, and in the history of the most challenging issue we've ever faced. It doesn’t just turn “a man into a carpenter; it turns a carpenter into a man.” In one sense, this makes it more valuable than any other institution for training men and women that we have, from Cambridge to Palo Alto. It's almost the only one that can rightly be said to lead us into a new era in a significant part of our national life.
To work out the plan on paper, or at a distance—that is one thing. For a white man to work it out—that too, is an easy thing. For a coloured man to work it out in the South, where, in its constructive period, he was necessarily misunderstood by his own people as well as by the whites, and where he had to adjust it at every step to the strained race relations—that is so very different and more difficult a thing that the man who did it put the country under lasting obligations to him.
To sketch out the plan on paper or from afar—that's one thing. For a white man to figure it out—that's another easy task. But for a person of color to navigate it in the South, where, during its formative phase, he was misunderstood by both his own community and by whites, and where he had to adapt it at every turn to the tense race relations—that's a completely different and much tougher challenge. The man who accomplished this has put the country in his debt for his efforts.
It was not and is not a mere educational task. Anybody could teach boys trades and give them an elementary education. Such tasks have been done since the beginning of civilization. But this task had to be done with the rawest of raw material, done within the civilization of the dominant race, and so done as not to run across race lines and social lines that are the strongest forces in the community. It had to be done for the benefit of the whole community. It had to be done, moreover, without local help, in the face of the direst poverty, done by begging, and done in spite of the ignorance of one race and the prejudice of the other.
It wasn't and isn't just an educational task. Anyone could teach boys trades and provide them with basic education. These things have been done since civilization began. But this task had to be accomplished with the most challenging circumstances, done within the rules of the dominant race's society, and done in a way that didn't cross racial and social boundaries, which are the most powerful forces in the community. It had to be done for the good of the entire community. Moreover, it had to be accomplished without local support, in the face of severe poverty, done through begging, and in spite of one race's ignorance and the other race's prejudice.
No man living had a harder task, and a task that called for more wisdom to do it right. The true measure of Mr. Washington's success is, then, not his teaching the pupils of Tuskegee, nor even gaining the support of philanthropic persons at a distance, but this—that every Southern white man of character and of wisdom has been won to a cordial recognition of the value of the work, even men who held and still hold to the conviction that a mere book education for the Southern blacks under present conditions is a positive evil. This is a demonstration of the efficiency of the Hampton-Tuskegee idea that stands like the demonstration of the value of democratic institutions themselves—a demonstration made so clear in spite of the greatest odds that it is no longer open to argument.
No one has ever had a harder job, one that required more wisdom to get right. The real measure of Mr. Washington's success, then, isn’t just about teaching the students at Tuskegee or even winning over philanthropic supporters from afar, but rather this: that every Southern white man of integrity and wisdom has come to genuinely recognize the importance of the work. This includes men who believed and still believe that just getting a book education for Southern blacks in the current situation is actually harmful. This showcases the effectiveness of the Hampton-Tuskegee approach, which stands as a testament to the value of democratic institutions themselves—a demonstration so clear, even against significant challenges, that it can no longer be questioned.
Consider the change that has come in twenty years in the discussion of the Negro problem. Two or three decades ago social philosophers and statisticians and well-meaning philanthropists were still talking and writing about the deportation of the Negroes, or about their settlement within some restricted area, or about their settling in all parts of the Union, or about their decline through their neglect of their children, or about their rapid multiplication till they should expel the whites from the South—of every sort of nonsense under heaven. All this has given place to the simple plan of an indefinite extension among the neglected classes of both races of the Hampton-Tuskegee system of training. The "problem" in one sense has disappeared. The future will have for the South swift or slow development of its masses and of its soil in proportion to the swift or slow development of this kind of training. This change of view is a true measure of Mr. Washington's work.
Consider the shift in the past twenty years regarding the discussion of the Black community. Two or three decades ago, social philosophers, statisticians, and well-intentioned philanthropists were still talking and writing about deporting Black people, confining them to certain areas, settling them across the country, their decline due to neglecting their children, or their increasing numbers potentially displacing white people from the South—essentially every kind of nonsense imaginable. All this has transformed into a straightforward approach of extending the Hampton-Tuskegee training system among the neglected communities of both races. In one sense, the "problem" has faded away. The future for the South will involve the rapid or gradual advancement of its population and land, depending on how quickly or slowly this type of training develops. This change in perspective reflects the true impact of Mr. Washington's work.
The literature of the Negro in America is colossal, from political oratory through abolitionism to "Uncle Tom's Cabin" and "Cotton is King"—a vast mass of books which many men have read to the waste of good years (and I among them); but the only books that I have read a second time or ever care again to read in the whole list (most of them by tiresome and unbalanced "reformers") are "Uncle Remus" and "Up from Slavery"; for these are the great literature of the subject. One has all the best of the past, the other foreshadows a better future; and the men who wrote them are the only men who have written of the subject with that perfect frankness and perfect knowledge and perfect poise whose other name is genius.
The literature by Black Americans is extensive, ranging from political speeches and abolitionist works to "Uncle Tom's Cabin" and "Cotton is King"—a huge collection of books that many people have read to the detriment of their time (and I am one of them); but the only books I've read more than once or would happily read again from that entire list (most of which are by tiresome and one-sided "reformers") are "Uncle Remus" and "Up from Slavery"; these are the true literary gems on the topic. One captures all the best of the past, while the other hints at a brighter future; and the authors of these works are the only ones who have addressed the topic with the complete honesty, deep understanding, and balanced insight that can only be described as genius.
Mr. Washington has won a world-wide fame at an early age. His story of his own life already has the distinction of translation into more languages, I think, than any other American book; and I suppose that he has as large a personal acquaintance among men of influence as any private citizen now living.
Mr. Washington has gained worldwide fame at a young age. His life story has already been translated into more languages than I think any other American book, and I believe he has as many personal connections with influential people as any private citizen alive today.
His own teaching at Tuskegee is unique. He lectures to his advanced students on the art of right living, not out of text-books, but straight out of life. Then he sends them into the country to visit Negro families. Such a student will come back with a minute report of the way in which the family that he has seen lives, what their earnings are, what they do well and what they do ill; and he will explain how they might live better. He constructs a definite plan for the betterment of that particular family out of the resources that they have. Such a student, if he be bright, will profit more by an experience like this than he could profit by all the books on sociology and economics that ever were written. I talked with a boy at Tuskegee who had made such a study as this, and I could not keep from contrasting his knowledge and enthusiasm with what I heard in a class room at a Negro university in one of the Southern cities, which is conducted on the idea that a college course will save the soul. Here the class was reciting a lesson from an abstruse text-book on economics, reciting it by rote, with so obvious a failure to assimilate it that the waste of labour was pitiful.
His teaching at Tuskegee is truly unique. He lectures his advanced students on the art of living well, not from textbooks, but straight from real life. Then, he sends them out to visit Black families in the countryside. A student returns with a detailed report on how the family lives, their earnings, what they excel at, and where they struggle; he also suggests how they might improve their situation. He develops a specific plan for bettering that family using the resources they have. A bright student will gain far more from this kind of experience than from all the sociology and economics textbooks ever written. I spoke with a boy at Tuskegee who had done this kind of study, and I couldn’t help but compare his knowledge and enthusiasm to what I observed in a classroom at a Black university in one of the Southern cities, which operates under the belief that just having a college course will save someone’s soul. In that class, the students were reciting lessons from a complex economics textbook, memorizing it without truly understanding it, making the loss of effort quite disheartening.
I asked Mr. Washington years ago what he regarded as the most important result of his work, and he replied:
I asked Mr. Washington years ago what he considered the most significant outcome of his work, and he answered:
"I do not know which to put first, the effect of Tuskegee's work on the Negro, or the effect on the attitude of the white man to the Negro."
"I don't know what to prioritize, the impact of Tuskegee's work on Black people, or the effect on how white people view Black individuals."
The race divergence under the system of miseducation was fast getting wider. Under the influence of the Hampton-Tuskegee idea the races are coming into a closer sympathy and into an honourable and helpful relation. As the Negro becomes economically independent, he becomes a responsible part of the Southern life; and the whites so recognize him. And this must be so from the nature of things. There is nothing artificial about it. It is development in a perfectly natural way. And the Southern whites not only so recognize it, but they are imitating it in the teaching of the neglected masses of their own race. It has thus come about that the school is taking a more direct and helpful hold on life in the South than anywhere else in the country. Education is not a thing apart from life—not a "system," nor a philosophy; it is direct teaching how to live and how to work.
The gap between races due to the system of miseducation was quickly widening. Influenced by the Hampton-Tuskegee approach, the races are developing a closer understanding and building a respectful and supportive relationship. As African Americans gain economic independence, they become a responsible part of Southern life, and white people acknowledge this. This is a natural process, not something forced. It reflects growth in a completely organic way. Southern whites not only recognize this change, but they are also applying it to educate the neglected members of their own race. As a result, schools are having a more direct and positive impact on life in the South than anywhere else in the country. Education is not separate from life—it’s not just a "system" or a philosophy; it’s practical guidance on how to live and how to work.
To say that Mr. Washington has won the gratitude of all thoughtful Southern white men, is to say that he has worked with the highest practical wisdom at a large constructive task; for no plan for the up-building of the freedman could succeed that ran counter to Southern opinion. To win the support of Southern opinion and to shape it was a necessary part of the task; and in this he has so well succeeded that the South has a sincere and high regard for him. He once said to me that he recalled the day, and remembered it thankfully, when he grew large enough to regard a Southern white man as he regarded a Northern one. It is well for our common country that the day is come when he and his work are regarded as highly in the South as in any other part of the Union. I think that no man of our generation has a more noteworthy achievement to his credit than this; and it is an achievement of moral earnestness of the strong character of a man who has done a great national service.
Saying that Mr. Washington has earned the gratitude of all thoughtful Southern white men means he has worked wisely on a significant constructive effort. No plan for improving the lives of freedmen could succeed if it went against Southern beliefs. Gaining the support of Southern opinion and influencing it was essential to the task, and he has succeeded so well that the South holds him in genuine high regard. He once told me he fondly remembered the day when he grew to see Southern white men the same way he saw Northern ones. It's a good thing for our country that we’ve reached a point where he and his work are respected in the South just as much as in any other part of the Union. I believe no one in our generation has a more remarkable achievement to their name than this; it reflects the moral commitment and strong character of a man who has rendered significant national service.
Walter H. Page.
Walter H. Page.
UP FROM SLAVERY
Chapter I. A Slave Among Slaves
I was born a slave on a plantation in Franklin County, Virginia. I am not quite sure of the exact place or exact date of my birth, but at any rate I suspect I must have been born somewhere and at some time. As nearly as I have been able to learn, I was born near a cross-roads post-office called Hale's Ford, and the year was 1858 or 1859. I do not know the month or the day. The earliest impressions I can now recall are of the plantation and the slave quarters—the latter being the part of the plantation where the slaves had their cabins.
I was born a slave on a plantation in Franklin County, Virginia. I'm not exactly sure of the specific location or date of my birth, but I believe I must have been born somewhere at some time. From what I've been able to find out, I was born near a crossroads post office called Hale's Ford, and the year was 1858 or 1859. I don't know the month or the day. The earliest memories I can recall are of the plantation and the slave quarters—the part of the plantation where the slaves had their cabins.
My life had its beginning in the midst of the most miserable, desolate, and discouraging surroundings. This was so, however, not because my owners were especially cruel, for they were not, as compared with many others. I was born in a typical log cabin, about fourteen by sixteen feet square. In this cabin I lived with my mother and a brother and sister till after the Civil War, when we were all declared free.
My life started in the most miserable, desolate, and discouraging conditions. However, this wasn't because my owners were particularly cruel, since they weren't compared to many others. I was born in a typical log cabin, about fourteen by sixteen feet in size. In that cabin, I lived with my mother, brother, and sister until after the Civil War, when we were all declared free.
Of my ancestry I know almost nothing. In the slave quarters, and even later, I heard whispered conversations among the coloured people of the tortures which the slaves, including, no doubt, my ancestors on my mother's side, suffered in the middle passage of the slave ship while being conveyed from Africa to America. I have been unsuccessful in securing any information that would throw any accurate light upon the history of my family beyond my mother. She, I remember, had a half-brother and a half-sister. In the days of slavery not very much attention was given to family history and family records—that is, black family records. My mother, I suppose, attracted the attention of a purchaser who was afterward my owner and hers. Her addition to the slave family attracted about as much attention as the purchase of a new horse or cow. Of my father I know even less than of my mother. I do not even know his name. I have heard reports to the effect that he was a white man who lived on one of the near-by plantations. Whoever he was, I never heard of his taking the least interest in me or providing in any way for my rearing. But I do not find especial fault with him. He was simply another unfortunate victim of the institution which the Nation unhappily had engrafted upon it at that time.
I know almost nothing about my ancestry. In the slave quarters, and even later, I overheard conversations among the Black community about the horrors that slaves, including my ancestors on my mother’s side, endured during the Middle Passage while being transported from Africa to America. I've been unable to find any information that would provide a clear picture of my family history beyond my mother. I remember she had a half-brother and a half-sister. Back in the days of slavery, not much attention was given to family history and records—especially for Black families. My mother, I believe, caught the eye of a buyer who later became my owner. Her being added to the slave family drew about as much attention as buying a new horse or cow. I know even less about my father than I do about my mother. I don’t even know his name. I’ve heard rumors that he was a white man who lived on a nearby plantation. Whoever he was, I never heard of him showing any interest in me or contributing to my upbringing. But I don’t blame him too much. He was just another unfortunate victim of the brutal system that the nation sadly had in place at that time.
The cabin was not only our living-place, but was also used as the kitchen for the plantation. My mother was the plantation cook. The cabin was without glass windows; it had only openings in the side which let in the light, and also the cold, chilly air of winter. There was a door to the cabin—that is, something that was called a door—but the uncertain hinges by which it was hung, and the large cracks in it, to say nothing of the fact that it was too small, made the room a very uncomfortable one. In addition to these openings there was, in the lower right-hand corner of the room, the "cat-hole,"—a contrivance which almost every mansion or cabin in Virginia possessed during the ante-bellum period. The "cat-hole" was a square opening, about seven by eight inches, provided for the purpose of letting the cat pass in and out of the house at will during the night. In the case of our particular cabin I could never understand the necessity for this convenience, since there were at least a half-dozen other places in the cabin that would have accommodated the cats. There was no wooden floor in our cabin, the naked earth being used as a floor. In the centre of the earthen floor there was a large, deep opening covered with boards, which was used as a place in which to store sweet potatoes during the winter. An impression of this potato-hole is very distinctly engraved upon my memory, because I recall that during the process of putting the potatoes in or taking them out I would often come into possession of one or two, which I roasted and thoroughly enjoyed. There was no cooking-stove on our plantation, and all the cooking for the whites and slaves my mother had to do over an open fireplace, mostly in pots and "skillets." While the poorly built cabin caused us to suffer with cold in the winter, the heat from the open fireplace in summer was equally trying.
The cabin was not just our home; it also served as the kitchen for the plantation. My mom was the cook for the plantation. The cabin didn’t have glass windows; it just had openings on the sides that let in light, along with the cold, chilly winter air. There was a door to the cabin—well, something that was called a door—but the unreliable hinges it hung on and the big cracks in it, not to mention that it was too small, made the room pretty uncomfortable. Besides these openings, there was a "cat-hole" in the lower right corner of the room—a feature that almost every mansion or cabin in Virginia had back in the antebellum days. The "cat-hole" was a square opening, about seven by eight inches, designed for the cat to come and go during the night. In our cabin, I never understood why this was necessary since there were at least half a dozen other spots where the cats could have gone in and out. Our cabin didn’t have a wooden floor; the bare earth served as the floor. In the center of the earthen floor, there was a large, deep hole covered with boards, used for storing sweet potatoes during the winter. I clearly remember this potato-hole because, while putting the potatoes in or taking them out, I would often snag one or two, which I roasted and thoroughly enjoyed. There was no cooking stove on our plantation, so my mom had to cook for both the white folks and the slaves over an open fireplace, mostly using pots and skillets. While the poorly built cabin made us suffer from the cold in winter, the heat from the open fireplace in summer was just as tough.
The early years of my life, which were spent in the little cabin, were not very different from those of thousands of other slaves. My mother, of course, had little time in which to give attention to the training of her children during the day. She snatched a few moments for our care in the early morning before her work began, and at night after the day's work was done. One of my earliest recollections is that of my mother cooking a chicken late at night, and awakening her children for the purpose of feeding them. How or where she got it I do not know. I presume, however, it was procured from our owner's farm. Some people may call this theft. If such a thing were to happen now, I should condemn it as theft myself. But taking place at the time it did, and for the reason that it did, no one could ever make me believe that my mother was guilty of thieving. She was simply a victim of the system of slavery. I cannot remember having slept in a bed until after our family was declared free by the Emancipation Proclamation. Three children—John, my older brother, Amanda, my sister, and myself—had a pallet on the dirt floor, or, to be more correct, we slept in and on a bundle of filthy rags laid upon the dirt floor.
The early years of my life, spent in the little cabin, were not very different from those of thousands of other slaves. My mother, of course, had little time to focus on training her children during the day. She managed to find a few moments for us in the early morning before her work started, and at night after the day’s work was over. One of my earliest memories is of my mother cooking a chicken late at night and waking her children to feed them. I don’t know how or where she got it. I assume it was taken from our owner's farm. Some might call this theft. If it happened today, I’d probably call it theft myself. But given the time and the circumstances, no one could convince me that my mother was stealing. She was simply a victim of the system of slavery. I can’t remember sleeping in a bed until our family was declared free by the Emancipation Proclamation. My brother John, my sister Amanda, and I had a makeshift bed on the dirt floor, or to be more precise, we slept on a bundle of filthy rags laid on the dirt floor.
I was asked not long ago to tell something about the sports and pastimes that I engaged in during my youth. Until that question was asked it had never occurred to me that there was no period of my life that was devoted to play. From the time that I can remember anything, almost every day of my life had been occupied in some kind of labour; though I think I would now be a more useful man if I had had time for sports. During the period that I spent in slavery I was not large enough to be of much service, still I was occupied most of the time in cleaning the yards, carrying water to the men in the fields, or going to the mill to which I used to take the corn, once a week, to be ground. The mill was about three miles from the plantation. This work I always dreaded. The heavy bag of corn would be thrown across the back of the horse, and the corn divided about evenly on each side; but in some way, almost without exception, on these trips, the corn would so shift as to become unbalanced and would fall off the horse, and often I would fall with it. As I was not strong enough to reload the corn upon the horse, I would have to wait, sometimes for many hours, till a chance passer-by came along who would help me out of my trouble. The hours while waiting for some one were usually spent in crying. The time consumed in this way made me late in reaching the mill, and by the time I got my corn ground and reached home it would be far into the night. The road was a lonely one, and often led through dense forests. I was always frightened. The woods were said to be full of soldiers who had deserted from the army, and I had been told that the first thing a deserter did to a Negro boy when he found him alone was to cut off his ears. Besides, when I was late in getting home I knew I would always get a severe scolding or a flogging.
I was asked not long ago to share some stories about the sports and activities I participated in during my youth. Until that moment, I had never realized that there was no time in my life dedicated to play. From what I can remember, almost every day of my life was spent doing some kind of work; although I believe I would be a more useful person today if I had had some time for sports. During the time I was enslaved, I wasn’t big enough to be of much help, yet I was constantly busy cleaning the yards, bringing water to the men in the fields, or going to the mill where I took corn once a week to be ground. The mill was about three miles away from the plantation. I always dreaded that work. The heavy bag of corn would be thrown across the horse's back, evenly split on both sides; but somehow, almost every time, on these trips, the corn would shift, become unbalanced, and fall off the horse, often causing me to fall off too. Since I wasn’t strong enough to reload the corn onto the horse, I would have to wait, sometimes for hours, until someone happened by to help me. The time spent waiting was usually filled with tears. This delay made me late getting to the mill, and by the time I had my corn ground and returned home, it would be well into the night. The road was lonely and often ran through thick forests. I was always scared. People said the woods were full of soldiers who had deserted the army, and I had been warned that the first thing a deserter would do when he found a Black boy alone was to cut off his ears. Plus, I knew that being late getting home would always mean a severe scolding or a beating.
I had no schooling whatever while I was a slave, though I remember on several occasions I went as far as the schoolhouse door with one of my young mistresses to carry her books. The picture of several dozen boys and girls in a schoolroom engaged in study made a deep impression upon me, and I had the feeling that to get into a schoolhouse and study in this way would be about the same as getting into paradise.
I had no education at all while I was a slave, but I remember a few times when I went to the schoolhouse door with one of my young mistresses to carry her books. The sight of dozens of boys and girls in a classroom studying left a strong impression on me, and I felt that getting into a schoolhouse and learning like that would be pretty much the same as entering paradise.
So far as I can now recall, the first knowledge that I got of the fact that we were slaves, and that freedom of the slaves was being discussed, was early one morning before day, when I was awakened by my mother kneeling over her children and fervently praying that Lincoln and his armies might be successful, and that one day she and her children might be free. In this connection I have never been able to understand how the slaves throughout the South, completely ignorant as were the masses so far as books or newspapers were concerned, were able to keep themselves so accurately and completely informed about the great National questions that were agitating the country. From the time that Garrison, Lovejoy, and others began to agitate for freedom, the slaves throughout the South kept in close touch with the progress of the movement. Though I was a mere child during the preparation for the Civil War and during the war itself, I now recall the many late-at-night whispered discussions that I heard my mother and the other slaves on the plantation indulge in. These discussions showed that they understood the situation, and that they kept themselves informed of events by what was termed the "grape-vine" telegraph.
As far as I can remember, the first time I realized we were slaves and that people were talking about freeing slaves was early one morning before dawn. I was awakened by my mother kneeling by her children, passionately praying that Lincoln and his armies would succeed, and that one day she and her children could be free. I've never understood how slaves across the South, who were completely unaware of what was happening in books or newspapers, managed to stay so well-informed about the major national issues stirring the country. Since the time Garrison, Lovejoy, and others started advocating for freedom, slaves throughout the South stayed closely connected to the progress of the movement. Even though I was just a child during the buildup to the Civil War and throughout the war itself, I remember the many late-night whispered conversations my mother and the other slaves on the plantation had. These discussions showed that they understood the situation and kept themselves updated on events through what was called the "grape-vine" telegraph.
During the campaign when Lincoln was first a candidate for the Presidency, the slaves on our far-off plantation, miles from any railroad or large city or daily newspaper, knew what the issues involved were. When war was begun between the North and the South, every slave on our plantation felt and knew that, though other issues were discussed, the primal one was that of slavery. Even the most ignorant members of my race on the remote plantations felt in their hearts, with a certainty that admitted of no doubt, that the freedom of the slaves would be the one great result of the war, if the Northern armies conquered. Every success of the Federal armies and every defeat of the Confederate forces was watched with the keenest and most intense interest. Often the slaves got knowledge of the results of great battles before the white people received it. This news was usually gotten from the coloured man who was sent to the post-office for the mail. In our case the post-office was about three miles from the plantation, and the mail came once or twice a week. The man who was sent to the office would linger about the place long enough to get the drift of the conversation from the group of white people who naturally congregated there, after receiving their mail, to discuss the latest news. The mail-carrier on his way back to our master's house would as naturally retail the news that he had secured among the slaves, and in this way they often heard of important events before the white people at the "big house," as the master's house was called.
During the campaign when Lincoln was first running for President, the slaves on our distant plantation, miles away from any railroad, large city, or daily newspaper, understood what the issues were. When the war broke out between the North and the South, every slave on our plantation felt that, despite other topics being discussed, the main one was slavery. Even the least educated members of my race on the remote plantations sensed, with a certainty that could not be doubted, that the freedom of the slaves would be the major outcome of the war if the Northern armies won. Every victory of the Federal armies and every loss of the Confederate forces was followed with intense interest. Often, the slaves found out the results of significant battles before the white people did. This news usually came from the Black man sent to the post office for the mail. In our case, the post office was about three miles from the plantation, and the mail arrived once or twice a week. The person sent to the office would hang around long enough to catch the gist of the conversation among the group of white people who naturally gathered there after getting their mail to talk about the latest news. As he made his way back to our master's house, the mail carrier would share the information he'd gathered with the slaves, allowing them to hear about important events before the white people at the "big house," as we called the master's house.
I cannot remember a single instance during my childhood or early boyhood when our entire family sat down to the table together, and God's blessing was asked, and the family ate a meal in a civilized manner. On the plantation in Virginia, and even later, meals were gotten by the children very much as dumb animals get theirs. It was a piece of bread here and a scrap of meat there. It was a cup of milk at one time and some potatoes at another. Sometimes a portion of our family would eat out of the skillet or pot, while some one else would eat from a tin plate held on the knees, and often using nothing but the hands with which to hold the food. When I had grown to sufficient size, I was required to go to the "big house" at meal-times to fan the flies from the table by means of a large set of paper fans operated by a pulley. Naturally much of the conversation of the white people turned upon the subject of freedom and the war, and I absorbed a good deal of it. I remember that at one time I saw two of my young mistresses and some lady visitors eating ginger-cakes, in the yard. At that time those cakes seemed to me to be absolutely the most tempting and desirable things that I had ever seen; and I then and there resolved that, if I ever got free, the height of my ambition would be reached if I could get to the point where I could secure and eat ginger-cakes in the way that I saw those ladies doing.
I can't remember a single time during my childhood when our entire family sat down together at the table, asked for God's blessing, and ate a meal in a civilized way. On the plantation in Virginia, and even later, the kids got their meals much like how animals do. It was a piece of bread here and a scrap of meat there. Sometimes it was a cup of milk and other times some potatoes. Occasionally, part of the family would eat from the skillet or pot, while someone else would eat from a tin plate on their knees, often just using their hands to hold the food. Once I was big enough, I had to go to the "big house" during mealtime to fan the flies away from the table with a big set of paper fans attached to a pulley. Naturally, a lot of the conversations among the white people were about freedom and the war, and I picked up a lot of it. I remember seeing two of my young mistresses and some lady visitors eating ginger cakes in the yard. At that moment, those cakes looked like the most tempting and desirable things I had ever seen, and I decided right then that if I ever got free, my biggest dream would be to get to a place where I could have and enjoy ginger cakes just like those ladies were doing.
Of course as the war was prolonged the white people, in many cases, often found it difficult to secure food for themselves. I think the slaves felt the deprivation less than the whites, because the usual diet for slaves was corn bread and pork, and these could be raised on the plantation; but coffee, tea, sugar, and other articles which the whites had been accustomed to use could not be raised on the plantation, and the conditions brought about by the war frequently made it impossible to secure these things. The whites were often in great straits. Parched corn was used for coffee, and a kind of black molasses was used instead of sugar. Many times nothing was used to sweeten the so-called tea and coffee.
Of course, as the war dragged on, white people often found it hard to get food for themselves. I think the slaves felt the shortages less than the whites because their usual diet was cornbread and pork, which could be grown on the plantation. However, coffee, tea, sugar, and other items that the whites were used to couldn't be produced there, and the conditions caused by the war often made it impossible to get these things. The whites were frequently in serious distress. Parched corn was used as a substitute for coffee, and a type of black molasses was used instead of sugar. Many times, there was nothing to sweeten the so-called tea and coffee.
The first pair of shoes that I recall wearing were wooden ones. They had rough leather on the top, but the bottoms, which were about an inch thick, were of wood. When I walked they made a fearful noise, and besides this they were very inconvenient, since there was no yielding to the natural pressure of the foot. In wearing them one presented an exceedingly awkward appearance. The most trying ordeal that I was forced to endure as a slave boy, however, was the wearing of a flax shirt. In the portion of Virginia where I lived it was common to use flax as part of the clothing for the slaves. That part of the flax from which our clothing was made was largely the refuse, which of course was the cheapest and roughest part. I can scarcely imagine any torture, except, perhaps, the pulling of a tooth, that is equal to that caused by putting on a new flax shirt for the first time. It is almost equal to the feeling that one would experience if he had a dozen or more chestnut burrs, or a hundred small pin-points, in contact with his flesh. Even to this day I can recall accurately the tortures that I underwent when putting on one of these garments. The fact that my flesh was soft and tender added to the pain. But I had no choice. I had to wear the flax shirt or none; and had it been left to me to choose, I should have chosen to wear no covering. In connection with the flax shirt, my brother John, who is several years older than I am, performed one of the most generous acts that I ever heard of one slave relative doing for another. On several occasions when I was being forced to wear a new flax shirt, he generously agreed to put it on in my stead and wear it for several days, till it was "broken in." Until I had grown to be quite a youth this single garment was all that I wore.
The first pair of shoes I remember wearing were made of wood. They had rough leather on top, but the soles, which were about an inch thick, were wooden. When I walked, they made a loud, frightening noise, and they were really uncomfortable since they didn't flex with the natural shape of my foot. Wearing them made me look extremely awkward. However, the worst thing I had to endure as a slave boy was wearing a flax shirt. In the part of Virginia where I lived, using flax for slave clothing was common. The part of the flax used for our clothes was mostly the leftover bits, which were the cheapest and roughest. I can hardly imagine any pain, except maybe getting a tooth pulled, that compares to putting on a new flax shirt for the first time. It’s almost like having a dozen or more chestnut burrs or a hundred tiny pinpricks against your skin. Even now, I can vividly remember the agony of wearing one of those shirts. The fact that my skin was soft and tender only made it worse. But I had no choice. I had to wear the flax shirt or none at all; if I had the option, I would have preferred to wear nothing. In connection with the flax shirt, my brother John, who is several years older than I am, did one of the most generous things I’ve ever heard of a slave relative doing for another. Several times, when I was forced to wear a new flax shirt, he kindly offered to put it on for me and wear it for a few days until it was more comfortable. Until I became a teenager, that one garment was all I wore.
One may get the idea, from what I have said, that there was bitter feeling toward the white people on the part of my race, because of the fact that most of the white population was away fighting in a war which would result in keeping the Negro in slavery if the South was successful. In the case of the slaves on our place this was not true, and it was not true of any large portion of the slave population in the South where the Negro was treated with anything like decency. During the Civil War one of my young masters was killed, and two were severely wounded. I recall the feeling of sorrow which existed among the slaves when they heard of the death of "Mars' Billy." It was no sham sorrow, but real. Some of the slaves had nursed "Mars' Billy"; others had played with him when he was a child. "Mars' Billy" had begged for mercy in the case of others when the overseer or master was thrashing them. The sorrow in the slave quarter was only second to that in the "big house." When the two young masters were brought home wounded, the sympathy of the slaves was shown in many ways. They were just as anxious to assist in the nursing as the family relatives of the wounded. Some of the slaves would even beg for the privilege of sitting up at night to nurse their wounded masters. This tenderness and sympathy on the part of those held in bondage was a result of their kindly and generous nature. In order to defend and protect the women and children who were left on the plantations when the white males went to war, the slaves would have laid down their lives. The slave who was selected to sleep in the "big house" during the absence of the males was considered to have the place of honour. Any one attempting to harm "young Mistress" or "old Mistress" during the night would have had to cross the dead body of the slave to do so. I do not know how many have noticed it, but I think that it will be found to be true that there are few instances, either in slavery or freedom, in which a member of my race has been known to betray a specific trust.
One might think, from what I've said, that there was a lot of resentment toward white people from my race because most of the white population was off fighting in a war that would keep Black people in slavery if the South won. However, this wasn’t the case for the slaves on our plantation, nor for many others in the South where Black people were treated with some decency. During the Civil War, one of my young masters was killed, and two were badly wounded. I remember the sadness among the slaves when they heard about "Mars' Billy's" death. It wasn’t fake sorrow; it was genuine. Some of the slaves had cared for "Mars' Billy," while others had played with him as a child. "Mars' Billy" had pleaded for mercy when others were being whipped by the overseer or master. The grief in the slave quarters was only second to that in the "big house." When the two young masters came home injured, the slaves showed their sympathy in many ways. They were just as eager to help take care of them as the family was. Some of the slaves even asked to stay up at night to care for their injured masters. This kindness and compassion from those in bondage stemmed from their warm and generous nature. To defend and protect the women and children left on the plantations while the white men went to war, the slaves would have laid down their lives. The slave chosen to stay in the "big house" during the absence of the men was seen as having an honored role. Anyone attempting to harm "young Mistress" or "old Mistress" at night would have had to get past the slave's dead body to do so. I’m not sure how many have noticed this, but I think it's true that there are very few cases, whether in slavery or freedom, where a member of my race has betrayed a specific trust.
As a rule, not only did the members of my race entertain no feelings of bitterness against the whites before and during the war, but there are many instances of Negroes tenderly caring for their former masters and mistresses who for some reason have become poor and dependent since the war. I know of instances where the former masters of slaves have for years been supplied with money by their former slaves to keep them from suffering. I have known of still other cases in which the former slaves have assisted in the education of the descendants of their former owners. I know of a case on a large plantation in the South in which a young white man, the son of the former owner of the estate, has become so reduced in purse and self-control by reason of drink that he is a pitiable creature; and yet, notwithstanding the poverty of the coloured people themselves on this plantation, they have for years supplied this young white man with the necessities of life. One sends him a little coffee or sugar, another a little meat, and so on. Nothing that the coloured people possess is too good for the son of "old Mars' Tom," who will perhaps never be permitted to suffer while any remain on the place who knew directly or indirectly of "old Mars' Tom."
As a rule, not only did the members of my race hold no bitterness towards whites before and during the war, but there are many examples of Black people compassionately caring for their former masters and mistresses who, for various reasons, have fallen on hard times since the war. I know of cases where former slaves have regularly provided money to support their former masters and prevent their suffering. I’ve also seen instances where former slaves have helped educate the descendants of their former owners. I know about a situation on a large plantation in the South where a young white man, the son of the former owner, has become so impoverished and out of control due to alcohol that he is a tragic figure; yet, despite the struggles of the Black people on this plantation, they have for years offered this young white man the essentials for living. One sends him some coffee or sugar, another provides a bit of meat, and so on. Nothing that the Black community has is too good for the son of "old Mars' Tom," who will likely never go hungry as long as there are any around who remember "old Mars' Tom."
I have said that there are few instances of a member of my race betraying a specific trust. One of the best illustrations of this which I know of is in the case of an ex-slave from Virginia whom I met not long ago in a little town in the state of Ohio. I found that this man had made a contract with his master, two or three years previous to the Emancipation Proclamation, to the effect that the slave was to be permitted to buy himself, by paying so much per year for his body; and while he was paying for himself, he was to be permitted to labour where and for whom he pleased. Finding that he could secure better wages in Ohio, he went there. When freedom came, he was still in debt to his master some three hundred dollars. Notwithstanding that the Emancipation Proclamation freed him from any obligation to his master, this black man walked the greater portion of the distance back to where his old master lived in Virginia, and placed the last dollar, with interest, in his hands. In talking to me about this, the man told me that he knew that he did not have to pay the debt, but that he had given his word to the master, and his word he had never broken. He felt that he could not enjoy his freedom till he had fulfilled his promise.
I've mentioned that there are few cases of someone from my race betraying a specific trust. One of the best examples I know is an ex-slave from Virginia whom I recently met in a small town in Ohio. I learned that this man had made a deal with his master two or three years before the Emancipation Proclamation, stating that he could buy his freedom by paying a certain amount each year. While he was paying for himself, he could work wherever and for whomever he wanted. He found that he could earn better wages in Ohio, so he went there. When freedom finally arrived, he still owed his master about three hundred dollars. Even though the Emancipation Proclamation freed him from any obligation to his master, this man chose to walk most of the way back to his old master's place in Virginia and handed him the last dollar, with interest. When he spoke to me about it, he said he knew he didn’t have to pay the debt, but he had given his word to his master, and he never broke a promise. He felt that he couldn’t fully enjoy his freedom until he had kept that promise.
From some things that I have said one may get the idea that some of the slaves did not want freedom. This is not true. I have never seen one who did not want to be free, or one who would return to slavery.
From some things I've said, you might think that some of the slaves didn’t want freedom. That’s not true. I’ve never seen one who didn’t want to be free, or one who would go back to slavery.
I pity from the bottom of my heart any nation or body of people that is so unfortunate as to get entangled in the net of slavery. I have long since ceased to cherish any spirit of bitterness against the Southern white people on account of the enslavement of my race. No one section of our country was wholly responsible for its introduction, and, besides, it was recognized and protected for years by the General Government. Having once got its tentacles fastened on to the economic and social life of the Republic, it was no easy matter for the country to relieve itself of the institution. Then, when we rid ourselves of prejudice, or racial feeling, and look facts in the face, we must acknowledge that, notwithstanding the cruelty and moral wrong of slavery, the ten million Negroes inhabiting this country, who themselves or whose ancestors went through the school of American slavery, are in a stronger and more hopeful condition, materially, intellectually, morally, and religiously, than is true of an equal number of black people in any other portion of the globe. This is so to such an extent that Negroes in this country, who themselves or whose forefathers went through the school of slavery, are constantly returning to Africa as missionaries to enlighten those who remained in the fatherland. This I say, not to justify slavery—on the other hand, I condemn it as an institution, as we all know that in America it was established for selfish and financial reasons, and not from a missionary motive—but to call attention to a fact, and to show how Providence so often uses men and institutions to accomplish a purpose. When persons ask me in these days how, in the midst of what sometimes seem hopelessly discouraging conditions, I can have such faith in the future of my race in this country, I remind them of the wilderness through which and out of which, a good Providence has already led us.
I truly feel sorry for any nation or group of people that finds itself trapped in the chains of slavery. I’ve long let go of any bitterness toward the Southern white people because of the enslavement of my race. No single part of our country is completely to blame for its introduction, and it was also supported and protected by the federal government for many years. Once slavery was embedded in the economic and social fabric of the Republic, it wasn’t easy for the country to shake off that institution. When we set aside our prejudices and analyze the facts, we must admit that, despite the cruelty and moral wrong of slavery, the ten million Black people living in this country—whether they experienced slavery themselves or their ancestors did—are in a stronger and more promising situation, materially, intellectually, morally, and spiritually, than an equal number of Black people in any other part of the world. This is evident to the point that Black Americans, who have experienced slavery or whose ancestors did, often return to Africa as missionaries to educate those who stayed in the homeland. I mention this not to justify slavery—on the contrary, I condemn it as an institution, knowing that it was established in America for selfish and financial reasons, not for any missionary purpose—but to highlight a truth and demonstrate how Providence often uses people and institutions to fulfill a goal. When people ask me today how I can have such faith in the future of my race in this country, even in the face of what sometimes seem like hopelessly discouraging conditions, I remind them of the difficult journey we’ve already been through and survived.
Ever since I have been old enough to think for myself, I have entertained the idea that, notwithstanding the cruel wrongs inflicted upon us, the black man got nearly as much out of slavery as the white man did. The hurtful influences of the institution were not by any means confined to the Negro. This was fully illustrated by the life upon our own plantation. The whole machinery of slavery was so constructed as to cause labour, as a rule, to be looked upon as a badge of degradation, of inferiority. Hence labour was something that both races on the slave plantation sought to escape. The slave system on our place, in a large measure, took the spirit of self-reliance and self-help out of the white people. My old master had many boys and girls, but not one, so far as I know, ever mastered a single trade or special line of productive industry. The girls were not taught to cook, sew, or to take care of the house. All of this was left to the slaves. The slaves, of course, had little personal interest in the life of the plantation, and their ignorance prevented them from learning how to do things in the most improved and thorough manner. As a result of the system, fences were out of repair, gates were hanging half off the hinges, doors creaked, window-panes were out, plastering had fallen but was not replaced, weeds grew in the yard. As a rule, there was food for whites and blacks, but inside the house, and on the dining-room table, there was wanting that delicacy and refinement of touch and finish which can make a home the most convenient, comfortable, and attractive place in the world. Withal there was a waste of food and other materials which was sad. When freedom came, the slaves were almost as well fitted to begin life anew as the master, except in the matter of book-learning and ownership of property. The slave owner and his sons had mastered no special industry. They unconsciously had imbibed the feeling that manual labour was not the proper thing for them. On the other hand, the slaves, in many cases, had mastered some handicraft, and none were ashamed, and few unwilling, to labour.
Ever since I was old enough to think for myself, I've believed that, despite the cruel wrongs we faced, the black man gained nearly as much from slavery as the white man did. The damaging effects of the system weren't limited to the Negro. This was clearly shown in the life on our own plantation. The entire structure of slavery was set up to make labor seen as a mark of shame, of inferiority. Because of this, both races on the plantation tried to avoid work. The slave system where we lived largely stripped the white people of their spirit of self-reliance and self-help. My old master had many boys and girls, but to my knowledge, not a single one ever learned a trade or a specific area of productive work. The girls weren't taught to cook, sew, or manage the house. All of that was left to the slaves. Of course, the slaves had little personal connection to the plantation life, and their lack of knowledge stopped them from doing things in a more efficient and thorough way. Because of this system, fences were falling apart, gates were hanging half off their hinges, doors squeaked, windows were broken, plaster was missing but not replaced, and weeds grew in the yard. Generally, there was food for both whites and blacks, but inside the house, at the dining table, there was a lack of the delicacy and refinement that can make a home the most convenient, comfortable, and attractive place in the world. Additionally, there was a sad waste of food and other materials. When freedom came, the slaves were almost as prepared to start fresh as the master, except in terms of education and property ownership. The slave owner and his sons hadn't mastered any particular trade. They had unconsciously absorbed the idea that manual labor wasn't suitable for them. On the other hand, many of the slaves had learned some skills, and none were ashamed, and few unwilling, to work.
Finally the war closed, and the day of freedom came. It was a momentous and eventful day to all upon our plantation. We had been expecting it. Freedom was in the air, and had been for months. Deserting soldiers returning to their homes were to be seen every day. Others who had been discharged, or whose regiments had been paroled, were constantly passing near our place. The "grape-vine telegraph" was kept busy night and day. The news and mutterings of great events were swiftly carried from one plantation to another. In the fear of "Yankee" invasions, the silverware and other valuables were taken from the "big house," buried in the woods, and guarded by trusted slaves. Woe be to any one who would have attempted to disturb the buried treasure. The slaves would give the Yankee soldiers food, drink, clothing—anything but that which had been specifically intrusted to their care and honour. As the great day drew nearer, there was more singing in the slave quarters than usual. It was bolder, had more ring, and lasted later into the night. Most of the verses of the plantation songs had some reference to freedom. True, they had sung those same verses before, but they had been careful to explain that the "freedom" in these songs referred to the next world, and had no connection with life in this world. Now they gradually threw off the mask, and were not afraid to let it be known that the "freedom" in their songs meant freedom of the body in this world. The night before the eventful day, word was sent to the slave quarters to the effect that something unusual was going to take place at the "big house" the next morning. There was little, if any, sleep that night. All as excitement and expectancy. Early the next morning word was sent to all the slaves, old and young, to gather at the house. In company with my mother, brother, and sister, and a large number of other slaves, I went to the master's house. All of our master's family were either standing or seated on the veranda of the house, where they could see what was to take place and hear what was said. There was a feeling of deep interest, or perhaps sadness, on their faces, but not bitterness. As I now recall the impression they made upon me, they did not at the moment seem to be sad because of the loss of property, but rather because of parting with those whom they had reared and who were in many ways very close to them. The most distinct thing that I now recall in connection with the scene was that some man who seemed to be a stranger (a United States officer, I presume) made a little speech and then read a rather long paper—the Emancipation Proclamation, I think. After the reading we were told that we were all free, and could go when and where we pleased. My mother, who was standing by my side, leaned over and kissed her children, while tears of joy ran down her cheeks. She explained to us what it all meant, that this was the day for which she had been so long praying, but fearing that she would never live to see.
Finally, the war ended, and the day of freedom arrived. It was a significant and memorable day for everyone on our plantation. We had been anticipating it. Freedom was in the air, and it had been for months. Deserting soldiers returning home were seen every day. Others who had been discharged or whose regiments had been paroled were constantly passing by our place. The "grapevine telegraph" was busy day and night. The news and whispers of major events spread quickly from one plantation to another. In fear of "Yankee" invasions, the silverware and other valuables were taken from the "big house," buried in the woods, and guarded by trusted slaves. Anyone who tried to disturb the buried treasure would have faced dire consequences. The slaves would provide the Yankee soldiers with food, drink, clothing—anything except what had been specifically entrusted to their care and honor. As the big day approached, there was more singing in the slave quarters than usual. It was bolder, had more energy, and lasted longer into the night. Most of the verses of the plantation songs referenced freedom. True, they had sung those same verses before, but they had carefully explained that the "freedom" in these songs referred to the afterlife and had no connection to life in this world. Now they gradually dropped the pretense and were unafraid to let it be known that the "freedom" in their songs meant freedom of the body in this world. The night before the significant day, a message was sent to the slave quarters that something unusual was going to happen at the "big house" the next morning. There was little, if any, sleep that night. Everyone was filled with excitement and anticipation. Early the next morning, we were told that all the slaves, young and old, should gather at the house. Along with my mother, brother, and sister, and a large number of other slaves, I went to the master's house. The entire master's family was either standing or sitting on the veranda, where they could see what was about to happen and hear what was being said. There was a look of deep interest, or perhaps sadness, on their faces, but not bitterness. As I recall the impression they left on me, they didn’t seem sad because of the loss of property, but rather because of parting with those they had raised and who were in many ways very dear to them. The most distinct memory I have of that scene is a man who seemed to be a stranger (a United States officer, I suppose) giving a brief speech and then reading a fairly long document—the Emancipation Proclamation, I think. After the reading, we were told that we were all free and could go wherever we wanted, whenever we chose. My mother, standing beside me, leaned over and kissed her children as tears of joy streamed down her cheeks. She explained to us what it all meant, that this was the day she had long prayed for, fearing she would never live to see.
For some minutes there was great rejoicing, and thanksgiving, and wild scenes of ecstasy. But there was no feeling of bitterness. In fact, there was pity among the slaves for our former owners. The wild rejoicing on the part of the emancipated coloured people lasted but for a brief period, for I noticed that by the time they returned to their cabins there was a change in their feelings. The great responsibility of being free, of having charge of themselves, of having to think and plan for themselves and their children, seemed to take possession of them. It was very much like suddenly turning a youth of ten or twelve years out into the world to provide for himself. In a few hours the great questions with which the Anglo-Saxon race had been grappling for centuries had been thrown upon these people to be solved. These were the questions of a home, a living, the rearing of children, education, citizenship, and the establishment and support of churches. Was it any wonder that within a few hours the wild rejoicing ceased and a feeling of deep gloom seemed to pervade the slave quarters? To some it seemed that, now that they were in actual possession of it, freedom was a more serious thing than they had expected to find it. Some of the slaves were seventy or eighty years old; their best days were gone. They had no strength with which to earn a living in a strange place and among strange people, even if they had been sure where to find a new place of abode. To this class the problem seemed especially hard. Besides, deep down in their hearts there was a strange and peculiar attachment to "old Marster" and "old Missus," and to their children, which they found it hard to think of breaking off. With these they had spent in some cases nearly a half-century, and it was no light thing to think of parting. Gradually, one by one, stealthily at first, the older slaves began to wander from the slave quarters back to the "big house" to have a whispered conversation with their former owners as to the future.
For a few minutes, there was a lot of celebrating, thanking, and wild excitement. But there was no bitterness. In fact, the former slaves felt pity for their old owners. The joyful celebration among the newly freed people didn't last long; by the time they returned to their cabins, their feelings had changed. The heavy burden of being free, of taking care of themselves, and of needing to think and plan for themselves and their children weighed on them. It was like suddenly throwing a young kid, around ten or twelve years old, out into the world to fend for himself. Within a few hours, the big issues that the Anglo-Saxon community had been dealing with for centuries fell onto these people to figure out. They had to think about home, making a living, raising children, education, citizenship, and starting and supporting churches. Is it any surprise that after a few hours, the wild celebration faded away and a deep gloom settled over the slave quarters? For some, it felt like freedom was a much bigger responsibility than they had expected. Some of the former slaves were seventy or eighty years old; their best years were behind them. They had no strength to earn a living in an unfamiliar place among unfamiliar people, even if they knew where to find a new home. This situation seemed especially tough for them. Plus, deep down, they held a strange and strong attachment to "old Master" and "old Missus," as well as their children, making it painful to think about cutting ties. They had spent nearly half a century with them in some cases, and the idea of leaving was no easy thing. Gradually, one by one, and at first secretly, the older former slaves began to make their way from the slave quarters back to the "big house" to have quiet talks with their former owners about what the future would hold.
Chapter II. Boyhood Days
After the coming of freedom there were two points upon which practically all the people on our place were agreed, and I found that this was generally true throughout the South: that they must change their names, and that they must leave the old plantation for at least a few days or weeks in order that they might really feel sure that they were free.
After gaining freedom, nearly everyone in our community agreed on two things, and I found that this was generally the case throughout the South: they needed to change their names, and they had to leave the old plantation for at least a few days or weeks to truly feel that they were free.
In some way a feeling got among the coloured people that it was far from proper for them to bear the surname of their former owners, and a great many of them took other surnames. This was one of the first signs of freedom. When they were slaves, a coloured person was simply called "John" or "Susan." There was seldom occasion for more than the use of the one name. If "John" or "Susan" belonged to a white man by the name of "Hatcher," sometimes he was called "John Hatcher," or as often "Hatcher's John." But there was a feeling that "John Hatcher" or "Hatcher's John" was not the proper title by which to denote a freeman; and so in many cases "John Hatcher" was changed to "John S. Lincoln" or "John S. Sherman," the initial "S" standing for no name, it being simply a part of what the coloured man proudly called his "entitles."
In a way, there was a feeling among Black people that it wasn’t right for them to carry the surname of their former owners, and many decided to adopt new last names. This was one of the first signs of freedom. When they were enslaved, a Black person was usually just called "John" or "Susan." There was rarely a need for more than just that name. If "John" or "Susan" was owned by a white man named "Hatcher," sometimes he was referred to as "John Hatcher," or just "Hatcher's John." However, there was a sense that "John Hatcher" or "Hatcher's John" was not the proper title for a free person; so in many cases, "John Hatcher" was changed to "John S. Lincoln" or "John S. Sherman," with the initial "S" representing no specific name, as it was just part of what the Black man proudly called his "entitles."
As I have stated, most of the coloured people left the old plantation for a short while at least, so as to be sure, it seemed, that they could leave and try their freedom on to see how it felt. After they had remained away for a while, many of the older slaves, especially, returned to their old homes and made some kind of contract with their former owners by which they remained on the estate.
As I mentioned, most of the people of color left the old plantation for a little while, it seemed, to make sure they could leave and experience their freedom to see what it felt like. After being away for some time, many of the older slaves, in particular, returned to their old homes and made some sort of agreement with their former owners to stay on the estate.
My mother's husband, who was the stepfather of my brother John and myself, did not belong to the same owners as did my mother. In fact, he seldom came to our plantation. I remember seeing him there perhaps once a year, that being about Christmas time. In some way, during the war, by running away and following the Federal soldiers, it seems, he found his way into the new state of West Virginia. As soon as freedom was declared, he sent for my mother to come to the Kanawha Valley, in West Virginia. At that time a journey from Virginia over the mountains to West Virginia was rather a tedious and in some cases a painful undertaking. What little clothing and few household goods we had were placed in a cart, but the children walked the greater portion of the distance, which was several hundred miles.
My mother's husband, who was the stepfather of my brother John and me, didn’t belong to the same owners as my mother. In fact, he rarely visited our plantation. I remember seeing him there maybe once a year, usually around Christmas. Somehow, during the war, by running away and following the Union soldiers, he ended up in the new state of West Virginia. As soon as freedom was declared, he sent for my mother to come to the Kanawha Valley in West Virginia. Back then, traveling from Virginia over the mountains to West Virginia was quite a long and sometimes painful journey. The little clothing and few household items we had were loaded into a cart, but the children walked most of the way, which was several hundred miles.
I do not think any of us ever had been very far from the plantation, and the taking of a long journey into another state was quite an event. The parting from our former owners and the members of our own race on the plantation was a serious occasion. From the time of our parting till their death we kept up a correspondence with the older members of the family, and in later years we have kept in touch with those who were the younger members. We were several weeks making the trip, and most of the time we slept in the open air and did our cooking over a log fire out-of-doors. One night I recall that we camped near an abandoned log cabin, and my mother decided to build a fire in that for cooking, and afterward to make a "pallet" on the floor for our sleeping. Just as the fire had gotten well started a large black snake fully a yard and a half long dropped down the chimney and ran out on the floor. Of course we at once abandoned that cabin. Finally we reached our destination—a little town called Malden, which is about five miles from Charleston, the present capital of the state.
I don't think any of us had ever ventured far from the plantation, so taking a long trip to another state was a big deal. Saying goodbye to our former owners and our own community on the plantation was a serious moment. From the time we left until their passing, we maintained correspondence with the older family members, and in later years, stayed in touch with the younger ones. It took us several weeks to make the journey, and we mostly slept outdoors and cooked over a campfire. I remember one night we camped near an old log cabin, and my mother decided to use that for cooking and then make a sleeping area on the floor. Just as the fire was getting going, a large black snake, about a yard and a half long, fell down the chimney and slithered across the floor. Naturally, we quickly left that cabin. Eventually, we reached our destination—a small town called Malden, which is about five miles from Charleston, the current capital of the state.
At that time salt-mining was the great industry in that part of West Virginia, and the little town of Malden was right in the midst of the salt-furnaces. My stepfather had already secured a job at a salt-furnace, and he had also secured a little cabin for us to live in. Our new house was no better than the one we had left on the old plantation in Virginia. In fact, in one respect it was worse. Notwithstanding the poor condition of our plantation cabin, we were at all times sure of pure air. Our new home was in the midst of a cluster of cabins crowded closely together, and as there were no sanitary regulations, the filth about the cabins was often intolerable. Some of our neighbours were coloured people, and some were the poorest and most ignorant and degraded white people. It was a motley mixture. Drinking, gambling, quarrels, fights, and shockingly immoral practices were frequent. All who lived in the little town were in one way or another connected with the salt business. Though I was a mere child, my stepfather put me and my brother at work in one of the furnaces. Often I began work as early as four o'clock in the morning.
At that time, salt mining was the main industry in that part of West Virginia, and the small town of Malden was right in the middle of the salt furnaces. My stepfather had already landed a job at one of the salt furnaces, and he had also found a small cabin for us to live in. Our new place wasn’t any better than the one we had left on the old plantation in Virginia. In fact, in one way, it was worse. Despite the poor condition of our plantation cabin, we were always assured of clean air. Our new home was surrounded by a cluster of cabins packed too close together, and since there were no sanitation regulations, the filth around the cabins was often unbearable. Some of our neighbors were Black, while others were the poorest, most ignorant, and degraded white people. It was a mixed crowd. Drinking, gambling, fights, and shockingly immoral behavior were common. Everyone who lived in the small town was somehow connected to the salt business. Even though I was just a child, my stepfather put me and my brother to work at one of the furnaces. Often, I started working as early as four o'clock in the morning.
The first thing I ever learned in the way of book knowledge was while working in this salt-furnace. Each salt-packer had his barrels marked with a certain number. The number allotted to my stepfather was "18." At the close of the day's work the boss of the packers would come around and put "18" on each of our barrels, and I soon learned to recognize that figure wherever I saw it, and after a while got to the point where I could make that figure, though I knew nothing about any other figures or letters.
The first thing I ever learned from books was while working in this salt-furnace. Each salt-packer had their barrels marked with a specific number. My stepfather's number was "18." At the end of the day, the supervisor of the packers would come around and mark "18" on all our barrels, and I quickly learned to recognize that number whenever I saw it. Eventually, I got to the point where I could write that number, even though I didn’t know anything about any other numbers or letters.
From the time that I can remember having any thoughts about anything, I recall that I had an intense longing to learn to read. I determined, when quite a small child, that, if I accomplished nothing else in life, I would in some way get enough education to enable me to read common books and newspapers. Soon after we got settled in some manner in our new cabin in West Virginia, I induced my mother to get hold of a book for me. How or where she got it I do not know, but in some way she procured an old copy of Webster's "blue-back" spelling-book, which contained the alphabet, followed by such meaningless words as "ab," "ba," "ca," "da." I began at once to devour this book, and I think that it was the first one I ever had in my hands. I had learned from somebody that the way to begin to read was to learn the alphabet, so I tried in all the ways I could think of to learn it,—all of course without a teacher, for I could find no one to teach me. At that time there was not a single member of my race anywhere near us who could read, and I was too timid to approach any of the white people. In some way, within a few weeks, I mastered the greater portion of the alphabet. In all my efforts to learn to read my mother shared fully my ambition, and sympathized with me and aided me in every way that she could. Though she was totally ignorant, she had high ambitions for her children, and a large fund of good, hard, common sense, which seemed to enable her to meet and master every situation. If I have done anything in life worth attention, I feel sure that I inherited the disposition from my mother.
From the time I can remember having thoughts about anything, I recall having a strong desire to learn to read. As a small child, I decided that no matter what else I achieved in life, I would somehow get enough education to read books and newspapers. Shortly after we settled into our new cabin in West Virginia, I convinced my mother to find a book for me. I don’t know how or where she got it, but somehow she managed to get an old copy of Webster's "blue-back" spelling book, which had the alphabet and some simple words like "ab," "ba," "ca," "da." I immediately started to go through this book, and I believe it was the first book I ever held. I had learned from someone that the way to start reading was to know the alphabet, so I tried every method I could think of to learn it—all without a teacher, since I couldn’t find anyone to help me. At that time, there wasn't a single person of my race nearby who could read, and I was too shy to approach any white people. Somehow, within a few weeks, I managed to learn most of the alphabet. My mother fully supported my ambition and empathized with me, doing everything she could to help. Even though she had no formal education, she had big dreams for her children and a lot of practical common sense, which helped her handle every situation. If I've accomplished anything noteworthy in life, I'm sure I inherited that determination from my mother.
In the midst of my struggles and longing for an education, a young coloured boy who had learned to read in the state of Ohio came to Malden. As soon as the coloured people found out that he could read, a newspaper was secured, and at the close of nearly every day's work this young man would be surrounded by a group of men and women who were anxious to hear him read the news contained in the papers. How I used to envy this man! He seemed to me to be the one young man in all the world who ought to be satisfied with his attainments.
In the midst of my struggles and desire for an education, a young Black boy who learned to read in Ohio came to Malden. As soon as the Black community found out he could read, they got a newspaper, and by the end of nearly every workday, this young man would be surrounded by a group of men and women eager to hear him read the news from the papers. I used to envy this man! To me, he seemed like the one young man in the world who should be completely satisfied with what he had achieved.
About this time the question of having some kind of a school opened for the coloured children in the village began to be discussed by members of the race. As it would be the first school for Negro children that had ever been opened in that part of Virginia, it was, of course, to be a great event, and the discussion excited the wildest interest. The most perplexing question was where to find a teacher. The young man from Ohio who had learned to read the papers was considered, but his age was against him. In the midst of the discussion about a teacher, another young coloured man from Ohio, who had been a soldier, in some way found his way into town. It was soon learned that he possessed considerable education, and he was engaged by the coloured people to teach their first school. As yet no free schools had been started for coloured people in that section, hence each family agreed to pay a certain amount per month, with the understanding that the teacher was to "board 'round"—that is, spend a day with each family. This was not bad for the teacher, for each family tried to provide the very best on the day the teacher was to be its guest. I recall that I looked forward with an anxious appetite to the "teacher's day" at our little cabin.
Around this time, the idea of opening a school for Black children in the village started to be talked about among community members. Since it would be the first school for Black children in that part of Virginia, it promised to be a significant event, sparking a lot of excitement. The biggest challenge was finding a teacher. A young man from Ohio who had learned to read the newspapers was considered, but his youth was a drawback. In the midst of the conversation about finding a teacher, another young Black man from Ohio, who had served as a soldier, somehow made his way into town. It quickly became known that he had a good level of education, and the community hired him to teach their first school. At that time, there were no free schools for Black people in the area, so each family agreed to pay a certain amount each month, with the understanding that the teacher would "board around" — spending a day with each family. This arrangement worked out well for the teacher since each family tried to serve the best meal possible on the day he visited. I remember eagerly anticipating the "teacher's day" at our little cabin.
This experience of a whole race beginning to go to school for the first time, presents one of the most interesting studies that has ever occurred in connection with the development of any race. Few people who were not right in the midst of the scenes can form any exact idea of the intense desire which the people of my race showed for an education. As I have stated, it was a whole race trying to go to school. Few were too young, and none too old, to make the attempt to learn. As fast as any kind of teachers could be secured, not only were day-schools filled, but night-schools as well. The great ambition of the older people was to try to learn to read the Bible before they died. With this end in view men and women who were fifty or seventy-five years old would often be found in the night-school. Some day-schools were formed soon after freedom, but the principal book studied in the Sunday-school was the spelling-book. Day-school, night-school, Sunday-school, were always crowded, and often many had to be turned away for want of room.
This experience of an entire race starting school for the first time is one of the most fascinating studies related to the development of any race. Few people who weren't directly involved can truly grasp the intense desire that my community had for an education. As I mentioned, it was an entire race eager to attend school. There were hardly any who were too young, and none too old, to try to learn. As soon as any teachers were available, not only were day schools packed, but night schools were as well. The main goal of the older folks was to learn how to read the Bible before they passed away. With this in mind, men and women who were fifty or even seventy-five years old could often be found in the night school. Some day schools emerged soon after emancipation, but the primary text studied in Sunday school was the spelling book. Day schools, night schools, and Sunday schools were always full, and often many had to be turned away due to lack of space.
The opening of the school in the Kanawha Valley, however, brought to me one of the keenest disappointments that I ever experienced. I had been working in a salt-furnace for several months, and my stepfather had discovered that I had a financial value, and so, when the school opened, he decided that he could not spare me from my work. This decision seemed to cloud my every ambition. The disappointment was made all the more severe by reason of the fact that my place of work was where I could see the happy children passing to and from school mornings and afternoons. Despite this disappointment, however, I determined that I would learn something, anyway. I applied myself with greater earnestness than ever to the mastering of what was in the "blue-back" speller.
The opening of the school in the Kanawha Valley, however, brought me one of the most disappointing moments I ever faced. I had been working in a salt furnace for several months, and my stepfather realized that I had financial value, so when the school opened, he decided he couldn’t let me leave my job. This decision overshadowed all my ambitions. The disappointment was even more intense because I worked where I could see happy kids going to and from school in the mornings and afternoons. Despite this setback, I resolved to learn something, anyway. I dedicated myself more than ever to mastering what was in the "blue-back" speller.
My mother sympathized with me in my disappointment, and sought to comfort me in all the ways she could, and to help me find a way to learn. After a while I succeeded in making arrangements with the teacher to give me some lessons at night, after the day's work was done. These night lessons were so welcome that I think I learned more at night than the other children did during the day. My own experiences in the night-school gave me faith in the night-school idea, with which, in after years, I had to do both at Hampton and Tuskegee. But my boyish heart was still set upon going to the day-school, and I let no opportunity slip to push my case. Finally I won, and was permitted to go to the school in the day for a few months, with the understanding that I was to rise early in the morning and work in the furnace till nine o'clock, and return immediately after school closed in the afternoon for at least two more hours of work.
My mom understood my disappointment and tried to comfort me in every way she could, wanting to help me find a way to learn. After a while, I was able to work things out with the teacher to get some lessons at night, after the day's work was done. Those night lessons were so valuable that I think I learned more at night than the other kids did during the day. My own experiences in night school gave me confidence in the night school idea, which I later dealt with at both Hampton and Tuskegee. But my youthful heart was still set on attending day school, and I jumped at every chance to advocate for it. In the end, I succeeded and was allowed to go to school during the day for a few months, with the understanding that I would wake up early in the morning to work in the furnace until nine o'clock, and then come back right after school ended in the afternoon for at least two more hours of work.
The schoolhouse was some distance from the furnace, and as I had to work till nine o'clock, and the school opened at nine, I found myself in a difficulty. School would always be begun before I reached it, and sometimes my class had recited. To get around this difficulty I yielded to a temptation for which most people, I suppose, will condemn me; but since it is a fact, I might as well state it. I have great faith in the power and influence of facts. It is seldom that anything is permanently gained by holding back a fact. There was a large clock in a little office in the furnace. This clock, of course, all the hundred or more workmen depended upon to regulate their hours of beginning and ending the day's work. I got the idea that the way for me to reach school on time was to move the clock hands from half-past eight up to the nine o'clock mark. This I found myself doing morning after morning, till the furnace "boss" discovered that something was wrong, and locked the clock in a case. I did not mean to inconvenience anybody. I simply meant to reach that schoolhouse in time.
The schoolhouse was a bit far from the furnace, and since I had to work until nine o'clock while school started at nine, I found myself in a tough spot. School would always be in session by the time I got there, and sometimes my class had already gone. To deal with this issue, I gave in to a temptation that most people, I guess, would judge me for; but since it's true, I might as well admit it. I really believe in the power and impact of facts. It's rare that anything is truly gained by ignoring a fact. There was a big clock in a small office at the furnace. This clock was what all the hundred or so workers relied on to keep track of their working hours. I figured the way to get to school on time was to move the clock hands from half-past eight to the nine o'clock mark. I found myself doing this every morning until the furnace manager noticed something was off and locked the clock in a case. I didn't intend to cause any inconvenience to anyone. I just wanted to get to that schoolhouse on time.
When, however, I found myself at the school for the first time, I also found myself confronted with two other difficulties. In the first place, I found that all the other children wore hats or caps on their heads, and I had neither hat nor cap. In fact, I do not remember that up to the time of going to school I had ever worn any kind of covering upon my head, nor do I recall that either I or anybody else had even thought anything about the need of covering for my head. But, of course, when I saw how all the other boys were dressed, I began to feel quite uncomfortable. As usual, I put the case before my mother, and she explained to me that she had no money with which to buy a "store hat," which was a rather new institution at that time among the members of my race and was considered quite the thing for young and old to own, but that she would find a way to help me out of the difficulty. She accordingly got two pieces of "homespun" (jeans) and sewed them together, and I was soon the proud possessor of my first cap.
When I went to school for the first time, I faced two other challenges. First, I noticed that all the other kids were wearing hats or caps, while I didn’t have either. In fact, I can’t remember ever wearing a hat before starting school, nor can I recall anyone thinking it was necessary to cover my head. But when I saw how all the other boys were dressed, I started to feel really uncomfortable. As usual, I talked to my mom about it, and she explained that she didn’t have any money to buy a "store hat," which was a relatively new trend among our community and was seen as something important for both kids and adults to have. However, she promised to help me find a solution. She managed to get two pieces of "homespun" (jeans) fabric and stitched them together, and soon enough, I proudly had my first cap.
The lesson that my mother taught me in this has always remained with me, and I have tried as best as I could to teach it to others. I have always felt proud, whenever I think of the incident, that my mother had strength of character enough not to be led into the temptation of seeming to be that which she was not—of trying to impress my schoolmates and others with the fact that she was able to buy me a "store hat" when she was not. I have always felt proud that she refused to go into debt for that which she did not have the money to pay for. Since that time I have owned many kinds of caps and hats, but never one of which I have felt so proud as of the cap made of the two pieces of cloth sewed together by my mother. I have noted the fact, but without satisfaction, I need not add, that several of the boys who began their careers with "store hats" and who were my schoolmates and used to join in the sport that was made of me because I had only a "homespun" cap, have ended their careers in the penitentiary, while others are not able now to buy any kind of hat.
The lesson my mother taught me in this has always stuck with me, and I've tried my best to pass it on to others. I've always felt proud, whenever I think about that incident, that my mother had the strength of character not to give in to the temptation of pretending to be something she wasn't—of trying to impress my classmates or anyone else by buying me a "store hat" when she couldn't afford it. I’ve always been proud that she refused to go into debt for things she couldn’t pay for. Since then, I've owned all kinds of caps and hats, but none have made me prouder than the cap my mother made by sewing two pieces of cloth together. I've noticed, though not with satisfaction, that several of the boys who started off with "store hats," who were my classmates and joined in teasing me for having only a "homespun" cap, have ended up in prison, while others can’t even afford any kind of hat now.
My second difficulty was with regard to my name, or rather A name. From the time when I could remember anything, I had been called simply "Booker." Before going to school it had never occurred to me that it was needful or appropriate to have an additional name. When I heard the school-roll called, I noticed that all of the children had at least two names, and some of them indulged in what seemed to me the extravagance of having three. I was in deep perplexity, because I knew that the teacher would demand of me at least two names, and I had only one. By the time the occasion came for the enrolling of my name, an idea occurred to me which I thought would make me equal to the situation; and so, when the teacher asked me what my full name was, I calmly told him "Booker Washington," as if I had been called by that name all my life; and by that name I have since been known. Later in my life I found that my mother had given me the name of "Booker Taliaferro" soon after I was born, but in some way that part of my name seemed to disappear and for a long while was forgotten, but as soon as I found out about it I revived it, and made my full name "Booker Taliaferro Washington." I think there are not many men in our country who have had the privilege of naming themselves in the way that I have.
My second challenge was related to my name, or rather A name. From the time I could remember, I was simply called "Booker." Before starting school, it never crossed my mind that I needed or should have another name. When I heard the teacher calling roll, I noticed that all the kids had at least two names, and some even had three, which to me seemed extravagant. I was really confused because I knew the teacher would ask for at least two names, and I only had one. When it was my turn to enroll, I came up with an idea that I thought would solve the problem; so, when the teacher asked for my full name, I confidently said "Booker Washington," as if I had always been called that. From that point on, that’s what I was known as. Later in life, I learned that my mother had actually named me "Booker Taliaferro" right after I was born, but somehow that part of my name faded away and was forgotten for a long time. As soon as I found out about it, I decided to revive it, and I made my full name "Booker Taliaferro Washington." I think not many men in our country have had the chance to name themselves the way I have.
More than once I have tried to picture myself in the position of a boy or man with an honoured and distinguished ancestry which I could trace back through a period of hundreds of years, and who had not only inherited a name, but fortune and a proud family homestead; and yet I have sometimes had the feeling that if I had inherited these, and had been a member of a more popular race, I should have been inclined to yield to the temptation of depending upon my ancestry and my colour to do that for me which I should do for myself. Years ago I resolved that because I had no ancestry myself I would leave a record of which my children would be proud, and which might encourage them to still higher effort.
More than once I've tried to imagine myself as a boy or man with a respected and distinguished family background that I could trace back for hundreds of years. This person wouldn’t just have a name but also wealth and a proud family home. Sometimes, I’ve felt that if I had those advantages and belonged to a more popular group, I might be tempted to rely on my heritage and my skin color to accomplish things that I should be doing for myself. Years ago, I decided that since I have no family legacy, I would create a legacy that my children could be proud of, one that might inspire them to strive for even greater things.
The world should not pass judgment upon the Negro, and especially the Negro youth, too quickly or too harshly. The Negro boy has obstacles, discouragements, and temptations to battle with that are little known to those not situated as he is. When a white boy undertakes a task, it is taken for granted that he will succeed. On the other hand, people are usually surprised if the Negro boy does not fail. In a word, the Negro youth starts out with the presumption against him.
The world should not judge Black people, especially Black youth, too quickly or too harshly. The Black boy faces obstacles, discouragements, and temptations that are little understood by those who aren’t in his situation. When a white boy takes on a task, it’s assumed he will succeed. In contrast, people are often surprised if the Black boy doesn’t fail. In short, Black youth start off with a presumption against them.
The influence of ancestry, however, is important in helping forward any individual or race, if too much reliance is not placed upon it. Those who constantly direct attention to the Negro youth's moral weaknesses, and compare his advancement with that of white youths, do not consider the influence of the memories which cling about the old family homesteads. I have no idea, as I have stated elsewhere, who my grandmother was. I have, or have had, uncles and aunts and cousins, but I have no knowledge as to where most of them are. My case will illustrate that of hundreds of thousands of black people in every part of our country. The very fact that the white boy is conscious that, if he fails in life, he will disgrace the whole family record, extending back through many generations, is of tremendous value in helping him to resist temptations. The fact that the individual has behind and surrounding him proud family history and connection serves as a stimulus to help him to overcome obstacles when striving for success.
The impact of ancestry is significant in advancing any individual or group, provided it's not overly relied upon. Those who consistently focus on the moral shortcomings of Black youth and compare their progress to that of white youth overlook the influence of memories tied to their family histories. As I mentioned before, I don’t know who my grandmother was. I have had uncles, aunts, and cousins, but I have no idea where most of them are now. My situation reflects that of hundreds of thousands of Black people across our country. The simple fact that a white boy understands that if he fails in life, he might shame his entire family legacy, which goes back many generations, is incredibly valuable in helping him resist temptations. Having a proud family history and connections behind him serves as motivation to help him overcome challenges while pursuing success.
The time that I was permitted to attend school during the day was short, and my attendance was irregular. It was not long before I had to stop attending day-school altogether, and devote all of my time again to work. I resorted to the night-school again. In fact, the greater part of the education I secured in my boyhood was gathered through the night-school after my day's work was done. I had difficulty often in securing a satisfactory teacher. Sometimes, after I had secured some one to teach me at night, I would find, much to my disappointment, that the teacher knew but little more than I did. Often I would have to walk several miles at night in order to recite my night-school lessons. There was never a time in my youth, no matter how dark and discouraging the days might be, when one resolve did not continually remain with me, and that was a determination to secure an education at any cost.
The time I was allowed to go to school during the day was short, and my attendance was inconsistent. Before long, I had to stop going to day school entirely and dedicate all my time to work again. I went back to night school. In fact, most of the education I received in my childhood came from night school after my day’s work was done. I often struggled to find a good teacher. Sometimes, after I finally found someone to teach me at night, I would be disappointed to discover that the teacher knew only a little more than I did. I frequently had to walk several miles at night to review my night school lessons. No matter how dark and discouraging my days were, there was never a moment in my youth when one determination didn’t stay with me: I was resolved to get an education at any cost.
Soon after we moved to West Virginia, my mother adopted into our family, notwithstanding our poverty, an orphan boy, to whom afterward we gave the name of James B. Washington. He has ever since remained a member of the family.
Soon after we moved to West Virginia, my mother brought an orphan boy into our family, despite our financial struggles. We later named him James B. Washington. He has been a part of the family ever since.
After I had worked in the salt-furnace for some time, work was secured for me in a coal-mine which was operated mainly for the purpose of securing fuel for the salt-furnace. Work in the coal-mine I always dreaded. One reason for this was that any one who worked in a coal-mine was always unclean, at least while at work, and it was a very hard job to get one's skin clean after the day's work was over. Then it was fully a mile from the opening of the coal-mine to the face of the coal, and all, of course, was in the blackest darkness. I do not believe that one ever experiences anywhere else such darkness as he does in a coal-mine. The mine was divided into a large number of different "rooms" or departments, and, as I never was able to learn the location of all these "rooms," I many times found myself lost in the mine. To add to the horror of being lost, sometimes my light would go out, and then, if I did not happen to have a match, I would wander about in the darkness until by chance I found some one to give me a light. The work was not only hard, but it was dangerous. There was always the danger of being blown to pieces by a premature explosion of powder, or of being crushed by falling slate. Accidents from one or the other of these causes were frequently occurring, and this kept me in constant fear. Many children of the tenderest years were compelled then, as is now true I fear, in most coal-mining districts, to spend a large part of their lives in these coal-mines, with little opportunity to get an education; and, what is worse, I have often noted that, as a rule, young boys who begin life in a coal-mine are often physically and mentally dwarfed. They soon lose ambition to do anything else than to continue as a coal-miner.
After I had worked in the salt furnace for a while, I got a job in a coal mine that mainly provided fuel for the salt furnace. I always dreaded working in the coal mine. One reason was that anyone who worked there was always dirty, at least while working, and it was really hard to get clean after the day was done. It was also a mile from the entrance of the mine to where the coal was, and it was completely pitch black. I don’t think you can find darkness like that anywhere else. The mine was divided into a lot of different "rooms" or sections, and since I never could remember where all these "rooms" were, I often got lost in the mine. To make it worse, sometimes my light would go out, and if I didn't have a match, I would wander in the dark until I randomly bumped into someone who could help me with a light. The work was not just tough; it was dangerous too. There was always the risk of being blown apart by a premature explosion, or getting crushed by falling rock. Accidents from one or the other of these things happened often, which kept me constantly on edge. Many young children had to spend a big part of their lives in these coal mines, as sadly still happens in many mining areas today, with little chance of getting an education. Even worse, I've noticed that young boys who start working in coal mines often end up physically and mentally stunted. They quickly lose the drive to do anything other than remain coal miners.
In those days, and later as a young man, I used to try to picture in my imagination the feelings and ambitions of a white boy with absolutely no limit placed upon his aspirations and activities. I used to envy the white boy who had no obstacles placed in the way of his becoming a Congressman, Governor, Bishop, or President by reason of the accident of his birth or race. I used to picture the way that I would act under such circumstances; how I would begin at the bottom and keep rising until I reached the highest round of success.
In those days, and later as a young man, I would try to imagine the feelings and ambitions of a white boy who faced no limits on his dreams and activities. I envied the white boy who had no barriers preventing him from becoming a Congressman, Governor, Bishop, or President just because of his birth or race. I imagined how I would behave in that situation; how I would start from the bottom and keep climbing until I reached the highest level of success.
In later years, I confess that I do not envy the white boy as I once did. I have learned that success is to be measured not so much by the position that one has reached in life as by the obstacles which he has overcome while trying to succeed. Looked at from this standpoint, I almost reached the conclusion that often the Negro boy's birth and connection with an unpopular race is an advantage, so far as real life is concerned. With few exceptions, the Negro youth must work harder and must perform his tasks even better than a white youth in order to secure recognition. But out of the hard and unusual struggle through which he is compelled to pass, he gets a strength, a confidence, that one misses whose pathway is comparatively smooth by reason of birth and race.
In later years, I admit I don’t envy the white boy like I used to. I've come to realize that success shouldn’t just be measured by where someone ends up in life, but by the challenges they've overcome while trying to achieve it. From this perspective, I've nearly concluded that for many, being born into an unpopular race can actually give the Negro boy an advantage in real life. With few exceptions, Negro youth must work harder and perform even better than white youth to gain recognition. But from the tough and unique struggles they face, they gain a strength and confidence that someone with a smoother path due to their birth and race might miss out on.
From any point of view, I had rather be what I am, a member of the Negro race, than be able to claim membership with the most favoured of any other race. I have always been made sad when I have heard members of any race claiming rights or privileges, or certain badges of distinction, on the ground simply that they were members of this or that race, regardless of their own individual worth or attainments. I have been made to feel sad for such persons because I am conscious of the fact that mere connection with what is known as a superior race will not permanently carry an individual forward unless he has individual worth, and mere connection with what is regarded as an inferior race will not finally hold an individual back if he possesses intrinsic, individual merit. Every persecuted individual and race should get much consolation out of the great human law, which is universal and eternal, that merit, no matter under what skin found, is, in the long run, recognized and rewarded. This I have said here, not to call attention to myself as an individual, but to the race to which I am proud to belong.
From any perspective, I would rather be who I am, a member of the Black community, than claim to be part of the most privileged group of any other race. I've always felt sad when I've heard individuals from any race asserting their rights or privileges or certain marks of distinction just because they belong to this or that race, without considering their own personal worth or achievements. I feel pity for those people because I understand that simply being associated with what's considered a superior race won’t ensure someone’s success unless they have personal value, and being linked to what’s seen as an inferior race won’t ultimately hold someone back if they have genuine individual merit. Every marginalized person and group should take comfort in the great human truth, which is universal and timeless: that true merit, regardless of the skin it's found under, is ultimately recognized and rewarded. I'm sharing this not to draw attention to myself as an individual, but to highlight the race I’m proud to be a part of.
Chapter III. The Struggle For An Education
One day, while at work in the coal-mine, I happened to overhear two miners talking about a great school for coloured people somewhere in Virginia. This was the first time that I had ever heard anything about any kind of school or college that was more pretentious than the little coloured school in our town.
One day, while I was working in the coal mine, I heard two miners discussing an amazing school for Black people somewhere in Virginia. This was the first time I had ever heard of any school or college that seemed more impressive than the small Black school in our town.
In the darkness of the mine I noiselessly crept as close as I could to the two men who were talking. I heard one tell the other that not only was the school established for the members of any race, but the opportunities that it provided by which poor but worthy students could work out all or a part of the cost of a board, and at the same time be taught some trade or industry.
In the dark of the mine, I quietly moved as close as I could to the two men who were talking. I heard one of them say that the school wasn't just for members of a specific race; it also offered opportunities for poor but deserving students to cover all or part of their board costs while learning a trade or skill.
As they went on describing the school, it seemed to me that it must be the greatest place on earth, and not even Heaven presented more attractions for me at that time than did the Hampton Normal and Agricultural Institute in Virginia, about which these men were talking. I resolved at once to go to that school, although I had no idea where it was, or how many miles away, or how I was going to reach it; I remembered only that I was on fire constantly with one ambition, and that was to go to Hampton. This thought was with me day and night.
As they kept talking about the school, it felt to me like it had to be the best place on earth, and not even Heaven seemed more appealing to me at that moment than the Hampton Normal and Agricultural Institute in Virginia that they were discussing. I decided right then to go to that school, even though I had no clue where it was, how far away it was, or how I would get there; all I knew was that I was fueled by one ambition, and that was to go to Hampton. This thought stayed with me day and night.
After hearing of the Hampton Institute, I continued to work for a few months longer in the coal-mine. While at work there, I heard of a vacant position in the household of General Lewis Ruffner, the owner of the salt-furnace and coal-mine. Mrs. Viola Ruffner, the wife of General Ruffner, was a "Yankee" woman from Vermont. Mrs. Ruffner had a reputation all through the vicinity for being very strict with her servants, and especially with the boys who tried to serve her. Few of them remained with her more than two or three weeks. They all left with the same excuse: she was too strict. I decided, however, that I would rather try Mrs. Ruffner's house than remain in the coal-mine, and so my mother applied to her for the vacant position. I was hired at a salary of $5 per month.
After hearing about the Hampton Institute, I kept working in the coal mine for a few more months. While I was there, I learned about a job opening in the household of General Lewis Ruffner, who owned the salt furnace and coal mine. Mrs. Viola Ruffner, General Ruffner's wife, was from Vermont and known for being very strict with her staff, especially the boys who served her. Not many lasted more than two or three weeks. They all left with the same excuse: she was too harsh. Still, I decided I'd prefer to give Mrs. Ruffner's household a shot instead of staying in the coal mine, so my mom reached out to her about the job. I got hired at a salary of $5 a month.
I had heard so much about Mrs. Ruffner's severity that I was almost afraid to see her, and trembled when I went into her presence. I had not lived with her many weeks, however, before I began to understand her. I soon began to learn that, first of all, she wanted everything kept clean about her, that she wanted things done promptly and systematically, and that at the bottom of everything she wanted absolute honesty and frankness. Nothing must be sloven or slipshod; every door, every fence, must be kept in repair.
I had heard so much about Mrs. Ruffner's strictness that I was almost scared to meet her, and I shook when I stepped into her presence. However, it didn't take long for me to start understanding her after living with her for a few weeks. I quickly learned that, above all else, she wanted everything to be kept clean around her, that she preferred things to be done quickly and in an organized way, and that, fundamentally, she valued complete honesty and straightforwardness. Nothing could be messy or careless; every door and every fence had to be in good condition.
I cannot now recall how long I lived with Mrs. Ruffner before going to Hampton, but I think it must have been a year and a half. At any rate, I here repeat what I have said more than once before, that the lessons that I learned in the home of Mrs. Ruffner were as valuable to me as any education I have ever gotten anywhere else. Even to this day I never see bits of paper scattered around a house or in the street that I do not want to pick them up at once. I never see a filthy yard that I do not want to clean it, a paling off of a fence that I do not want to put it on, an unpainted or unwhitewashed house that I do not want to paint or whitewash it, or a button off one's clothes, or a grease-spot on them or on a floor, that I do not want to call attention to it.
I can’t remember exactly how long I lived with Mrs. Ruffner before heading to Hampton, but I think it must have been about a year and a half. In any case, I want to emphasize once again what I’ve mentioned before: the lessons I learned in Mrs. Ruffner’s home were as valuable to me as any education I've received anywhere else. Even now, whenever I see bits of paper scattered around a house or on the street, I feel the urge to pick them up immediately. I can’t look at a messy yard without wanting to clean it up, a broken fence without wanting to fix it, or an unpainted house without wishing to paint or whitewash it. I also can’t ignore a missing button on someone’s clothes or a grease spot on them or on the floor without wanting to point it out.
From fearing Mrs. Ruffner I soon learned to look upon her as one of my best friends. When she found that she could trust me she did so implicitly. During the one or two winters that I was with her she gave me an opportunity to go to school for an hour in the day during a portion of the winter months, but most of my studying was done at night, sometimes alone, sometimes under some one whom I could hire to teach me. Mrs. Ruffner always encouraged and sympathized with me in all my efforts to get an education. It was while living with her that I began to get together my first library. I secured a dry-goods box, knocked out one side of it, put some shelves in it, and began putting into it every kind of book that I could get my hands upon, and called it my "library."
At first, I was afraid of Mrs. Ruffner, but I soon came to see her as one of my closest friends. Once she realized she could trust me, she relied on me completely. During the one or two winters I lived with her, she gave me the chance to attend school for an hour each day during part of the winter months, but most of my studying happened at night—sometimes by myself, and sometimes with someone I could hire to teach me. Mrs. Ruffner always encouraged and supported me in all my efforts to get an education. It was while living with her that I started to build my first library. I found a dry-goods box, removed one side, added some shelves, and began filling it with every kind of book I could find, calling it my "library."
Notwithstanding my success at Mrs. Ruffner's I did not give up the idea of going to the Hampton Institute. In the fall of 1872 I determined to make an effort to get there, although, as I have stated, I had no definite idea of the direction in which Hampton was, or of what it would cost to go there. I do not think that any one thoroughly sympathized with me in my ambition to go to Hampton unless it was my mother, and she was troubled with a grave fear that I was starting out on a "wild-goose chase." At any rate, I got only a half-hearted consent from her that I might start. The small amount of money that I had earned had been consumed by my stepfather and the remainder of the family, with the exception of a very few dollars, and so I had very little with which to buy clothes and pay my travelling expenses. My brother John helped me all that he could, but of course that was not a great deal, for his work was in the coal-mine, where he did not earn much, and most of what he did earn went in the direction of paying the household expenses.
Despite my success at Mrs. Ruffner's, I didn't give up on the idea of going to the Hampton Institute. In the fall of 1872, I decided to make an effort to get there, even though, as I mentioned, I had no clear idea of where Hampton was or how much it would cost to get there. I don't think anyone truly understood my ambition to go to Hampton except for my mother, who was worried that I was embarking on a "wild-goose chase." At any rate, I only got a lukewarm approval from her to start my journey. The little money I had earned was taken by my stepfather and the rest of the family, leaving me with just a few dollars, so I had very little to buy clothes and cover my travel expenses. My brother John helped me as much as he could, but naturally, that wasn't much because he worked in the coal mine, where he didn't earn much, and most of his earnings went toward covering household expenses.
Perhaps the thing that touched and pleased me most in connection with my starting for Hampton was the interest that many of the older coloured people took in the matter. They had spent the best days of their lives in slavery, and hardly expected to live to see the time when they would see a member of their race leave home to attend a boarding-school. Some of these older people would give me a nickel, others a quarter, or a handkerchief.
Perhaps what touched and pleased me the most about my journey to Hampton was the interest that many of the older Black individuals showed in it. They had spent their best years in slavery and hardly expected to live to see the day when a member of their race would leave home to attend a boarding school. Some of these older folks would give me a nickel, others a quarter, or a handkerchief.
Finally the great day came, and I started for Hampton. I had only a small, cheap satchel that contained a few articles of clothing I could get. My mother at the time was rather weak and broken in health. I hardly expected to see her again, and thus our parting was all the more sad. She, however, was very brave through it all. At that time there were no through trains connecting that part of West Virginia with eastern Virginia. Trains ran only a portion of the way, and the remainder of the distance was travelled by stage-coaches.
Finally, the big day arrived, and I headed to Hampton. I only had a small, cheap duffel bag that held a few pieces of clothing I could manage to bring. My mom was pretty weak and in poor health at the time. I barely expected to see her again, which made our goodbye even more heartbreaking. Still, she was really brave through it all. Back then, there were no direct trains connecting that part of West Virginia with eastern Virginia. Trains only traveled part of the way, and the rest of the journey was made by stagecoaches.
The distance from Malden to Hampton is about five hundred miles. I had not been away from home many hours before it began to grow painfully evident that I did not have enough money to pay my fare to Hampton. One experience I shall long remember. I had been travelling over the mountains most of the afternoon in an old-fashion stage-coach, when, late in the evening, the coach stopped for the night at a common, unpainted house called a hotel. All the other passengers except myself were whites. In my ignorance I supposed that the little hotel existed for the purpose of accommodating the passengers who travelled on the stage-coach. The difference that the colour of one's skin would make I had not thought anything about. After all the other passengers had been shown rooms and were getting ready for supper, I shyly presented myself before the man at the desk. It is true I had practically no money in my pocket with which to pay for bed or food, but I had hoped in some way to beg my way into the good graces of the landlord, for at that season in the mountains of Virginia the weather was cold, and I wanted to get indoors for the night. Without asking as to whether I had any money, the man at the desk firmly refused to even consider the matter of providing me with food or lodging. This was my first experience in finding out what the colour of my skin meant. In some way I managed to keep warm by walking about, and so got through the night. My whole soul was so bent upon reaching Hampton that I did not have time to cherish any bitterness toward the hotel-keeper.
The distance from Malden to Hampton is about five hundred miles. It wasn’t long after I left home that it became painfully clear I didn’t have enough money for my fare to Hampton. One experience I will always remember. I had been traveling over the mountains most of the afternoon in an old-fashioned stagecoach when, late in the evening, the coach stopped for the night at a plain, unpainted place called a hotel. All the other passengers except me were white. I naively thought that the little hotel existed to accommodate the passengers on the stagecoach. I hadn’t considered how the color of my skin would make a difference. Once all the other passengers had been shown to their rooms and were getting ready for supper, I timidly approached the man at the desk. It’s true I had practically no money in my pocket for a bed or food, but I hoped somehow to win over the landlord, since the weather in the Virginia mountains was cold that season, and I wanted to get indoors for the night. Without even asking if I had any money, the man at the desk firmly refused to consider giving me food or lodging. This was my first experience realizing what the color of my skin meant. Somehow, I managed to keep warm by walking around and got through the night. My entire focus was on reaching Hampton, and I didn’t have time to feel any bitterness toward the hotelkeeper.
By walking, begging rides both in wagons and in the cars, in some way, after a number of days, I reached the city of Richmond, Virginia, about eighty-two miles from Hampton. When I reached there, tired, hungry, and dirty, it was late in the night. I had never been in a large city, and this rather added to my misery. When I reached Richmond, I was completely out of money. I had not a single acquaintance in the place, and, being unused to city ways, I did not know where to go. I applied at several places for lodging, but they all wanted money, and that was what I did not have. Knowing nothing else better to do, I walked the streets. In doing this I passed by many food-stands where fried chicken and half-moon apple pies were piled high and made to present a most tempting appearance. At that time it seemed to me that I would have promised all that I expected to possess in the future to have gotten hold of one of those chicken legs or one of those pies. But I could not get either of these, nor anything else to eat.
By walking and hitching rides in both wagons and cars, I eventually made my way to Richmond, Virginia, which is about eighty-two miles from Hampton. When I got there, tired, hungry, and dirty, it was late at night. I had never been in a big city before, which only made things worse. When I arrived in Richmond, I was completely broke. I didn't know a single person there, and since I wasn't familiar with city life, I had no idea where to go. I tried several places for a place to stay, but they all wanted money, and I had none. With nothing better to do, I walked the streets. While walking, I passed many food stands piled high with fried chicken and half-moon apple pies that looked incredibly tempting. At that moment, I felt like I would have given up everything I hoped to have in the future just to grab one of those chicken legs or one of those pies. But I couldn't get either, or anything else to eat.
I must have walked the streets till after midnight. At last I became so exhausted that I could walk no longer. I was tired, I was hungry, I was everything but discouraged. Just about the time when I reached extreme physical exhaustion, I came upon a portion of a street where the board sidewalk was considerably elevated. I waited for a few minutes, till I was sure that no passers-by could see me, and then crept under the sidewalk and lay for the night upon the ground, with my satchel of clothing for a pillow. Nearly all night I could hear the tramp of feet over my head. The next morning I found myself somewhat refreshed, but I was extremely hungry, because it had been a long time since I had had sufficient food. As soon as it became light enough for me to see my surroundings I noticed that I was near a large ship, and that this ship seemed to be unloading a cargo of pig iron. I went at once to the vessel and asked the captain to permit me to help unload the vessel in order to get money for food. The captain, a white man, who seemed to be kind-hearted, consented. I worked long enough to earn money for my breakfast, and it seems to me, as I remember it now, to have been about the best breakfast that I have ever eaten.
I must have walked the streets until after midnight. At last, I got so exhausted that I could walk no longer. I was tired, I was hungry, I was everything but discouraged. Just when I reached my limit, I found a spot on a street where the wooden sidewalk was quite elevated. I waited for a few minutes, making sure no one could see me, and then crawled beneath the sidewalk and lay down for the night on the ground, using my bag of clothes as a pillow. I could hear the sound of footsteps above me almost all night. The next morning, I felt somewhat rested, but I was extremely hungry because it had been a long time since I had enough food. As soon as it got light enough for me to see my surroundings, I noticed that I was near a large ship that seemed to be unloading a cargo of pig iron. I went straight to the ship and asked the captain if I could help unload it to earn some money for food. The captain, a white man who seemed kind-hearted, agreed. I worked long enough to earn money for breakfast, and it seems to me, as I remember it now, that it was one of the best breakfasts I've ever had.
My work pleased the captain so well that he told me if I desired I could continue working for a small amount per day. This I was very glad to do. I continued working on this vessel for a number of days. After buying food with the small wages I received there was not much left to add on the amount I must get to pay my way to Hampton. In order to economize in every way possible, so as to be sure to reach Hampton in a reasonable time, I continued to sleep under the same sidewalk that gave me shelter the first night I was in Richmond. Many years after that the coloured citizens of Richmond very kindly tendered me a reception at which there must have been two thousand people present. This reception was held not far from the spot where I slept the first night I spent in the city, and I must confess that my mind was more upon the sidewalk that first gave me shelter than upon the recognition, agreeable and cordial as it was.
My work impressed the captain so much that he told me I could keep working for a small daily wage if I wanted to. I was really happy to accept. I kept working on the ship for several days. After buying food with my small earnings, there wasn't much left to contribute towards my travel expenses to Hampton. To save money in every way I could, to ensure I could reach Hampton in a reasonable time, I kept sleeping under the same sidewalk that sheltered me the first night I was in Richmond. Many years later, the Black citizens of Richmond kindly held a reception for me, which had about two thousand people in attendance. This reception took place not far from where I slept on my first night in the city, and I must admit that my thoughts were more on the sidewalk that originally gave me shelter than on the recognition, as nice and warm as it was.
When I had saved what I considered enough money with which to reach Hampton, I thanked the captain of the vessel for his kindness, and started again. Without any unusual occurrence I reached Hampton, with a surplus of exactly fifty cents with which to begin my education. To me it had been a long, eventful journey; but the first sight of the large, three-story, brick school building seemed to have rewarded me for all that I had undergone in order to reach the place. If the people who gave the money to provide that building could appreciate the influence the sight of it had upon me, as well as upon thousands of other youths, they would feel all the more encouraged to make such gifts. It seemed to me to be the largest and most beautiful building I had ever seen. The sight of it seemed to give me new life. I felt that a new kind of existence had now begun—that life would now have a new meaning. I felt that I had reached the promised land, and I resolved to let no obstacle prevent me from putting forth the highest effort to fit myself to accomplish the most good in the world.
When I had saved what I thought was enough money to get to Hampton, I thanked the captain of the ship for his kindness and set off again. Everything went smoothly, and I arrived in Hampton with exactly fifty cents to start my education. It had been a long and eventful journey for me, but the first sight of the large, three-story brick school building made all my struggles worthwhile. If the people who donated the money to build that school could see the impact it had on me and thousands of other young people, they'd feel even more motivated to contribute. It seemed to be the biggest and most beautiful building I had ever seen. Just seeing it gave me a renewed sense of life. I felt like a new chapter had begun, and that life was about to have a new significance. I believed I had reached the promised land and resolved to let nothing stop me from putting in my best effort to make a positive impact in the world.
As soon as possible after reaching the grounds of the Hampton Institute, I presented myself before the head teacher for an assignment to a class. Having been so long without proper food, a bath, and a change of clothing, I did not, of course, make a very favourable impression upon her, and I could see at once that there were doubts in her mind about the wisdom of admitting me as a student. I felt that I could hardly blame her if she got the idea that I was a worthless loafer or tramp. For some time she did not refuse to admit me, neither did she decide in my favour, and I continued to linger about her, and to impress her in all the ways I could with my worthiness. In the meantime I saw her admitting other students, and that added greatly to my discomfort, for I felt, deep down in my heart, that I could do as well as they, if I could only get a chance to show what was in me.
As soon as I arrived at the Hampton Institute, I went to see the head teacher to get assigned to a class. Since I had been without proper food, a shower, and fresh clothes for so long, I didn’t make a great first impression on her. I could tell she was unsure about whether it was a good idea to let me become a student. I couldn’t blame her for thinking I was just a useless drifter or someone down on their luck. For a while, she didn’t outright say no to my admission, but she also didn’t decide to accept me. I stuck around her, trying to show her in every way I could that I was worthy. In the meantime, I watched her accept other students, which made me even more uncomfortable because I felt, deep down, that I could do just as well as they could if only I had the chance to prove myself.
After some hours had passed, the head teacher said to me: "The adjoining recitation-room needs sweeping. Take the broom and sweep it."
After a few hours had gone by, the head teacher said to me, "The next classroom needs to be swept. Grab the broom and clean it up."
It occurred to me at once that here was my chance. Never did I receive an order with more delight. I knew that I could sweep, for Mrs. Ruffner had thoroughly taught me how to do that when I lived with her.
It hit me right away that this was my opportunity. I’ve never been so happy to get an order. I knew I could clean well, since Mrs. Ruffner had taught me how to do it properly when I lived with her.
I swept the recitation-room three times. Then I got a dusting-cloth and dusted it four times. All the woodwork around the walls, every bench, table, and desk, I went over four times with my dusting-cloth. Besides, every piece of furniture had been moved and every closet and corner in the room had been thoroughly cleaned. I had the feeling that in a large measure my future depended upon the impression I made upon the teacher in the cleaning of that room. When I was through, I reported to the head teacher. She was a "Yankee" woman who knew just where to look for dirt. She went into the room and inspected the floor and closets; then she took her handkerchief and rubbed it on the woodwork about the walls, and over the table and benches. When she was unable to find one bit of dirt on the floor, or a particle of dust on any of the furniture, she quietly remarked, "I guess you will do to enter this institution."
I swept the classroom three times. Then I grabbed a dusting cloth and wiped it down four times. I went over all the woodwork around the walls, every bench, table, and desk, four times with my dusting cloth. Plus, I moved every piece of furniture and thoroughly cleaned every closet and corner in the room. I felt like a big part of my future depended on the impression I made on the teacher through how I cleaned that room. When I was done, I reported to the head teacher. She was a "Yankee" woman who knew exactly where to look for dirt. She went into the room and inspected the floor and closets; then she took out her handkerchief and rubbed it on the woodwork around the walls and over the tables and benches. When she couldn't find a single bit of dirt on the floor or a speck of dust on any of the furniture, she calmly said, "I guess you will do to enter this institution."
I was one of the happiest souls on Earth. The sweeping of that room was my college examination, and never did any youth pass an examination for entrance into Harvard or Yale that gave him more genuine satisfaction. I have passed several examinations since then, but I have always felt that this was the best one I ever passed.
I was one of the happiest people on Earth. Cleaning that room was my college exam, and no student has ever taken a test for admission to Harvard or Yale that brought them more real satisfaction. I've taken several exams since then, but I've always felt that this was the best one I ever took.
I have spoken of my own experience in entering the Hampton Institute. Perhaps few, if any, had anything like the same experience that I had, but about the same period there were hundreds who found their way to Hampton and other institutions after experiencing something of the same difficulties that I went through. The young men and women were determined to secure an education at any cost.
I have shared my own experience of getting into the Hampton Institute. Maybe not many, if any, had a similar experience to mine, but around the same time, there were hundreds who made their way to Hampton and other schools after going through similar challenges that I faced. The young men and women were determined to get an education no matter what.
The sweeping of the recitation-room in the manner that I did it seems to have paved the way for me to get through Hampton. Miss Mary F. Mackie, the head teacher, offered me a position as janitor. This, of course, I gladly accepted, because it was a place where I could work out nearly all the cost of my board. The work was hard and taxing but I stuck to it. I had a large number of rooms to care for, and had to work late into the night, while at the same time I had to rise by four o'clock in the morning, in order to build the fires and have a little time in which to prepare my lessons. In all my career at Hampton, and ever since I have been out in the world, Miss Mary F. Mackie, the head teacher to whom I have referred, proved one of my strongest and most helpful friends. Her advice and encouragement were always helpful in strengthening to me in the darkest hour.
The way I cleaned the recitation room seems to have opened up an opportunity for me to get through Hampton. Miss Mary F. Mackie, the head teacher, offered me a job as janitor. I gladly accepted it since it covered most of my board costs. The work was hard and demanding, but I stuck with it. I had a lot of rooms to take care of and often worked late into the night, while also having to get up by four in the morning to start the fires and carve out some time to prepare my lessons. Throughout my time at Hampton and even since I've been out in the world, Miss Mary F. Mackie, the head teacher I've mentioned, has been one of my strongest and most supportive friends. Her advice and encouragement were always a source of strength for me during my darkest moments.
I have spoken of the impression that was made upon me by the buildings and general appearance of the Hampton Institute, but I have not spoken of that which made the greatest and most lasting impression on me, and that was a great man—the noblest, rarest human being that it has ever been my privilege to meet. I refer to the late General Samuel C. Armstrong.
I've talked about the impact that the buildings and overall look of the Hampton Institute had on me, but I haven't mentioned what left the biggest and most lasting mark on me— a remarkable man—the most noble and unique person I’ve ever had the privilege of meeting. I'm talking about the late General Samuel C. Armstrong.
It has been my fortune to meet personally many of what are called great characters, both in Europe and America, but I do not hesitate to say that I never met any man who, in my estimation, was the equal of General Armstrong. Fresh from the degrading influences of the slave plantation and the coal-mines, it was a rare privilege for me to be permitted to come into direct contact with such a character as General Armstrong. I shall always remember that the first time I went into his presence he made the impression upon me of being a perfect man: I was made to feel that there was something about him that was superhuman. It was my privilege to know the General personally from the time I entered Hampton till he died, and the more I saw of him the greater he grew in my estimation. One might have removed from Hampton all the buildings, class-rooms, teachers, and industries, and given the men and women there the opportunity of coming into daily contact with General Armstrong, and that alone would have been a liberal education. The older I grow, the more I am convinced that there is no education which one can get from books and costly apparatus that is equal to that which can be gotten from contact with great men and women. Instead of studying books so constantly, how I wish that our schools and colleges might learn to study men and things!
I’ve had the chance to personally meet many so-called great figures in both Europe and America, but I can confidently say I’ve never met anyone who, in my opinion, matched General Armstrong. Coming straight from the harsh realities of the slave plantation and coal mines, it was a unique privilege for me to interact with someone like General Armstrong. I will always remember that when I first met him, he struck me as a truly exceptional person; there was something almost superhuman about him. I had the honor of knowing the General personally from the time I arrived at Hampton until his death, and the more I got to know him, the more I admired him. You could have taken away all the buildings, classrooms, teachers, and industries from Hampton, and just having the chance to be around General Armstrong would have been an incredible education in itself. The older I get, the more I believe there’s no education you can get from books and expensive tools that compares to what you learn from being around great men and women. Instead of focusing so much on studying books, I wish our schools and colleges would learn to study people and their experiences!
General Armstrong spent two of the last six months of his life in my home at Tuskegee. At that time he was paralyzed to the extent that he had lost control of his body and voice in a very large degree. Notwithstanding his affliction, he worked almost constantly night and day for the cause to which he had given his life. I never saw a man who so completely lost sight of himself. I do not believe he ever had a selfish thought. He was just as happy in trying to assist some other institution in the South as he was when working for Hampton. Although he fought the Southern white man in the Civil War, I never heard him utter a bitter word against him afterward. On the other hand, he was constantly seeking to find ways by which he could be of service to the Southern whites.
General Armstrong spent two of the last six months of his life in my home in Tuskegee. By then, he was so paralyzed that he had lost a significant amount of control over his body and voice. Despite his condition, he worked almost non-stop, day and night, for the cause he had dedicated his life to. I’ve never met anyone who was so completely selfless. I don’t think he ever had a selfish thought. He was just as happy trying to help other institutions in the South as he was when he was working for Hampton. Even though he fought against Southern whites in the Civil War, I never heard him say a bitter word about them afterward. Instead, he was always looking for ways to be of service to Southern whites.
It would be difficult to describe the hold that he had upon the students at Hampton, or the faith they had in him. In fact, he was worshipped by his students. It never occurred to me that General Armstrong could fail in anything that he undertook. There is almost no request that he could have made that would not have been complied with. When he was a guest at my home in Alabama, and was so badly paralyzed that he had to be wheeled about in an invalid's chair, I recall that one of the General's former students had occasion to push his chair up a long, steep hill that taxed his strength to the utmost. When the top of the hill was reached, the former pupil, with a glow of happiness on his face, exclaimed, "I am so glad that I have been permitted to do something that was real hard for the General before he dies!" While I was a student at Hampton, the dormitories became so crowded that it was impossible to find room for all who wanted to be admitted. In order to help remedy the difficulty, the General conceived the plan of putting up tents to be used as rooms. As soon as it became known that General Armstrong would be pleased if some of the older students would live in the tents during the winter, nearly every student in school volunteered to go.
It would be hard to explain the influence he had on the students at Hampton and the trust they had in him. In fact, he was almost idolized by his students. I never thought that General Armstrong could fail at anything he attempted. There was nearly no request he could have made that wouldn't have been fulfilled. When he stayed at my home in Alabama and was so severely paralyzed that he had to be pushed around in a wheelchair, I remember one of the General's former students had to push his chair up a long, steep hill that really tested his strength. When they reached the top of the hill, the former student, beaming with happiness, said, "I'm so glad I was able to do something that was really tough for the General before he dies!" While I was a student at Hampton, the dorms got so full that there was no space for everyone who wanted to be admitted. To help solve this problem, the General came up with the idea of setting up tents to be used as rooms. As soon as it was known that General Armstrong would be happy if some of the older students lived in the tents during the winter, almost every student in the school volunteered to do it.
I was one of the volunteers. The winter that we spent in those tents was an intensely cold one, and we suffered severely—how much I am sure General Armstrong never knew, because we made no complaints. It was enough for us to know that we were pleasing General Armstrong, and that we were making it possible for an additional number of students to secure an education. More than once, during a cold night, when a stiff gale would be blowing, our tent was lifted bodily, and we would find ourselves in the open air. The General would usually pay a visit to the tents early in the morning, and his earnest, cheerful, encouraging voice would dispel any feeling of despondency.
I was one of the volunteers. The winter we spent in those tents was incredibly cold, and we suffered a lot—how much I’m sure General Armstrong never knew because we didn’t complain. It was enough for us to know that we were making General Armstrong happy and helping more students get an education. More than once, during a cold night when a strong wind would blow, our tent was completely lifted, and we’d find ourselves in the open air. The General would usually visit the tents early in the morning, and his sincere, cheerful, encouraging voice would lift our spirits and chase away any feelings of hopelessness.
I have spoken of my admiration for General Armstrong, and yet he was but a type of that Christlike body of men and women who went into the Negro schools at the close of the war by the hundreds to assist in lifting up my race. The history of the world fails to show a higher, purer, and more unselfish class of men and women than those who found their way into those Negro schools.
I have expressed my admiration for General Armstrong, and he was just a representative of that Christlike group of men and women who went into the Black schools at the end of the war by the hundreds to help uplift my race. The history of the world does not show a higher, purer, and more selfless group of people than those who dedicated themselves to those Black schools.
Life at Hampton was a constant revelation to me; was constantly taking me into a new world. The matter of having meals at regular hours, of eating on a tablecloth, using a napkin, the use of the bath-tub and of the tooth-brush, as well as the use of sheets upon the bed, were all new to me.
Life at Hampton was always a revelation for me; it was constantly introducing me to a new world. The idea of having meals at set times, eating off a tablecloth, using a napkin, having access to a bathtub and a toothbrush, as well as sleeping with sheets on the bed, were all completely new experiences for me.
I sometimes feel that almost the most valuable lesson I got at the Hampton Institute was in the use and value of the bath. I learned there for the first time some of its value, not only in keeping the body healthy, but in inspiring self-respect and promoting virtue. In all my travels in the South and elsewhere since leaving Hampton I have always in some way sought my daily bath. To get it sometimes when I have been the guest of my own people in a single-roomed cabin has not always been easy to do, except by slipping away to some stream in the woods. I have always tried to teach my people that some provision for bathing should be a part of every house.
I sometimes feel that one of the most valuable lessons I learned at the Hampton Institute was the importance of taking a bath. It was there that I first understood its benefits, not just for keeping the body healthy, but also for boosting self-respect and encouraging good behavior. Throughout my travels in the South and beyond since leaving Hampton, I’ve always made an effort to take a daily bath. Occasionally, when visiting family in a cramped cabin, it hasn't been easy to do, except by sneaking off to find a stream in the woods. I've always tried to encourage my people to ensure that every home includes some means for bathing.
For some time, while a student at Hampton, I possessed but a single pair of socks, but when I had worn these till they became soiled, I would wash them at night and hang them by the fire to dry, so that I might wear them again the next morning.
For a while, while I was a student at Hampton, I only had one pair of socks. When they got dirty, I would wash them at night and hang them by the fire to dry, so I could wear them again the next morning.
The charge for my board at Hampton was ten dollars per month. I was expected to pay a part of this in cash and to work out the remainder. To meet this cash payment, as I have stated, I had just fifty cents when I reached the institution. Aside from a very few dollars that my brother John was able to send me once in a while, I had no money with which to pay my board. I was determined from the first to make my work as janitor so valuable that my services would be indispensable. This I succeeded in doing to such an extent that I was soon informed that I would be allowed the full cost of my board in return for my work. The cost of tuition was seventy dollars a year. This, of course, was wholly beyond my ability to provide. If I had been compelled to pay the seventy dollars for tuition, in addition to providing for my board, I would have been compelled to leave the Hampton school. General Armstrong, however, very kindly got Mr. S. Griffitts Morgan, of New Bedford, Mass., to defray the cost of my tuition during the whole time that I was at Hampton. After I finished the course at Hampton and had entered upon my lifework at Tuskegee, I had the pleasure of visiting Mr. Morgan several times.
The cost of my board at Hampton was ten dollars a month. I had to pay part of this in cash and work off the rest. To cover the cash payment, as I said, I only had fifty cents when I got to the school. Besides a few dollars my brother John could send me occasionally, I had no money to pay for my board. From the beginning, I was determined to make my work as a janitor so valuable that my services would be essential. I succeeded to the point where I was soon told that I would be allowed to cover the full cost of my board through my work. The tuition was seventy dollars a year, which, of course, was far beyond what I could afford. If I had to pay the seventy dollars for tuition on top of my board, I would have had to leave Hampton. However, General Armstrong generously arranged for Mr. S. Griffitts Morgan from New Bedford, Mass., to pay for my tuition for my entire time at Hampton. After I completed my course at Hampton and started my work at Tuskegee, I had the pleasure of visiting Mr. Morgan several times.
After having been for a while at Hampton, I found myself in difficulty because I did not have books and clothing. Usually, however, I got around the trouble about books by borrowing from those who were more fortunate than myself. As to clothes, when I reached Hampton I had practically nothing. Everything that I possessed was in a small hand satchel. My anxiety about clothing was increased because of the fact that General Armstrong made a personal inspection of the young men in ranks, to see that their clothes were clean. Shoes had to be polished, there must be no buttons off the clothing, and no grease-spots. To wear one suit of clothes continually, while at work and in the schoolroom, and at the same time keep it clean, was rather a hard problem for me to solve. In some way I managed to get on till the teachers learned that I was in earnest and meant to succeed, and then some of them were kind enough to see that I was partly supplied with second-hand clothing that had been sent in barrels from the North. These barrels proved a blessing to hundreds of poor but deserving students. Without them I question whether I should ever have gotten through Hampton.
After spending some time at Hampton, I found myself in a tough spot because I didn’t have any books or clothes. Generally, I managed the book issue by borrowing from those who were better off than I was. When I arrived at Hampton, I had almost no clothes at all. Everything I owned fit into a small satchel. My worries about clothing grew because General Armstrong personally checked the young men in ranks to ensure their clothes were clean. Shoes had to be polished, there couldn’t be any missing buttons, and no grease stains. Wearing the same outfit all the time while working and in class, while also keeping it clean, was quite a challenge for me. Somehow, I got by until the teachers saw that I was serious about succeeding, and then some of them kindly made sure I received some second-hand clothing that had been sent in barrels from the North. These barrels were a blessing for hundreds of poor but deserving students. Without them, I doubt I would have made it through Hampton.
When I first went to Hampton I do not recall that I had ever slept in a bed that had two sheets on it. In those days there were not many buildings there, and room was very precious. There were seven other boys in the same room with me; most of them, however, students who had been there for some time. The sheets were quite a puzzle to me. The first night I slept under both of them, and the second night I slept on top of them; but by watching the other boys I learned my lesson in this, and have been trying to follow it ever since and to teach it to others.
When I first arrived in Hampton, I don't remember ever sleeping in a bed that had two sheets on it. Back then, there weren't many buildings, and space was really valuable. There were seven other guys in the same room as me; most of them were students who had been there for a while. The sheets were pretty confusing to me. The first night, I slept under both of them, and the second night, I slept on top of them. But by observing the other boys, I figured out how it worked and have been trying to stick to that method and teach it to others since then.
I was among the youngest of the students who were in Hampton at the time. Most of the students were men and women—some as old as forty years of age. As I now recall the scene of my first year, I do not believe that one often has the opportunity of coming into contact with three or four hundred men and women who were so tremendously in earnest as these men and women were. Every hour was occupied in study or work. Nearly all had had enough actual contact with the world to teach them the need of education. Many of the older ones were, of course, too old to master the text-books very thoroughly, and it was often sad to watch their struggles; but they made up in earnest much of what they lacked in books. Many of them were as poor as I was, and, besides having to wrestle with their books, they had to struggle with a poverty which prevented their having the necessities of life. Many of them had aged parents who were dependent upon them, and some of them were men who had wives whose support in some way they had to provide for.
I was one of the youngest students at Hampton at the time. Most of the students were men and women—some as old as forty. Looking back on my first year, I don’t think you often get the chance to meet three or four hundred people who were so incredibly serious about their education. Every hour was filled with study or work. Almost all of them had enough real-world experience to understand the importance of education. Many of the older students were, of course, too old to grasp the textbooks thoroughly, and it was sometimes painful to see them struggle; but they made up for what they lacked in book knowledge with their determination. Many were as poor as I was, and in addition to tackling their studies, they also faced the challenge of poverty that made it hard to meet basic needs. Many had aging parents who depended on them, and some were men who had families they needed to support.
The great and prevailing idea that seemed to take possession of every one was to prepare himself to lift up the people at his home. No one seemed to think of himself. And the officers and teachers, what a rare set of human beings they were! They worked for the students night and day, in seasons and out of season. They seemed happy only when they were helping the students in some manner. Whenever it is written—and I hope it will be—the part that the Yankee teachers played in the education of the Negroes immediately after the war will make one of the most thrilling parts of the history off this country. The time is not far distant when the whole South will appreciate this service in a way that it has not yet been able to do.
The major idea that seemed to take over everyone was the need to uplift the people in their own communities. No one seemed to think about themselves. And the officers and teachers, what an extraordinary group they were! They worked tirelessly for the students, day and night, through all seasons. They only seemed to find joy when they were able to help the students in some way. When it's finally written—and I hope it will be—the role that Northern teachers played in the education of Black people right after the war will be one of the most exciting chapters in the history of this country. It's not long until the entire South will recognize this contribution in a way it hasn't been able to yet.
Chapter IV. Helping Others
At the end of my first year at Hampton I was confronted with another difficulty. Most of the students went home to spend their vacation. I had no money with which to go home, but I had to go somewhere. In those days very few students were permitted to remain at the school during vacation. It made me feel very sad and homesick to see the other students preparing to leave and starting for home. I not only had no money with which to go home, but I had none with which to go anywhere.
At the end of my first year at Hampton, I faced another challenge. Most of the students went home for their vacation, but I didn't have the money to go back. I had to go somewhere. Back then, very few students were allowed to stay at the school during vacation. It made me feel really sad and homesick to see the other students getting ready to leave for home. Not only did I lack money to go home, but I also had none to go anywhere else.
In some way, however, I had gotten hold of an extra, second-hand coat which I thought was a pretty valuable coat. This I decided to sell, in order to get a little money for travelling expenses. I had a good deal of boyish pride, and I tried to hide, as far as I could, from the other students the fact that I had no money and nowhere to go. I made it known to a few people in the town of Hampton that I had this coat to sell, and, after a good deal of persuading, one coloured man promised to come to my room to look the coat over and consider the matter of buying it. This cheered my drooping spirits considerably. Early the next morning my prospective customer appeared. After looking the garment over carefully, he asked me how much I wanted for it. I told him I thought it was worth three dollars. He seemed to agree with me as to price, but remarked in the most matter-of-fact way: "I tell you what I will do; I will take the coat, and will pay you five cents, cash down, and pay you the rest of the money just as soon as I can get it." It is not hard to imagine what my feelings were at the time.
Somehow, I had ended up with an extra, used coat that I thought was pretty valuable. I decided to sell it to make some money for travel expenses. I had a lot of boyish pride and tried to hide from the other students that I had no money and nowhere to go. I let a few people in the town of Hampton know that I was selling the coat, and after a bit of persuading, one Black man promised to come to my room to check it out and think about buying it. This lifted my spirits quite a bit. Early the next morning, my potential customer showed up. After examining the coat carefully, he asked how much I wanted for it. I told him I thought it was worth three dollars. He seemed to agree with the price but commented in a very straightforward way, "I'll take the coat, and I’ll pay you five cents cash now, and I’ll give you the rest of the money as soon as I can." It's easy to imagine how I felt at that moment.
With this disappointment I gave up all hope of getting out of the town of Hampton for my vacation work. I wanted very much to go where I might secure work that would at least pay me enough to purchase some much-needed clothing and other necessities. In a few days practically all the students and teachers had left for their homes, and this served to depress my spirits even more.
With this disappointment, I lost all hope of getting out of the town of Hampton for my summer work. I really wanted to go somewhere where I could find a job that would at least pay me enough to buy some much-needed clothes and other essentials. In just a few days, almost all the students and teachers had gone home, which only made me feel worse.
After trying for several days in and near the town of Hampton, I finally secured work in a restaurant at Fortress Monroe. The wages, however, were very little more than my board. At night, and between meals, I found considerable time for study and reading; and in this direction I improved myself very much during the summer.
After several days of searching in and around Hampton, I finally got a job at a restaurant in Fortress Monroe. The pay was barely more than what I spent on food. However, during the evenings and between meals, I had plenty of time to study and read, and I really made a lot of progress in that area over the summer.
When I left school at the end of my first year, I owed the institution sixteen dollars that I had not been able to work out. It was my greatest ambition during the summer to save money enough with which to pay this debt. I felt that this was a debt of honour, and that I could hardly bring myself to the point of even trying to enter school again till it was paid. I economized in every way that I could think of—did my own washing, and went without necessary garments—but still I found my summer vacation ending and I did not have the sixteen dollars.
When I finished my first year of school, I owed the institution sixteen dollars that I couldn't pay off. My biggest goal that summer was to save enough money to cover this debt. I saw it as a matter of honor and felt I couldn't even think about going back to school until it was settled. I cut costs in every way I could think of—I did my own laundry and went without essential clothing—but the summer ended and I still didn't have the sixteen dollars.
One day, during the last week of my stay in the restaurant, I found under one of the tables a crisp, new ten-dollar bill. I could hardly contain myself, I was so happy. As it was not my place of business I felt it to be the proper thing to show the money to the proprietor. This I did. He seemed as glad as I was, but he coolly explained to me that, as it was his place of business, he had a right to keep the money, and he proceeded to do so. This, I confess, was another pretty hard blow to me. I will not say that I became discouraged, for as I now look back over my life I do not recall that I ever became discouraged over anything that I set out to accomplish. I have begun everything with the idea that I could succeed, and I never had much patience with the multitudes of people who are always ready to explain why one cannot succeed. I determined to face the situation just as it was. At the end of the week I went to the treasurer of the Hampton Institute, General J.F.B. Marshall, and told him frankly my condition. To my gratification he told me that I could reenter the institution, and that he would trust me to pay the debt when I could. During the second year I continued to work as a janitor.
One day, during the last week of my time at the restaurant, I found a crisp, new ten-dollar bill under one of the tables. I could hardly contain my happiness. Since it wasn’t my place of business, I felt it was the right thing to do to show the money to the owner. I did just that. He seemed just as happy as I was, but he calmly explained that, since it was his business, he had the right to keep the money, and he went on to do so. I admit, that was a tough blow for me. I won't say I got discouraged, because as I look back on my life, I can’t remember ever being discouraged about anything I set out to achieve. I always approached everything with the mindset that I could succeed, and I never had much patience for the countless people who were quick to explain why success wasn't possible. I decided to face the situation as it was. At the end of the week, I went to the treasurer of the Hampton Institute, General J.F.B. Marshall, and honestly told him my situation. To my relief, he said I could reenter the institution, and that he would trust me to pay the debt when I could. During my second year, I continued working as a janitor.
The education that I received at Hampton out of the text-books was but a small part of what I learned there. One of the things that impressed itself upon me deeply, the second year, was the unselfishness of the teachers. It was hard for me to understand how any individuals could bring themselves to the point where they could be so happy in working for others. Before the end of the year, I think I began learning that those who are happiest are those who do the most for others. This lesson I have tried to carry with me ever since.
The education I received at Hampton from the textbooks was only a small part of what I learned there. One thing that really stood out to me in my second year was the selflessness of the teachers. I found it hard to grasp how some people could be so fulfilled working for others. By the end of the year, I think I started to learn that those who are the happiest are the ones who contribute the most to others. This lesson is something I’ve tried to hold onto ever since.
I also learned a valuable lesson at Hampton by coming into contact with the best breeds of live stock and fowls. No student, I think, who has had the opportunity of doing this could go out into the world and content himself with the poorest grades.
I also learned an important lesson at Hampton by getting to know the best breeds of livestock and poultry. I don’t think any student who has had the chance to do this could go out into the world and settle for anything less than the best.
Perhaps the most valuable thing that I got out of my second year was an understanding of the use and value of the Bible. Miss Nathalie Lord, one of the teachers, from Portland, Me., taught me how to use and love the Bible. Before this I had never cared a great deal about it, but now I learned to love to read the Bible, not only for the spiritual help which it gives, but on account of it as literature. The lessons taught me in this respect took such a hold upon me that at the present time, when I am at home, no matter how busy I am, I always make it a rule to read a chapter or a portion of a chapter in the morning, before beginning the work of the day.
Perhaps the most valuable thing I gained from my second year was an understanding of the use and importance of the Bible. Miss Nathalie Lord, one of the teachers from Portland, Maine, taught me how to appreciate and engage with the Bible. Before this, I didn’t really care much about it, but now I've learned to love reading the Bible, not just for the spiritual guidance it offers, but also for its literary value. The lessons I learned on this front had such a strong impact on me that now, when I'm at home, no matter how busy I am, I always make it a point to read a chapter or part of a chapter in the morning before starting my day.
Whatever ability I may have as a public speaker I owe in a measure to Miss Lord. When she found out that I had some inclination in this direction, she gave me private lessons in the matter of breathing, emphasis, and articulation. Simply to be able to talk in public for the sake of talking has never had the least attraction to me. In fact, I consider that there is nothing so empty and unsatisfactory as mere abstract public speaking; but from my early childhood I have had a desire to do something to make the world better, and then to be able to speak to the world about that thing.
Whatever skills I have as a public speaker I partly owe to Miss Lord. When she discovered that I was interested in this area, she gave me private lessons on breathing, emphasis, and articulation. The idea of speaking in public just for the sake of it has never appealed to me. In fact, I find nothing as empty and unfulfilling as abstract public speaking; however, since I was a child, I have wanted to do something to improve the world, and then be able to share that with others.
The debating societies at Hampton were a constant source of delight to me. These were held on Saturday evening; and during my whole life at Hampton I do not recall that I missed a single meeting. I not only attended the weekly debating society, but was instrumental in organizing an additional society. I noticed that between the time when supper was over and the time to begin evening study there were about twenty minutes which the young men usually spent in idle gossip. About twenty of us formed a society for the purpose of utilizing this time in debate or in practice in public speaking. Few persons ever derived more happiness or benefit from the use of twenty minutes of time than we did in this way.
The debate clubs at Hampton always brought me a lot of joy. These meetings took place on Saturday evenings, and during my entire time at Hampton, I can’t remember missing a single one. I not only participated in the weekly debate club, but I also helped set up an additional group. I realized that there was about a twenty-minute gap between dinner and the start of evening study when the young men usually engaged in idle chatter. About twenty of us started a club to make better use of that time for debate or practicing public speaking. Few people ever got as much happiness or benefit from those twenty minutes as we did.
At the end of my second year at Hampton, by the help of some money sent me by my mother and brother John, supplemented by a small gift from one of the teachers at Hampton, I was enabled to return to my home in Malden, West Virginia, to spend my vacation. When I reached home I found that the salt-furnaces were not running, and that the coal-mine was not being operated on account of the miners being out on "strike." This was something which, it seemed, usually occurred whenever the men got two or three months ahead in their savings. During the strike, of course, they spent all that they had saved, and would often return to work in debt at the same wages, or would move to another mine at considerable expense. In either case, my observations convinced me that the miners were worse off at the end of the strike. Before the days of strikes in that section of the country, I knew miners who had considerable money in the bank, but as soon as the professional labour agitators got control, the savings of even the more thrifty ones began disappearing.
At the end of my second year at Hampton, thanks to some money sent by my mom and my brother John, along with a small gift from one of the teachers at Hampton, I was able to go back home to Malden, West Virginia, for my vacation. When I got home, I found that the salt furnaces were shut down, and the coal mine wasn't operating because the miners were on "strike." This seemed to happen whenever the workers had saved up two or three months' worth of pay. During the strike, they obviously spent all their savings and often returned to work in debt, still making the same wages, or moved to another mine at a big expense. In both cases, my observations showed that the miners were worse off at the end of the strike. Before the strike era in that part of the country, I knew miners who had decent savings in the bank, but as soon as the professional labor organizers took control, even the thriftiest ones started losing their savings.
My mother and the other members of my family were, of course, much rejoiced to see me and to note the improvement that I had made during my two years' absence. The rejoicing on the part of all classes of the coloured people, and especially the older ones, over my return, was almost pathetic. I had to pay a visit to each family and take a meal with each, and at each place tell the story of my experiences at Hampton. In addition to this I had to speak before the church and Sunday-school, and at various other places. The thing that I was most in search of, though, work, I could not find. There was no work on account of the strike. I spent nearly the whole of the first month of my vacation in an effort to find something to do by which I could earn money to pay my way back to Hampton and save a little money to use after reaching there.
My mom and the rest of my family were, of course, really happy to see me and to notice the progress I had made during my two years away. The excitement among all the various groups of Black people, especially the older folks, over my return was almost touching. I had to visit each family and share a meal with them, and at every place, I told the story of my experiences at Hampton. On top of that, I had to speak in front of the church and Sunday school, as well as at several other places. However, what I was really looking for was work, which I couldn't find due to the strike. I spent almost the entire first month of my vacation trying to find something to do so I could earn money to pay my way back to Hampton and save a little extra to use once I got there.
Toward the end of the first month, I went to a place a considerable distance from my home, to try to find employment. I did not succeed, and it was night before I got started on my return. When I had gotten within a mile or so of my home I was so completely tired out that I could not walk any farther, and I went into an old, abandoned house to spend the remainder of the night. About three o'clock in the morning my brother John found me asleep in this house, and broke to me, as gently as he could, the sad news that our dear mother had died during the night.
Toward the end of the first month, I went a long way from home to look for a job. I didn’t have any luck, and it was nighttime by the time I started heading back. When I was about a mile from home, I was so exhausted that I couldn’t walk any further, so I went into an old, abandoned house to spend the rest of the night. Around three o'clock in the morning, my brother John found me sleeping in that house and gently told me the heartbreaking news that our dear mother had passed away during the night.
This seemed to me the saddest and blankest moment in my life. For several years my mother had not been in good health, but I had no idea, when I parted from her the previous day, that I should never see her alive again. Besides that, I had always had an intense desire to be with her when she did pass away. One of the chief ambitions which spurred me on at Hampton was that I might be able to get to be in a position in which I could better make my mother comfortable and happy. She had so often expressed the wish that she might be permitted to live to see her children educated and started out in the world.
This felt like the saddest and emptiest moment of my life. For several years, my mom hadn't been in good health, but I had no idea, when I said goodbye to her the day before, that I would never see her alive again. On top of that, I always wanted to be there with her when she passed away. One of my main goals at Hampton was to be in a position where I could make my mom more comfortable and happy. She had often shared her wish to live long enough to see her kids educated and set up in life.
In a very short time after the death of my mother our little home was in confusion. My sister Amanda, although she tried to do the best she could, was too young to know anything about keeping house, and my stepfather was not able to hire a housekeeper. Sometimes we had food cooked for us, and sometimes we did not. I remember that more than once a can of tomatoes and some crackers constituted a meal. Our clothing went uncared for, and everything about our home was soon in a tumble-down condition. It seems to me that this was the most dismal period of my life.
In a short time after my mother passed away, our little home was in chaos. My sister Amanda, though she did her best, was too young to know how to manage a household, and my stepfather couldn’t afford to hire a housekeeper. Sometimes we had meals prepared for us, and other times we didn’t. I remember more than once eating a can of tomatoes with some crackers for dinner. Our clothes went untended, and everything in our home quickly fell into disarray. It feels to me like this was the most depressing time of my life.
My good friend, Mrs. Ruffner, to whom I have already referred, always made me welcome at her home, and assisted me in many ways during this trying period. Before the end of the vacation she gave me some work, and this, together with work in a coal-mine at some distance from my home, enabled me to earn a little money.
My good friend, Mrs. Ruffner, whom I've mentioned before, always welcomed me into her home and helped me in many ways during this tough time. Before the vacation was over, she gave me some work, and this, along with a job in a coal mine not far from my home, allowed me to make a bit of money.
At one time it looked as if I would have to give up the idea of returning to Hampton, but my heart was so set on returning that I determined not to give up going back without a struggle. I was very anxious to secure some clothes for the winter, but in this I was disappointed, except for a few garments which my brother John secured for me. Notwithstanding my need of money and clothing, I was very happy in the fact that I had secured enough money to pay my travelling expenses back to Hampton. Once there, I knew that I could make myself so useful as a janitor that I could in some way get through the school year.
At one point, it seemed like I would have to give up on the idea of going back to Hampton, but I wanted it so much that I decided not to give up without a fight. I really wanted to get some winter clothes, but I was disappointed except for a few items that my brother John was able to get for me. Even though I needed money and clothes, I felt really happy because I had managed to save enough money for my travel expenses back to Hampton. Once I got there, I knew I could be useful as a janitor and find a way to get through the school year.
Three weeks before the time for the opening of the term at Hampton, I was pleasantly surprised to receive a letter from my good friend Miss Mary F. Mackie, the lady principal, asking me to return to Hampton two weeks before the opening of the school, in order that I might assist her in cleaning the buildings and getting things in order for the new school year. This was just the opportunity I wanted. It gave me a chance to secure a credit in the treasurer's office. I started for Hampton at once.
Three weeks before the term at Hampton was set to start, I was happily surprised to get a letter from my good friend Miss Mary F. Mackie, the principal, asking me to come back to Hampton two weeks early to help her clean the buildings and prepare everything for the new school year. This was exactly the opportunity I wanted. It allowed me to earn some credit in the treasurer's office. I headed to Hampton right away.
During these two weeks I was taught a lesson which I shall never forget. Miss Mackie was a member of one of the oldest and most cultured families of the North, and yet for two weeks she worked by my side cleaning windows, dusting rooms, putting beds in order, and what not. She felt that things would not be in condition for the opening of school unless every window-pane was perfectly clean, and she took the greatest satisfaction in helping to clean them herself. The work which I have described she did every year that I was at Hampton.
During these two weeks, I learned a lesson I'll never forget. Miss Mackie came from one of the oldest and most cultured families in the North, yet for two weeks, she worked alongside me, cleaning windows, dusting rooms, making beds, and more. She believed everything needed to be perfect for the start of the school year, and she took great pride in cleaning the windows herself. This was the kind of work she did every year while I was at Hampton.
It was hard for me at this time to understand how a woman of her education and social standing could take such delight in performing such service, in order to assist in the elevation of an unfortunate race. Ever since then I have had no patience with any school for my race in the South which did not teach its students the dignity of labour.
It was difficult for me at that time to understand how a woman with her education and social status could find so much joy in doing such work to help uplift an unfortunate race. Ever since then, I have had no patience for any school for my race in the South that didn’t teach its students the value of labor.
During my last year at Hampton every minute of my time that was not occupied with my duties as janitor was devoted to hard study. I was determined, if possible, to make such a record in my class as would cause me to be placed on the "honour roll" of Commencement speakers. This I was successful in doing. It was June of 1875 when I finished the regular course of study at Hampton. The greatest benefits that I got out of my my life at the Hampton Institute, perhaps, may be classified under two heads:—
During my last year at Hampton, every minute of my time that wasn’t spent on my janitorial duties was dedicated to intense studying. I was determined to achieve a record in my class that would earn me a spot on the "honour roll" of Commencement speakers. I succeeded in this goal. It was June of 1875 when I completed the regular course of study at Hampton. The greatest benefits I gained from my time at the Hampton Institute can be categorized under two main points:—
First was contact with a great man, General S.C. Armstrong, who, I repeat, was, in my opinion, the rarest, strongest, and most beautiful character that it has ever been my privilege to meet.
First was contact with a great man, General S.C. Armstrong, who, I still believe, was the rarest, strongest, and most admirable person I have ever had the privilege to meet.
Second, at Hampton, for the first time, I learned what education was expected to do for an individual. Before going there I had a good deal of the then rather prevalent idea among our people that to secure an education meant to have a good, easy time, free from all necessity for manual labour. At Hampton I not only learned that it was not a disgrace to labour, but learned to love labour, not alone for its financial value, but for labour's own sake and for the independence and self-reliance which the ability to do something which the world wants done brings. At that institution I got my first taste of what it meant to live a life of unselfishness, my first knowledge of the fact that the happiest individuals are those who do the most to make others useful and happy.
Second, at Hampton, for the first time, I realized what education was really meant to do for a person. Before I went there, I had a pretty common belief among my community that getting an education meant having an easy life without the need for manual work. At Hampton, I discovered that it wasn’t shameful to work; I learned to appreciate labor, not just for the money it brought, but for its own sake, and for the independence and self-reliance that comes from being able to contribute to what the world needs. At that institution, I got my first taste of living a selfless life and learned that the happiest people are those who do the most to help others be useful and happy.
I was completely out of money when I graduated. In company with other Hampton students, I secured a place as a table waiter in a summer hotel in Connecticut, and managed to borrow enough money with which to get there. I had not been in this hotel long before I found out that I knew practically nothing about waiting on a hotel table. The head waiter, however, supposed that I was an accomplished waiter. He soon gave me charge of the table at which there sat four or five wealthy and rather aristocratic people. My ignorance of how to wait upon them was so apparent that they scolded me in such a severe manner that I became frightened and left their table, leaving them sitting there without food. As a result of this I was reduced from the position of waiter to that of a dish-carrier.
I was completely broke when I graduated. Along with other Hampton students, I got a job as a waiter in a summer hotel in Connecticut and managed to borrow enough money to get there. I hadn't been at the hotel long before I realized I didn't know much about serving at a hotel table. The head waiter, though, thought I was an experienced waiter. He quickly put me in charge of a table with four or five wealthy, upper-class guests. My lack of experience was so obvious that they scolded me harshly, which scared me, and I ended up walking away from their table, leaving them without food. As a result, I was demoted from waiter to dish carrier.
But I determined to learn the business of waiting, and did so within a few weeks and was restored to my former position. I have had the satisfaction of being a guest in this hotel several times since I was a waiter there.
But I decided to learn the art of waiting, and I did so within a few weeks and returned to my previous position. I have enjoyed being a guest at this hotel several times since I worked there as a waiter.
At the close of the hotel season I returned to my former home in Malden, and was elected to teach the coloured school at that place. This was the beginning of one of the happiest periods of my life. I now felt that I had the opportunity to help the people of my home town to a higher life. I felt from the first that mere book education was not all that the young people of that town needed. I began my work at eight o'clock in the morning, and, as a rule, it did not end until ten o'clock at night. In addition to the usual routine of teaching, I taught the pupils to comb their hair, and to keep their hands and faces clean, as well as their clothing. I gave special attention to teaching them the proper use of the tooth-brush and the bath. In all my teaching I have watched carefully the influence of the tooth-brush, and I am convinced that there are few single agencies of civilization that are more far-reaching.
At the end of the hotel season, I went back to my old home in Malden and was appointed to teach at the local school for kids of color. This marked the start of one of the happiest times in my life. I felt I had a real chance to help my hometown's people improve their lives. From the beginning, I knew that just academic education wasn't enough for the young people in that town. I started my work at eight in the morning, typically wrapping up around ten at night. Besides the usual teaching routine, I also taught the students how to comb their hair and keep their hands and faces clean, along with their clothes. I focused particularly on showing them the right way to use a toothbrush and take a bath. Throughout my teaching, I've closely observed the impact of the toothbrush, and I'm convinced that few things contribute to civilization as effectively as it does.
There were so many of the older boys and girls in the town, as well as men and women, who had to work in the daytime and still were craving an opportunity for an education, that I soon opened a night-school. From the first, this was crowded every night, being about as large as the school that I taught in the day. The efforts of some of the men and women, who in many cases were over fifty years of age, to learn, were in some cases very pathetic.
There were so many older kids and adults in the town who had to work during the day but still wanted a chance to get an education that I quickly opened a night school. From the start, it was packed every night, about as big as the school I taught during the day. The determination of some of the men and women, many of whom were over fifty, to learn was sometimes really moving.
My day and night school work was not all that I undertook. I established a small reading-room and a debating society. On Sundays I taught two Sunday-schools, one in the town of Malden in the afternoon, and the other in the morning at a place three miles distant from Malden. In addition to this, I gave private lessons to several young men whom I was fitting to send to the Hampton Institute. Without regard to pay and with little thought of it, I taught any one who wanted to learn anything that I could teach him. I was supremely happy in the opportunity of being able to assist somebody else. I did receive, however, a small salary from the public fund, for my work as a public-school teacher.
My schoolwork during the day and night was just part of what I did. I set up a small reading room and a debate club. On Sundays, I taught at two Sunday schools—one in Malden in the afternoon and another about three miles away in the morning. On top of that, I gave private lessons to several young men whom I was preparing to send to the Hampton Institute. I didn't care about pay and barely thought about it; I taught anyone who wanted to learn something I could teach. I felt incredibly happy to have the chance to help others. However, I did receive a small salary from the public fund for my work as a public school teacher.
During the time that I was a student at Hampton my older brother, John, not only assisted me all that he could, but worked all of the time in the coal-mines in order to support the family. He willingly neglected his own education that he might help me. It was my earnest wish to help him to prepare to enter Hampton, and to save money to assist him in his expenses there. Both of these objects I was successful in accomplishing. In three years my brother finished the course at Hampton, and he is now holding the important position of Superintendent of Industries at Tuskegee. When he returned from Hampton, we both combined our efforts and savings to send our adopted brother, James, through the Hampton Institute. This we succeeded in doing, and he is now the postmaster at the Tuskegee Institute. The year 1877, which was my second year of teaching in Malden, I spent very much as I did the first.
During my time as a student at Hampton, my older brother, John, not only helped me as much as he could, but also worked constantly in the coal mines to support our family. He willingly put his own education aside to assist me. I was determined to help him prepare for Hampton and save money to cover his expenses there. I accomplished both of these goals. In three years, my brother completed the course at Hampton, and now he holds the significant position of Superintendent of Industries at Tuskegee. When he returned from Hampton, we pooled our efforts and savings to send our adopted brother, James, through the Hampton Institute. We succeeded in that, and he is now the postmaster at the Tuskegee Institute. In 1877, which was my second year of teaching in Malden, I spent it much the same way as my first year.
It was while my home was at Malden that what was known as the "Ku Klux Klan" was in the height of its activity. The "Ku Klux" were bands of men who had joined themselves together for the purpose of regulating the conduct of the coloured people, especially with the object of preventing the members of the race from exercising any influence in politics. They corresponded somewhat to the "patrollers" of whom I used to hear a great deal during the days of slavery, when I was a small boy. The "patrollers" were bands of white men—usually young men—who were organized largely for the purpose of regulating the conduct of the slaves at night in such matters as preventing the slaves from going from one plantation to another without passes, and for preventing them from holding any kind of meetings without permission and without the presence at these meetings of at least one white man.
It was while I was living in Malden that the "Ku Klux Klan" was at the height of its activity. The "Ku Klux" were groups of men who came together to control the behavior of Black people, mainly to stop them from having any influence in politics. They were somewhat similar to the "patrollers" I had heard a lot about during the days of slavery when I was a young boy. The "patrollers" were groups of white men—usually young men—who were mainly organized to regulate the behavior of enslaved people at night, such as keeping them from moving between plantations without passes, and preventing them from having any kind of meetings without permission and without at least one white man present at those meetings.
Like the "patrollers" the "Ku Klux" operated almost wholly at night. They were, however, more cruel than the "patrollers." Their objects, in the main, were to crush out the political aspirations of the Negroes, but they did not confine themselves to this, because schoolhouses as well as churches were burned by them, and many innocent persons were made to suffer. During this period not a few coloured people lost their lives.
Like the "patrollers," the "Ku Klux" operated mostly at night. However, they were even more brutal than the "patrollers." Their main goal was to extinguish the political ambitions of Black people, but they didn’t stop there; they also burned down schools and churches, causing many innocent people to suffer. During this time, quite a few Black individuals lost their lives.
As a young man, the acts of these lawless bands made a great impression upon me. I saw one open battle take place at Malden between some of the coloured and white people. There must have been not far from a hundred persons engaged on each side; many on both sides were seriously injured, among them General Lewis Ruffner, the husband of my friend Mrs. Viola Ruffner. General Ruffner tried to defend the coloured people, and for this he was knocked down and so seriously wounded that he never completely recovered. It seemed to me as I watched this struggle between members of the two races, that there was no hope for our people in this country. The "Ku Klux" period was, I think, the darkest part of the Reconstruction days.
As a young man, the actions of these lawless groups really impacted me. I witnessed an open battle at Malden between some of the Black and white people. There were probably about a hundred people on each side; many on both sides were seriously hurt, including General Lewis Ruffner, the husband of my friend Mrs. Viola Ruffner. General Ruffner tried to defend the Black community, and because of that, he was knocked down and so badly injured that he never fully recovered. As I watched this conflict between the two races, it felt like there was no hope for our people in this country. The "Ku Klux" era was, I believe, the darkest part of the Reconstruction period.
I have referred to this unpleasant part of the history of the South simply for the purpose of calling attention to the great change that has taken place since the days of the "Ku Klux." To-day there are no such organizations in the South, and the fact that such ever existed is almost forgotten by both races. There are few places in the South now where public sentiment would permit such organizations to exist.
I mentioned this uncomfortable part of the South's history just to highlight the significant change that has occurred since the days of the "Ku Klux." Today, there are no such organizations in the South, and the fact that they ever existed is nearly forgotten by both races. There are now very few places in the South where public opinion would allow such organizations to exist.
Chapter V. The Reconstruction Period
The years from 1867 to 1878 I think may be called the period of Reconstruction. This included the time that I spent as a student at Hampton and as a teacher in West Virginia. During the whole of the Reconstruction period two ideas were constantly agitating in the minds of the coloured people, or, at least, in the minds of a large part of the race. One of these was the craze for Greek and Latin learning, and the other was a desire to hold office.
The years from 1867 to 1878 can be referred to as the period of Reconstruction. This was the time I spent as a student at Hampton and as a teacher in West Virginia. Throughout the Reconstruction period, two ideas were constantly on the minds of Black people, or at least a significant portion of the community. One was the obsession with Greek and Latin education, and the other was a desire to hold political office.
It could not have been expected that a people who had spent generations in slavery, and before that generations in the darkest heathenism, could at first form any proper conception of what an education meant. In every part of the South, during the Reconstruction period, schools, both day and night, were filled to overflowing with people of all ages and conditions, some being as far along in age as sixty and seventy years. The ambition to secure an education was most praiseworthy and encouraging. The idea, however, was too prevalent that, as soon as one secured a little education, in some unexplainable way he would be free from most of the hardships of the world, and, at any rate, could live without manual labour. There was a further feeling that a knowledge, however little, of the Greek and Latin languages would make one a very superior human being, something bordering almost on the supernatural. I remember that the first coloured man whom I saw who knew something about foreign languages impressed me at the time as being a man of all others to be envied.
It was unrealistic to expect that a people who had spent generations in slavery, and before that generations in deep ignorance, could initially have a solid understanding of what education really meant. Throughout the South during the Reconstruction period, schools—both day and night—were packed with people of all ages and backgrounds, some as old as sixty and seventy. The drive to get an education was truly commendable and inspiring. However, there was a common belief that once someone gained a little education, they would somehow be free from most of life’s struggles and could live without manual labor. Another notion was that even a basic knowledge of Greek and Latin would elevate someone to a nearly superior level of being. I remember the first Black man I saw who knew something about foreign languages left a strong impression on me, making him seem like someone to be envied above all others.
Naturally, most of our people who received some little education became teachers or preachers. While among those two classes there were many capable, earnest, godly men and women, still a large proportion took up teaching or preaching as an easy way to make a living. Many became teachers who could do little more than write their names. I remember there came into our neighbourhood one of this class, who was in search of a school to teach, and the question arose while he was there as to the shape of the earth and how he could teach the children concerning the subject. He explained his position in the matter by saying that he was prepared to teach that the earth was either flat or round, according to the preference of a majority of his patrons.
Naturally, most of the people in our community who received a bit of education became teachers or preachers. While there were many capable, sincere, and religious men and women among these groups, a large number chose teaching or preaching as an easy way to earn a living. Many teachers could do little more than write their names. I remember one of these individuals came into our neighborhood looking for a school to teach at, and the question arose about the shape of the earth and how he could teach the children about it. He explained his stance by saying he was willing to teach that the earth was either flat or round, depending on what the majority of his patrons preferred.
The ministry was the profession that suffered most—and still suffers, though there has been great improvement—on account of not only ignorant but in many cases immoral men who claimed that they were "called to preach." In the earlier days of freedom almost every coloured man who learned to read would receive "a call to preach" within a few days after he began reading. At my home in West Virginia the process of being called to the ministry was a very interesting one. Usually the "call" came when the individual was sitting in church. Without warning the one called would fall upon the floor as if struck by a bullet, and would lie there for hours, speechless and motionless. Then the news would spread all through the neighborhood that this individual had received a "call." If he were inclined to resist the summons, he would fall or be made to fall a second or third time. In the end he always yielded to the call. While I wanted an education badly, I confess that in my youth I had a fear that when I had learned to read and write very well I would receive one of these "calls"; but, for some reason, my call never came.
The ministry was the profession that suffered the most—and still suffers, though there has been significant improvement—due to not only ignorant but often immoral men who claimed they were “called to preach.” In the early days of freedom, almost every person of color who learned to read would receive a “call to preach” within a few days of starting to read. At my home in West Virginia, the process of being called to the ministry was quite interesting. Usually, the “call” came when the person was sitting in church. Without any warning, the one called would collapse on the floor as if struck by a bullet and would lie there for hours, speechless and motionless. Then, the news would spread throughout the neighborhood that this person had received a “call.” If he tried to resist the summons, he would fall or be made to fall a second or third time. In the end, he always gave in to the call. While I really wanted an education, I admit that in my youth, I was afraid that once I learned to read and write well, I would receive one of these “calls”; but, for some reason, my call never came.
When we add the number of wholly ignorant men who preached or "exhorted" to that of those who possessed something of an education, it can be seen at a glance that the supply of ministers was large. In fact, some time ago I knew a certain church that had a total membership of about two hundred, and eighteen of that number were ministers. But, I repeat, in many communities in the South the character of the ministry is being improved, and I believe that within the next two or three decades a very large proportion of the unworthy ones will have disappeared. The "calls" to preach, I am glad to say, are not nearly so numerous now as they were formerly, and the calls to some industrial occupation are growing more numerous. The improvement that has taken place in the character of the teachers is even more marked than in the case of the ministers.
When we consider the number of completely uneducated men who preached or "exhorted" alongside those who had some education, it’s clear that there was a large supply of ministers. In fact, I remember a church with about two hundred members, and eighteen of them were ministers. However, I want to emphasize that in many Southern communities, the quality of the ministry is getting better, and I believe that in the next two or three decades, a significant number of unworthy ministers will be gone. I'm happy to say that the number of "calls" to preach isn’t nearly as high now as it used to be, while the calls to various industrial jobs are increasing. The improvement in the quality of teachers is even more noticeable than that of the ministers.
During the whole of the Reconstruction period our people throughout the South looked to the Federal Government for everything, very much as a child looks to its mother. This was not unnatural. The central government gave them freedom, and the whole Nation had been enriched for more than two centuries by the labour of the Negro. Even as a youth, and later in manhood, I had the feeling that it was cruelly wrong in the central government, at the beginning of our freedom, to fail to make some provision for the general education of our people in addition to what the states might do, so that the people would be the better prepared for the duties of citizenship.
During the entire Reconstruction period, our people in the South relied on the Federal Government for everything, much like a child depends on its mother. This was not unusual. The central government granted them freedom, and the whole Nation had benefited for over two centuries from the labor of Black people. Even as a young person and later in adulthood, I felt it was terribly wrong for the central government, at the start of our freedom, to neglect to provide for the overall education of our people, in addition to what the states might offer, so that everyone would be better prepared for the responsibilities of citizenship.
It is easy to find fault, to remark what might have been done, and perhaps, after all, and under all the circumstances, those in charge of the conduct of affairs did the only thing that could be done at the time. Still, as I look back now over the entire period of our freedom, I cannot help feeling that it would have been wiser if some plan could have been put in operation which would have made the possession of a certain amount of education or property, or both, a test for the exercise of the franchise, and a way provided by which this test should be made to apply honestly and squarely to both the white and black races.
It's easy to criticize and suggest what could have been done differently. Maybe, considering everything, those in charge acted in the only way possible at the time. However, looking back on our whole period of freedom, I can't shake the feeling that it would have been smarter to implement a plan that required a certain level of education or property, or both, as a condition for voting. There should have been a system in place to ensure this requirement was applied fairly and equally to both white and black individuals.
Though I was but little more than a youth during the period of Reconstruction, I had the feeling that mistakes were being made, and that things could not remain in the condition that they were in then very long. I felt that the Reconstruction policy, so far as it related to my race, was in a large measure on a false foundation, was artificial and forced. In many cases it seemed to me that the ignorance of my race was being used as a tool with which to help white men into office, and that there was an element in the North which wanted to punish the Southern white men by forcing the Negro into positions over the heads of the Southern whites. I felt that the Negro would be the one to suffer for this in the end. Besides, the general political agitation drew the attention of our people away from the more fundamental matters of perfecting themselves in the industries at their doors and in securing property.
Though I was just a bit more than a teenager during the Reconstruction period, I sensed that mistakes were being made and that things couldn't stay as they were for long. I believed that the Reconstruction policy, especially in relation to my race, was largely based on a shaky foundation; it felt artificial and forced. In many instances, it seemed to me that my people's ignorance was being used as a tool to help white men get into office, and there was a faction in the North that wanted to punish Southern whites by placing Black individuals in positions over them. I felt that it would be the Black community that would ultimately suffer from this. Moreover, the overall political turmoil distracted our people from focusing on the more essential issues of improving themselves in the local industries and securing property.
The temptations to enter political life were so alluring that I came very near yielding to them at one time, but I was kept from doing so by the feeling that I would be helping in a more substantial way by assisting in the laying of the foundation of the race through a generous education of the hand, head, and heart. I saw coloured men who were members of the state legislatures, and county officers, who, in some cases, could not read or write, and whose morals were as weak as their education. Not long ago, when passing through the streets of a certain city in the South, I heard some brick-masons calling out, from the top of a two-story brick building on which they were working, for the "Governor" to "hurry up and bring up some more bricks." Several times I heard the command, "Hurry up, Governor!" "Hurry up, Governor!" My curiosity was aroused to such an extent that I made inquiry as to who the "Governor" was, and soon found that he was a coloured man who at one time had held the position of Lieutenant-Governor of his state.
The temptations of getting into politics were so tempting that I almost gave in at one point, but I held back because I thought I could make a bigger impact by helping to build a strong foundation for my community through a quality education of the mind, body, and spirit. I noticed that there were Black men serving in the state legislatures and as county officials who, in some cases, couldn’t read or write, and whose values were just as underdeveloped as their education. Recently, while walking through the streets of a city in the South, I heard some bricklayers shouting from the top of a two-story brick building where they were working, calling for the "Governor" to "hurry up and bring us more bricks." I heard the shouts, "Hurry up, Governor!" "Hurry up, Governor!" My curiosity was piqued, so I asked around to find out who the "Governor" was, and I soon learned that he was a Black man who once held the position of Lieutenant Governor of his state.
But not all the coloured people who were in office during Reconstruction were unworthy of their positions, by any means. Some of them, like the late Senator B.K. Bruce, Governor Pinchback, and many others, were strong, upright, useful men. Neither were all the class designated as carpetbaggers dishonourable men. Some of them, like ex-Governor Bullock, of Georgia, were men of high character and usefulness.
But not all the people of color in office during Reconstruction were unworthy of their positions, by any means. Some of them, like the late Senator B.K. Bruce, Governor Pinchback, and many others, were strong, principled, and valuable leaders. Not all of those labeled as carpetbaggers were dishonorable either. Some, like former Governor Bullock of Georgia, were individuals of high character and worth.
Of course the coloured people, so largely without education, and wholly without experience in government, made tremendous mistakes, just as many people similarly situated would have done. Many of the Southern whites have a feeling that, if the Negro is permitted to exercise his political rights now to any degree, the mistakes of the Reconstruction period will repeat themselves. I do not think this would be true, because the Negro is a much stronger and wiser man than he was thirty-five years ago, and he is fast learning the lesson that he cannot afford to act in a manner that will alienate his Southern white neighbours from him. More and more I am convinced that the final solution of the political end of our race problem will be for each state that finds it necessary to change the law bearing upon the franchise to make the law apply with absolute honesty, and without opportunity for double dealing or evasion, to both races alike. Any other course my daily observation in the South convinces me, will be unjust to the Negro, unjust to the white man, and unfair to the rest of the state in the Union, and will be, like slavery, a sin that at some time we shall have to pay for.
Of course, the people of color, largely uneducated and with no experience in government, made huge mistakes, just as many others in similar situations would have. Many Southern whites feel that if African Americans are allowed to exercise their political rights to any extent now, the mistakes of the Reconstruction era will happen again. I don't think that will happen because African Americans are much stronger and wiser now than they were thirty-five years ago, and they are quickly learning that they cannot afford to act in ways that push their Southern white neighbors away. I am increasingly convinced that the best solution for our racial political issues will be for each state that needs to change the laws regarding voting to enforce those laws honestly, without any chance for manipulation or evasion, for both races equally. Any other approach, based on my daily observations in the South, will be unfair to African Americans, unfair to white people, and unjust to the rest of the country, and it will be, like slavery, a wrong that we will ultimately have to confront.
In the fall of 1878, after having taught school in Malden for two years, and after I had succeeded in preparing several of the young men and women, besides my two brothers, to enter the Hampton Institute, I decided to spend some months in study at Washington, D.C. I remained there for eight months. I derived a great deal of benefit from the studies which I pursued, and I came into contact with some strong men and women. At the institution I attended there was no industrial training given to the students, and I had an opportunity of comparing the influence of an institution with no industrial training with that of one like the Hampton Institute, that emphasizes the industries. At this school I found the students, in most cases, had more money, were better dressed, wore the latest style of all manner of clothing, and in some cases were more brilliant mentally. At Hampton it was a standing rule that, while the institution would be responsible for securing some one to pay the tuition for the students, the men and women themselves must provide for their own board, books, clothing, and room wholly by work, or partly by work and partly in cash. At the institution at which I now was, I found that a large portion of the students by some means had their personal expenses paid for them. At Hampton the student was constantly making the effort through the industries to help himself, and that very effort was of immense value in character-building. The students at the other school seemed to be less self-dependent. They seemed to give more attention to mere outward appearances. In a word, they did not appear to me to be beginning at the bottom, on a real, solid foundation, to the extent that they were at Hampton. They knew more about Latin and Greek when they left school, but they seemed to know less about life and its conditions as they would meet it at their homes. Having lived for a number of years in the midst of comfortable surroundings, they were not as much inclined as the Hampton students to go into the country districts of the South, where there was little of comfort, to take up work for our people, and they were more inclined to yield to the temptation to become hotel waiters and Pullman-car porters as their life-work.
In the fall of 1878, after teaching in Malden for two years and helping several young men and women, including my two brothers, prepare for the Hampton Institute, I decided to spend a few months studying in Washington, D.C. I stayed there for eight months. I gained a lot from my studies and met some impressive men and women. At the institution I attended, there was no industrial training for the students, and I was able to compare the impact of a school without industrial training to one like Hampton that focuses on vocational education. At this school, I found that most students had more money, were better dressed, wore the latest styles of clothing, and in some cases, were more intellectually gifted. At Hampton, it was a standard rule that while the institution would find someone to cover tuition, the students themselves had to pay for their own food, books, clothing, and housing entirely through work, or a mix of work and cash. At the institution I was attending, I noticed that many students had their personal expenses covered by someone else. At Hampton, students actively worked to support themselves, and that effort was crucial for building their character. The students at the other school seemed less self-reliant and focused more on appearances. In short, they didn’t appear to be starting from a solid foundation as much as the students at Hampton. They knew more Latin and Greek when they graduated, but they seemed to understand less about life and the realities they would face at home. Having lived for several years in comfortable settings, they weren’t as inclined as Hampton students to go into the rural areas of the South, where life was more challenging, to work with our people. Instead, they were more tempted to become hotel waiters and Pullman-car porters as their career paths.
During the time I was a student at Washington the city was crowded with coloured people, many of whom had recently come from the South. A large proportion of these people had been drawn to Washington because they felt that they could lead a life of ease there. Others had secured minor government positions, and still another large class was there in the hope of securing Federal positions. A number of coloured men—some of them very strong and brilliant—were in the House of Representatives at that time, and one, the Hon. B.K. Bruce, was in the Senate. All this tended to make Washington an attractive place for members of the coloured race. Then, too, they knew that at all times they could have the protection of the law in the District of Columbia. The public schools in Washington for coloured people were better then than they were elsewhere. I took great interest in studying the life of our people there closely at that time. I found that while among them there was a large element of substantial, worthy citizens, there was also a superficiality about the life of a large class that greatly alarmed me. I saw young coloured men who were not earning more than four dollars a week spend two dollars or more for a buggy on Sunday to ride up and down Pennsylvania Avenue in, in order that they might try to convince the world that they were worth thousands. I saw other young men who received seventy-five or one hundred dollars per month from the Government, who were in debt at the end of every month. I saw men who but a few months previous were members of Congress, then without employment and in poverty. Among a large class there seemed to be a dependence upon the Government for every conceivable thing. The members of this class had little ambition to create a position for themselves, but wanted the Federal officials to create one for them. How many times I wished then, and have often wished since, that by some power of magic I might remove the great bulk of these people into the county districts and plant them upon the soil, upon the solid and never deceptive foundation of Mother Nature, where all nations and races that have ever succeeded have gotten their start,—a start that at first may be slow and toilsome, but one that nevertheless is real.
When I was a student in Washington, the city was bustling with Black residents, many of whom had recently migrated from the South. A large number of these individuals were drawn to Washington because they believed they could live comfortably there. Others had obtained minor government jobs, and still another significant group was hoping to secure federal positions. Several Black men—some very capable and intelligent—were serving in the House of Representatives at that time, and one, the Hon. B.K. Bruce, even held a seat in the Senate. All of this made Washington an appealing place for members of the Black community. Additionally, they knew they could count on legal protections in the District of Columbia. The public schools for Black people in Washington were better than those elsewhere. I was deeply interested in closely observing our community there during that time. I discovered that while there was a substantial group of responsible, admirable citizens, there was also a concerning superficiality in the lives of many. I saw young Black men earning as little as four dollars a week spend two dollars or more on a carriage ride every Sunday, trying to impress others into believing they were wealthy. I noticed other young men who received seventy-five or one hundred dollars a month from the government yet ended up in debt by the end of each month. I witnessed men who just a few months earlier were members of Congress now struggling without jobs and in poverty. Among many, there seemed to be a reliance on the government for every possible need. Members of this group showed little ambition to carve out their own path; they wanted federal officials to create opportunities for them. How many times I wished then, and have often wished since, that somehow I could magically move a vast majority of these people into rural areas and connect them to the land, to the firm and unwavering foundation of Mother Nature, where all successful nations and races have begun—a journey that may start slowly and be challenging, but is nonetheless genuine.
In Washington I saw girls whose mothers were earning their living by laundrying. These girls were taught by their mothers, in rather a crude way it is true, the industry of laundrying. Later, these girls entered the public schools and remained there perhaps six or eight years. When the public school course was finally finished, they wanted more costly dresses, more costly hats and shoes. In a word, while their wants have been increased, their ability to supply their wants had not been increased in the same degree. On the other hand, their six or eight years of book education had weaned them away from the occupation of their mothers. The result of this was in too many cases that the girls went to the bad. I often thought how much wiser it would have been to give these girls the same amount of maternal training—and I favour any kind of training, whether in the languages or mathematics, that gives strength and culture to the mind—but at the same time to give them the most thorough training in the latest and best methods of laundrying and other kindred occupations.
In Washington, I saw girls whose mothers made a living doing laundry. These girls were taught by their mothers, albeit in a rather basic way, the art of laundry work. Later, they attended public schools for about six to eight years. After completing their education, they wanted more expensive dresses, hats, and shoes. In short, while their wants had grown, their ability to meet those wants hadn’t increased at the same rate. On the flip side, their years in school had distanced them from their mothers’ profession. As a result, too many of these girls ended up lost. I often thought it would have been much smarter to provide them with the same level of maternal training—and I support any training that strengthens and enriches the mind, whether in languages or math—but to also ensure they received comprehensive training in the most up-to-date and effective laundry techniques and similar jobs.
Chapter VI. Black Race And Red Race
During the year that I spent in Washington, and for some little time before this, there had been considerable agitation in the state of West Virginia over the question of moving the capital of the state from Wheeling to some other central point. As a result of this, the Legislature designated three cities to be voted upon by the citizens of the state as the permanent seat of government. Among these cities was Charleston, only five miles from Malden, my home. At the close of my school year in Washington I was very pleasantly surprised to receive, from a committee of three white people in Charleston, an invitation to canvass the state in the interests of that city. This invitation I accepted, and spent nearly three months in speaking in various parts of the state. Charleston was successful in winning the prize, and is now the permanent seat of government.
During the year I spent in Washington, and for a little while before that, there was significant debate in West Virginia about moving the state capital from Wheeling to a more central location. As a result, the Legislature chose three cities for the citizens to vote on as the permanent seat of government. One of these cities was Charleston, just five miles from Malden, my home. At the end of my school year in Washington, I was pleasantly surprised to receive an invitation from a committee of three people in Charleston to campaign for their city. I accepted the invitation and spent nearly three months speaking in different parts of the state. Charleston successfully won the bid and is now the permanent seat of government.
The reputation that I made as a speaker during this campaign induced a number of persons to make an earnest effort to get me to enter political life, but I refused, still believing that I could find other service which would prove of more permanent value to my race. Even then I had a strong feeling that what our people most needed was to get a foundation in education, industry, and property, and for this I felt that they could better afford to strive than for political preferment. As for my individual self, it appeared to me to be reasonably certain that I could succeed in political life, but I had a feeling that it would be a rather selfish kind of success—individual success at the cost of failing to do my duty in assisting in laying a foundation for the masses.
The reputation I built as a speaker during this campaign led many people to seriously encourage me to enter politics, but I turned it down, still believing that I could find other ways to serve my community that would have more lasting value. Even then, I strongly felt that what our people needed most was to establish a foundation in education, work, and wealth, and that they would be better off striving for these than for political positions. As for myself, I felt pretty confident that I could succeed in politics, but I worried it would be a rather selfish kind of success—personal success at the expense of failing to help build a foundation for the community.
At this period in the progress of our race a very large proportion of the young men who went to school or to college did so with the expressed determination to prepare themselves to be great lawyers, or Congressmen, and many of the women planned to become music teachers; but I had a reasonably fixed idea, even at that early period in my life, that there was a need for something to be done to prepare the way for successful lawyers, Congressmen, and music teachers.
At this time in the development of our society, a significant number of young men who attended school or college did so with the clear goal of becoming great lawyers or Congressmen, while many women aimed to become music teachers. However, I had a fairly strong belief, even at that young age, that there was a need to pave the way for successful lawyers, Congressmen, and music teachers.
I felt that the conditions were a good deal like those of an old coloured man, during the days of slavery, who wanted to learn how to play on the guitar. In his desire to take guitar lessons he applied to one of his young masters to teach him, but the young man, not having much faith in the ability of the slave to master the guitar at his age, sought to discourage him by telling him: "Uncle Jake, I will give you guitar lessons; but, Jake, I will have to charge you three dollars for the first lesson, two dollars for the second lesson, and one dollar for the third lesson. But I will charge you only twenty-five cents for the last lesson."
I thought the situation was a lot like that of an old Black man during slavery who wanted to learn to play the guitar. Eager to take lessons, he asked one of his young masters for help, but the young man, doubting the slave's ability to learn the guitar at his age, tried to dissuade him by saying, "Uncle Jake, I can teach you the guitar; however, I’ll need to charge you three dollars for the first lesson, two dollars for the second lesson, and one dollar for the third lesson. But the last lesson will only cost you twenty-five cents."
Uncle Jake answered: "All right, boss, I hires you on dem terms. But, boss! I wants yer to be sure an' give me dat las' lesson first."
Uncle Jake replied, "Okay, boss, I agree to those terms. But, boss! I want you to make sure to give me that last lesson first."
Soon after my work in connection with the removal of the capital was finished, I received an invitation which gave me great joy and which at the same time was a very pleasant surprise. This was a letter from General Armstrong, inviting me to return to Hampton at the next Commencement to deliver what was called the "post-graduate address." This was an honour which I had not dreamed of receiving. With much care I prepared the best address that I was capable of. I chose for my subject "The Force That Wins."
Soon after I wrapped up my work related to relocating the capital, I got an invitation that brought me immense joy and was also a delightful surprise. It was a letter from General Armstrong, inviting me to come back to Hampton for the next Commencement to give what was called the "post-graduate address." This was an honor I hadn’t even imagined receiving. I took a lot of care in preparing the best address I could. I decided to focus on the topic "The Force That Wins."
As I returned to Hampton for the purpose of delivering this address, I went over much of the same ground—now, however, covered entirely by railroad—that I had traversed nearly six years before, when I first sought entrance into Hampton Institute as a student. Now I was able to ride the whole distance in the train. I was constantly contrasting this with my first journey to Hampton. I think I may say, without seeming egotism, that it is seldom that five years have wrought such a change in the life and aspirations of an individual.
As I went back to Hampton to give this speech, I traveled over many of the same areas—now completely covered by railroad tracks—that I had crossed nearly six years earlier when I first tried to enroll at Hampton Institute as a student. This time, I could ride the entire distance on the train. I kept comparing this trip to my first journey to Hampton. I can confidently say, without sounding boastful, that it’s rare for just five years to bring such a change in a person’s life and goals.
At Hampton I received a warm welcome from teachers and students. I found that during my absence from Hampton the institute each year had been getting closer to the real needs and conditions of our people; that the industrial teaching, as well as that of the academic department, had greatly improved. The plan of the school was not modelled after that of any other institution then in existence, but every improvement was made under the magnificent leadership of General Armstrong solely with the view of meeting and helping the needs of our people as they presented themselves at the time. Too often, it seems to me, in missionary and educational work among underdeveloped races, people yield to the temptation of doing that which was done a hundred years before, or is being done in other communities a thousand miles away. The temptation often is to run each individual through a certain educational mould, regardless of the condition of the subject or the end to be accomplished. This was not so at Hampton Institute.
At Hampton, I received a warm welcome from both teachers and students. I discovered that during my time away, the institute had increasingly aligned itself with the actual needs and conditions of our people; both industrial and academic programs had significantly improved. The school's approach was not modeled after any existing institution; rather, every enhancement was made under the exceptional leadership of General Armstrong, focused solely on addressing and assisting the needs of our people as they arose. Too often, it seems to me, in missionary and educational efforts among underdeveloped communities, people give in to the urge to replicate what was done a century ago or what is being done in other places far away. There is often a temptation to fit every individual into a specific educational mold, regardless of their circumstances or the goals to be achieved. This was not the case at Hampton Institute.
The address which I delivered on Commencement Day seems to have pleased every one, and many kind and encouraging words were spoken to me regarding it. Soon after my return to my home in West Virginia, where I had planned to continue teaching, I was again surprised to receive a letter from General Armstrong, asking me to return to Hampton partly as a teacher and partly to pursue some supplementary studies. This was in the summer of 1879. Soon after I began my first teaching in West Virginia I had picked out four of the brightest and most promising of my pupils, in addition to my two brothers, to whom I have already referred, and had given them special attention, with the view of having them go to Hampton. They had gone there, and in each case the teachers had found them so well prepared that they entered advanced classes. This fact, it seems, led to my being called back to Hampton as a teacher. One of the young men that I sent to Hampton in this way is now Dr. Samuel E. Courtney, a successful physician in Boston, and a member of the School Board of that city.
The speech I gave on Commencement Day seemed to make everyone happy, and I received many kind and encouraging comments about it. Shortly after returning home to West Virginia, where I had planned to keep teaching, I was surprised again to get a letter from General Armstrong, asking me to come back to Hampton, partly as a teacher and partly to continue my studies. This was in the summer of 1879. Soon after I started teaching in West Virginia, I chose four of my brightest and most promising students, along with my two brothers, whom I had already mentioned, and I focused special attention on them to help them go to Hampton. They got accepted, and the teachers there found them so well prepared that they placed them in advanced classes. This seems to have led to my return to Hampton as a teacher. One of the young men I sent to Hampton in this way is now Dr. Samuel E. Courtney, a successful doctor in Boston, and a member of the School Board there.
About this time the experiment was being tried for the first time, by General Armstrong, of educating Indians at Hampton. Few people then had any confidence in the ability of the Indians to receive education and to profit by it. General Armstrong was anxious to try the experiment systematically on a large scale. He secured from the reservations in the Western states over one hundred wild and for the most part perfectly ignorant Indians, the greater proportion of whom were young men. The special work which the General desired me to do was to be a sort of "house father" to the Indian young men—that is, I was to live in the building with them and have the charge of their discipline, clothing, rooms, and so on. This was a very tempting offer, but I had become so much absorbed in my work in West Virginia that I dreaded to give it up. However, I tore myself away from it. I did not know how to refuse to perform any service that General Armstrong desired of me.
Around this time, General Armstrong was trying out an experiment for the first time: educating Native Americans at Hampton. Back then, not many people believed in the ability of Native Americans to learn and benefit from education. General Armstrong was eager to carry out this experiment on a larger scale. He brought over a hundred wild and mostly completely uneducated Native Americans from reservations in the Western states, mostly young men. The specific role that General wanted me to take on was to act as a sort of "house father" to the young Native men—that is, I would live in the building with them and be responsible for their discipline, clothing, rooms, and so on. It was a very appealing offer, but I had become so involved in my work in West Virginia that I was reluctant to give it up. Still, I managed to pull myself away from it. I didn't know how to turn down any request that General Armstrong had for me.
On going to Hampton, I took up my residence in a building with about seventy-five Indian youths. I was the only person in the building who was not a member of their race. At first I had a good deal of doubt about my ability to succeed. I knew that the average Indian felt himself above the white man, and, of course, he felt himself far above the Negro, largely on account of the fact of the Negro having submitted to slavery—a thing which the Indian would never do. The Indians, in the Indian Territory, owned a large number of slaves during the days of slavery. Aside from this, there was a general feeling that the attempt to educate and civilize the red men at Hampton would be a failure. All this made me proceed very cautiously, for I felt keenly the great responsibility. But I was determined to succeed. It was not long before I had the complete confidence of the Indians, and not only this, but I think I am safe in saying that I had their love and respect. I found that they were about like any other human beings; that they responded to kind treatment and resented ill-treatment. They were continually planning to do something that would add to my happiness and comfort. The things that they disliked most, I think, were to have their long hair cut, to give up wearing their blankets, and to cease smoking; but no white American ever thinks that any other race is wholly civilized until he wears the white man's clothes, eats the white man's food, speaks the white man's language, and professes the white man's religion.
When I moved to Hampton, I lived in a building with about seventy-five Indian youths. I was the only person in the building who wasn’t part of their race. At first, I doubted my ability to succeed. I knew that the average Indian viewed himself as superior to white people and, of course, felt far superior to Black people, mainly because Black people had submitted to slavery—a situation the Indian would never accept. In the Indian Territory, many of the Indians owned a significant number of slaves during the slavery era. Besides this, there was a widespread belief that efforts to educate and civilize Native Americans at Hampton would fail. All of this made me proceed very cautiously, as I felt the weight of the responsibility. But I was determined to make it work. It wasn’t long before I earned the complete trust of the Indians, and I believe I can say that I had their love and respect as well. I found that they were just like anyone else; they responded positively to kindness and resented being mistreated. They were always looking for ways to enhance my happiness and comfort. What they disliked the most were having their long hair cut, giving up their blankets, and stopping smoking; however, no white American ever believes that any other race is fully civilized until they wear white clothing, eat white food, speak the white language, and practice the white religion.
When the difficulty of learning the English language was subtracted, I found that in the matter of learning trades and in mastering academic studies there was little difference between the coloured and Indian students. It was a constant delight to me to note the interest which the coloured students took in trying to help the Indians in every way possible. There were a few of the coloured students who felt that the Indians ought not to be admitted to Hampton, but these were in the minority. Whenever they were asked to do so, the Negro students gladly took the Indians as room-mates, in order that they might teach them to speak English and to acquire civilized habits.
When the challenge of learning English was removed, I realized there was little difference between the colored and Indian students in terms of learning trades and mastering academic subjects. I was consistently delighted to see how eager the colored students were to assist the Indians in every possible way. A few colored students believed that Indians shouldn’t be admitted to Hampton, but they were in the minority. Whenever asked, the Black students happily welcomed the Indians as roommates to help them learn to speak English and develop civilized habits.
I have often wondered if there was a white institution in this country whose students would have welcomed the incoming of more than a hundred companions of another race in the cordial way that these black students at Hampton welcomed the red ones. How often I have wanted to say to white students that they lift themselves up in proportion as they help to lift others, and the more unfortunate the race, and the lower in the scale of civilization, the more does one raise one's self by giving the assistance.
I have often wondered if there is a white institution in this country whose students would have welcomed over a hundred peers of another race as warmly as these Black students at Hampton welcomed the Native American ones. How many times have I wanted to tell white students that they elevate themselves as they help elevate others, and the more disadvantaged the race and the lower on the scale of civilization, the more one raises oneself by offering assistance.
This reminds me of a conversation which I once had with the Hon. Frederick Douglass. At one time Mr. Douglass was travelling in the state of Pennsylvania, and was forced, on account of his colour, to ride in the baggage-car, in spite of the fact that he had paid the same price for his passage that the other passengers had paid. When some of the white passengers went into the baggage-car to console Mr. Douglass, and one of them said to him: "I am sorry, Mr. Douglass, that you have been degraded in this manner," Mr. Douglass straightened himself up on the box upon which he was sitting, and replied: "They cannot degrade Frederick Douglass. The soul that is within me no man can degrade. I am not the one that is being degraded on account of this treatment, but those who are inflicting it upon me."
This reminds me of a conversation I once had with the Hon. Frederick Douglass. At one point, Mr. Douglass was traveling in Pennsylvania and was forced, because of his color, to ride in the baggage car, even though he had paid the same fare as the other passengers. When some white passengers came into the baggage car to comfort Mr. Douglass, one of them said, "I’m sorry, Mr. Douglass, that you’ve been treated this way." Mr. Douglass sat up straight on the box he was on and replied, "They cannot degrade Frederick Douglass. No man can degrade the soul within me. I’m not the one being degraded because of this treatment; it’s those who are doing this to me."
In one part of the country, where the law demands the separation of the races on the railroad trains, I saw at one time a rather amusing instance which showed how difficult it sometimes is to know where the black begins and the white ends.
In one part of the country, where the law requires racial segregation on the train, I once witnessed a rather amusing situation that illustrated how hard it can be to tell where black ends and white begins.
There was a man who was well known in his community as a Negro, but who was so white that even an expert would have hard work to classify him as a black man. This man was riding in the part of the train set aside for the coloured passengers. When the train conductor reached him, he showed at once that he was perplexed. If the man was a Negro, the conductor did not want to send him to the white people's coach; at the same time, if he was a white man, the conductor did not want to insult him by asking him if he was a Negro. The official looked him over carefully, examining his hair, eyes, nose, and hands, but still seemed puzzled. Finally, to solve the difficulty, he stooped over and peeped at the man's feet. When I saw the conductor examining the feet of the man in question, I said to myself, "That will settle it;" and so it did, for the trainman promptly decided that the passenger was a Negro, and let him remain where he was. I congratulated myself that my race was fortunate in not losing one of its members.
There was a man who was well known in his community as a Black man, but who was so light-skinned that even an expert would struggle to classify him as Black. This man was riding in the section of the train reserved for Black passengers. When the conductor approached him, it was clear he was confused. If the man was Black, the conductor didn’t want to send him to the white people’s section; at the same time, if he was white, the conductor didn’t want to offend him by asking if he was Black. The conductor looked him over carefully, checking his hair, eyes, nose, and hands, but still looked puzzled. Finally, to resolve the issue, he bent down and peeked at the man’s feet. When I saw the conductor examining the feet of the man in question, I thought to myself, “That will settle it,” and it did, as the conductor quickly decided that the passenger was Black, allowing him to stay where he was. I felt relieved that my race was fortunate not to lose one of its members.
My experience has been that the time to test a true gentleman is to observe him when he is in contact with individuals of a race that is less fortunate than his own. This is illustrated in no better way than by observing the conduct of the old-school type of Southern gentleman when he is in contact with his former slaves or their descendants.
My experience has shown that the best time to evaluate a true gentleman is when you see how he interacts with people from a race that is less privileged than his own. This is best demonstrated by watching the behavior of the traditional Southern gentleman when he is around his former slaves or their descendants.
An example of what I mean is shown in a story told of George Washington, who, meeting a coloured man in the road once, who politely lifted his hat, lifted his own in return. Some of his white friends who saw the incident criticised Washington for his action. In reply to their criticism George Washington said: "Do you suppose that I am going to permit a poor, ignorant, coloured man to be more polite than I am?"
An example of what I mean is shown in a story about George Washington, who, when he met a Black man on the road once, politely lifted his hat in greeting and returned the gesture. Some of his white friends who witnessed the incident criticized Washington for his actions. In response to their criticism, George Washington said, "Do you really think I’m going to let a poor, uneducated Black man be more polite than I am?"
While I was in charge of the Indian boys at Hampton, I had one or two experiences which illustrate the curious workings of caste in America. One of the Indian boys was taken ill, and it became my duty to take him to Washington, deliver him over to the Secretary of the Interior, and get a receipt for him, in order that he might be returned to his Western reservation. At that time I was rather ignorant of the ways of the world. During my journey to Washington, on a steamboat, when the bell rang for dinner, I was careful to wait and not enter the dining room until after the greater part of the passengers had finished their meal. Then, with my charge, I went to the dining saloon. The man in charge politely informed me that the Indian could be served, but that I could not. I never could understand how he knew just where to draw the colour line, since the Indian and I were of about the same complexion. The steward, however, seemed to be an expert in this manner. I had been directed by the authorities at Hampton to stop at a certain hotel in Washington with my charge, but when I went to this hotel the clerk stated that he would be glad to receive the Indian into the house, but said that he could not accommodate me.
While I was in charge of the Indian boys at Hampton, I had a couple of experiences that highlight the strange dynamics of caste in America. One of the Indian boys got sick, and it was my responsibility to take him to Washington, hand him over to the Secretary of the Interior, and get a receipt for him so he could be sent back to his Western reservation. At that time, I was pretty clueless about how things worked in the world. During my trip to Washington on a steamboat, when the bell rang for dinner, I made sure to wait and not go into the dining room until most of the passengers had finished their meal. Then, with the boy in tow, I entered the dining area. The person in charge politely told me that the Indian could be served, but I couldn't. I never understood how he knew exactly where to draw the color line since the Indian and I were about the same shade. However, the steward seemed to be quite an expert in this regard. I had been instructed by the authorities at Hampton to stay at a specific hotel in Washington with the Indian, but when I arrived at this hotel, the clerk said he would be happy to take the Indian in, but he couldn’t accommodate me.
An illustration of something of this same feeling came under my observation afterward. I happened to find myself in a town in which so much excitement and indignation were being expressed that it seemed likely for a time that there would be a lynching. The occasion of the trouble was that a dark-skinned man had stopped at the local hotel. Investigation, however, developed the fact that this individual was a citizen of Morocco, and that while travelling in this country he spoke the English language. As soon as it was learned that he was not an American Negro, all the signs of indignation disappeared. The man who was the innocent cause of the excitement, though, found it prudent after that not to speak English.
I later saw an example of a similar feeling. I found myself in a town where there was so much excitement and anger that it seemed for a moment like there might be a lynching. The trouble started because a dark-skinned man had checked into the local hotel. However, after some investigation, it turned out that this man was a citizen of Morocco and spoke English while traveling in the U.S. Once people realized he wasn’t African American, all signs of anger vanished. The man who inadvertently caused the uproar decided it was safer not to speak English after that.
At the end of my first year with the Indians there came another opening for me at Hampton, which, as I look back over my life now, seems to have come providentially, to help to prepare me for my work at Tuskegee later. General Armstrong had found out that there was quite a number of young coloured men and women who were intensely in earnest in wishing to get an education, but who were prevented from entering Hampton Institute because they were too poor to be able to pay any portion of the cost of their board, or even to supply themselves with books. He conceived the idea of starting a night-school in connection with the Institute, into which a limited number of the most promising of these young men and women would be received, on condition that they were to work for ten hours during the day, and attend school for two hours at night. They were to be paid something above the cost of their board for their work. The greater part of their earnings was to be reserved in the school's treasury as a fund to be drawn on to pay their board when they had become students in the day-school, after they had spent one or two years in the night-school. In this way they would obtain a start in their books and a knowledge of some trade or industry, in addition to the other far-reaching benefits of the institution.
At the end of my first year with the Indians, another opportunity opened up for me at Hampton, which, looking back now, seems like it was meant to help prepare me for my later work at Tuskegee. General Armstrong realized that there were many young Black men and women who were really eager to get an education but couldn’t attend Hampton Institute because they were too poor to pay for their meals or even buy books. He came up with the idea of starting a night school at the Institute, where a limited number of these promising young people would be accepted, as long as they worked ten hours during the day and attended school for two hours at night. They would be paid a little more than the cost of their meals for their work. Most of their earnings would go into the school's treasury as a fund to cover their meals when they became day students, after spending one or two years in the night school. This way, they could get a head start on their studies and learn a trade or skill, along with the other significant benefits of the institution.
General Armstrong asked me to take charge of the night-school, and I did so. At the beginning of this school there were about twelve strong, earnest men and women who entered the class. During the day the greater part of the young men worked in the school's sawmill, and the young women worked in the laundry. The work was not easy in either place, but in all my teaching I never taught pupils who gave me much genuine satisfaction as these did. They were good students, and mastered their work thoroughly. They were so much in earnest that only the ringing of the retiring-bell would make them stop studying, and often they would urge me to continue the lessons after the usual hour for going to bed had come.
General Armstrong asked me to take over the night school, and I agreed. At the start, there were about twelve dedicated men and women in the class. During the day, most of the young men worked in the school's sawmill, while the young women worked in the laundry. The work was tough in both places, but in all my teaching, I never had students who gave me as much genuine satisfaction as these did. They were great students and really mastered their work. They were so committed that only the sound of the closing bell would make them stop studying, and often they would encourage me to keep the lessons going even after it was time for bed.
These students showed so much earnestness, both in their hard work during the day, as well as in their application to their studies at night, that I gave them the name of "The Plucky Class"—a name which soon grew popular and spread throughout the institution. After a student had been in the night-school long enough to prove what was in him, I gave him a printed certificate which read something like this:—
These students demonstrated such dedication, both in their hard work during the day and in their commitment to their studies at night, that I named them "The Plucky Class"—a name that quickly gained popularity and spread throughout the institution. Once a student had been in the night school long enough to show their true abilities, I presented them with a printed certificate that read something like this:—
"This is to certify that James Smith is a member of The Plucky Class of the Hampton Institute, and is in good and regular standing."
"This is to certify that James Smith is a member of The Plucky Class of the Hampton Institute and is in good standing."
The students prized these certificates highly, and they added greatly to the popularity of the night-school. Within a few weeks this department had grown to such an extent that there were about twenty-five students in attendance. I have followed the course of many of these twenty-five men and women ever since then, and they are now holding important and useful positions in nearly every part of the South. The night-school at Hampton, which started with only twelve students, now numbers between three and four hundred, and is one of the permanent and most important features of the institution.
The students valued these certificates a lot, and they significantly boosted the popularity of the night school. Within a few weeks, this program had expanded to about twenty-five students. I’ve kept track of many of these twenty-five men and women since then, and now they hold important and meaningful jobs throughout almost the entire South. The night school at Hampton, which began with just twelve students, now has between three and four hundred, making it one of the lasting and most significant features of the institution.
Chapter VII. Early Days At Tuskegee
During the time that I had charge of the Indians and the night-school at Hampton, I pursued some studies myself, under the direction of the instructors there. One of these instructors was the Rev. Dr. H.B. Frissell, the present Principal of the Hampton Institute, General Armstrong's successor.
While I was in charge of the Native Americans and the night school at Hampton, I also studied under the guidance of the instructors there. One of these instructors was Rev. Dr. H.B. Frissell, the current Principal of the Hampton Institute, who succeeded General Armstrong.
In May, 1881, near the close of my first year in teaching the night-school, in a way that I had not dared expect, the opportunity opened for me to begin my life-work. One night in the chapel, after the usual chapel exercises were over, General Armstrong referred to the fact that he had received a letter from some gentlemen in Alabama asking him to recommend some one to take charge of what was to be a normal school for the coloured people in the little town of Tuskegee in that state. These gentlemen seemed to take it for granted that no coloured man suitable for the position could be secured, and they were expecting the General to recommend a white man for the place. The next day General Armstrong sent for me to come to his office, and, much to my surprise, asked me if I thought I could fill the position in Alabama. I told him that I would be willing to try. Accordingly, he wrote to the people who had applied to him for the information, that he did not know of any white man to suggest, but if they would be willing to take a coloured man, he had one whom he could recommend. In this letter he gave them my name.
In May 1881, towards the end of my first year teaching at the night school, an unexpected opportunity arose for me to start my life’s work. One night in the chapel, after the usual exercises were finished, General Armstrong mentioned that he had received a letter from some gentlemen in Alabama asking him to recommend someone to run a normal school for Black people in the small town of Tuskegee. These gentlemen seemed to assume that there wasn’t a suitable Black candidate for the role, and they expected the General to suggest a white man instead. The next day, General Armstrong called me into his office and, to my surprise, asked if I thought I could take the position in Alabama. I told him I would be willing to give it a try. So, he wrote back to the gentlemen who had contacted him, saying he didn’t know of any white man to recommend, but if they were open to hiring a Black man, he had someone he could suggest. In that letter, he included my name.
Several days passed before anything more was heard about the matter. Some time afterward, one Sunday evening during the chapel exercises, a messenger came in and handed the general a telegram. At the end of the exercises he read the telegram to the school. In substance, these were its words: "Booker T. Washington will suit us. Send him at once."
Several days went by without any updates on the situation. Eventually, one Sunday evening during the chapel service, a messenger entered and handed the general a telegram. At the end of the service, he read the telegram to the school. Basically, it said: "Booker T. Washington will work for us. Send him immediately."
There was a great deal of joy expressed among the students and teachers, and I received very hearty congratulations. I began to get ready at once to go to Tuskegee. I went by way of my old home in West Virginia, where I remained for several days, after which I proceeded to Tuskegee. I found Tuskegee to be a town of about two thousand inhabitants, nearly one-half of whom were coloured. It was in what was known as the Black Belt of the South. In the county in which Tuskegee is situated the coloured people outnumbered the whites by about three to one. In some of the adjoining and near-by counties the proportion was not far from six coloured persons to one white.
There was a lot of joy among the students and teachers, and I received warm congratulations. I started preparing right away to go to Tuskegee. I took a route through my old home in West Virginia, where I stayed for several days, and then I headed to Tuskegee. I found Tuskegee to be a town of about two thousand people, nearly half of whom were Black. It was located in what was known as the Black Belt of the South. In the county where Tuskegee is, Black people outnumbered white people by about three to one. In some nearby counties, the ratio was close to six Black individuals for every one white person.
I have often been asked to define the term "Black Belt." So far as I can learn, the term was first used to designate a part of the country which was distinguished by the colour of the soil. The part of the country possessing this thick, dark, and naturally rich soil was, of course, the part of the South where the slaves were most profitable, and consequently they were taken there in the largest numbers. Later, and especially since the war, the term seems to be used wholly in a political sense—that is, to designate the counties where the black people outnumber the white.
I’ve often been asked to define the term "Black Belt." From what I can gather, it was originally used to refer to an area of the country known for its dark, rich soil. This region, with its thick and fertile ground, was obviously in the South where enslaved people were most valuable, leading to their being brought there in large numbers. Over time, especially since the war, the term has come to be used mainly in a political context—to identify the counties where Black people outnumber white people.
Before going to Tuskegee I had expected to find there a building and all the necessary apparatus ready for me to begin teaching. To my disappointment, I found nothing of the kind. I did find, though, that which no costly building and apparatus can supply,—hundreds of hungry, earnest souls who wanted to secure knowledge.
Before going to Tuskegee, I expected to find a building and all the necessary equipment ready for me to start teaching. To my disappointment, I found nothing like that. However, I did discover something that no expensive building or equipment can provide—hundreds of eager, passionate individuals wanting to gain knowledge.
Tuskegee seemed an ideal place for the school. It was in the midst of the great bulk of the Negro population, and was rather secluded, being five miles from the main line of railroad, with which it was connected by a short line. During the days of slavery, and since, the town had been a centre for the education of the white people. This was an added advantage, for the reason that I found the white people possessing a degree of culture and education that is not surpassed by many localities. While the coloured people were ignorant, they had not, as a rule, degraded and weakened their bodies by vices such as are common to the lower class of people in the large cities. In general, I found the relations between the two races pleasant. For example, the largest, and I think at that time the only hardware store in the town was owned and operated jointly by a coloured man and a white man. This copartnership continued until the death of the white partner.
Tuskegee seemed like the perfect spot for the school. It was located in the heart of the large Black population and was somewhat isolated, being five miles from the main railroad line, which it was connected to by a short route. Since the days of slavery, the town had served as a center for the education of white people. This was an added advantage because I found the white residents to have a level of culture and education that isn’t easily matched by many other areas. While the Black residents were often uneducated, they had generally not degraded or weakened their bodies through vices that are common among lower-class people in larger cities. Overall, I found the interactions between the two races to be pleasant. For instance, the largest hardware store in town, and I believe the only one at that time, was owned and operated together by a Black man and a white man. This partnership lasted until the death of the white partner.
I found that about a year previous to my going to Tuskegee some of the coloured people who had heard something of the work of education being done at Hampton had applied to the state Legislature, through their representatives, for a small appropriation to be used in starting a normal school in Tuskegee. This request the Legislature had complied with to the extent of granting an annual appropriation of two thousand dollars. I soon learned, however, that this money could be used only for the payment of the salaries of the instructors, and that there was no provision for securing land, buildings, or apparatus. The task before me did not seem a very encouraging one. It seemed much like making bricks without straw. The coloured people were overjoyed, and were constantly offering their services in any way in which they could be of assistance in getting the school started.
I found that about a year before I went to Tuskegee, some of the Black people who had heard about the educational work happening at Hampton had reached out to the state Legislature, through their representatives, requesting a small budget to start a normal school in Tuskegee. The Legislature agreed to this request by granting an annual budget of two thousand dollars. However, I soon learned that this money could only be used to pay the instructors' salaries, and there was no funding for acquiring land, buildings, or equipment. The challenge ahead felt pretty discouraging. It was like trying to make bricks without straw. The Black community was thrilled and kept offering their help in any way they could to get the school up and running.
My first task was to find a place in which to open the school. After looking the town over with some care, the most suitable place that could be secured seemed to be a rather dilapidated shanty near the coloured Methodist church, together with the church itself as a sort of assembly-room. Both the church and the shanty were in about as bad condition as was possible. I recall that during the first months of school that I taught in this building it was in such poor repair that, whenever it rained, one of the older students would very kindly leave his lessons and hold an umbrella over me while I heard the recitations of the others. I remember, also, that on more than one occasion my landlady held an umbrella over me while I ate breakfast.
My first job was to find a place to open the school. After carefully exploring the town, the best location I could find was a rather run-down shack next to the Black Methodist church, which I could also use as a sort of gathering space. Both the church and the shack were in terrible condition. I remember during the first few months of teaching in that building, it was so poorly maintained that whenever it rained, one of the older students would kindly leave his lessons to hold an umbrella over me while I listened to the others recite. I also recall that on more than one occasion, my landlady held an umbrella over me while I had breakfast.
At the time I went to Alabama the coloured people were taking considerable interest in politics, and they were very anxious that I should become one of them politically, in every respect. They seemed to have a little distrust of strangers in this regard. I recall that one man, who seemed to have been designated by the others to look after my political destiny, came to me on several occasions and said, with a good deal of earnestness: "We wants you to be sure to vote jes' like we votes. We can't read de newspapers very much, but we knows how to vote, an' we wants you to vote jes' like we votes." He added: "We watches de white man, and we keeps watching de white man till we finds out which way de white man's gwine to vote; an' when we finds out which way de white man's gwine to vote, den we votes 'xactly de other way. Den we knows we's right."
When I went to Alabama, the Black community was very involved in politics, and they really wanted me to join them politically in every way. They seemed to be a bit wary of outsiders in this regard. I remember one man, who appeared to have been chosen by the others to guide my political future, came to me several times and said earnestly: "We want you to make sure you vote just like we do. We can’t read the newspapers much, but we know how to vote, and we want you to vote just like we do." He added: "We watch the white man, and we keep an eye on him until we figure out which way he’s going to vote; and when we find out which way he’s voting, then we vote exactly the opposite. That way, we know we’re right."
I am glad to add, however, that at the present time the disposition to vote against the white man merely because he is white is largely disappearing, and the race is learning to vote from principle, for what the voter considers to be for the best interests of both races.
I'm happy to say, though, that right now the tendency to vote against a white person just because they're white is mostly fading away, and people are starting to vote based on principles, considering what they believe is best for both races.
I reached Tuskegee, as I have said, early in June, 1881. The first month I spent in finding accommodations for the school, and in travelling through Alabama, examining into the actual life of the people, especially in the court districts, and in getting the school advertised among the class of people that I wanted to have attend it. The most of my travelling was done over the country roads, with a mule and a cart or a mule and a buggy wagon for conveyance. I ate and slept with the people, in their little cabins. I saw their farms, their schools, their churches. Since, in the case of the most of these visits, there had been no notice given in advance that a stranger was expected, I had the advantage of seeing the real, everyday life of the people.
I arrived in Tuskegee, as I mentioned, early in June 1881. I spent the first month finding places for the school, traveling around Alabama, looking into the daily lives of the people—especially in the rural areas—and promoting the school to the community I wanted to attend it. Most of my travels were on country roads, using a mule and a cart or a mule and a buggy. I ate and slept with the locals in their small cabins. I saw their farms, schools, and churches. Since I hadn't given any advance notice that a stranger would be visiting for most of these trips, I had the chance to see the genuine, everyday lives of the people.
In the plantation districts I found that, as a rule, the whole family slept in one room, and that in addition to the immediate family there sometimes were relatives, or others not related to the family, who slept in the same room. On more than one occasion I went outside the house to get ready for bed, or to wait until the family had gone to bed. They usually contrived some kind of a place for me to sleep, either on the floor or in a special part of another's bed. Rarely was there any place provided in the cabin where one could bathe even the face and hands, but usually some provision was made for this outside the house, in the yard.
In the plantation areas, I found that, typically, the entire family slept in one room. Besides the immediate family, there were sometimes relatives or others not related to them who also slept in the same room. More than once, I went outside the house to get ready for bed or to wait until the family had gone to sleep. They usually figured out some way for me to sleep, either on the floor or in a designated spot in someone else's bed. There was rarely a place in the cabin where one could wash even their face and hands, but there was usually some setup for this outside the house, in the yard.
The common diet of the people was fat pork and corn bread. At times I have eaten in cabins where they had only corn bread and "black-eye peas" cooked in plain water. The people seemed to have no other idea than to live on this fat meat and corn bread,—the meat, and the meal of which the bread was made, having been bought at a high price at a store in town, notwithstanding the fact that the land all about the cabin homes could easily have been made to produce nearly every kind of garden vegetable that is raised anywhere in the country. Their one object seemed to be to plant nothing but cotton; and in many cases cotton was planted up to the very door of the cabin.
The typical diet of the people consisted of fatty pork and cornbread. Sometimes I’ve eaten in cabins where the only food was cornbread and black-eyed peas cooked in plain water. The people didn’t seem to think about anything other than living off this greasy meat and cornbread—the meat and the cornmeal used for the bread were purchased at a high price from a store in town, even though the land around the cabins could have produced almost every type of garden vegetable grown anywhere in the country. Their main focus appeared to be planting nothing but cotton, and in many cases, cotton was planted right up to the doorstep of the cabin.
In these cabin homes I often found sewing-machines which had been bought, or were being bought, on instalments, frequently at a cost of as much as sixty dollars, or showy clocks for which the occupants of the cabins had paid twelve or fourteen dollars. I remember that on one occasion when I went into one of these cabins for dinner, when I sat down to the table for a meal with the four members of the family, I noticed that, while there were five of us at the table, there was but one fork for the five of us to use. Naturally there was an awkward pause on my part. In the opposite corner of that same cabin was an organ for which the people told me they were paying sixty dollars in monthly instalments. One fork, and a sixty-dollar organ!
In these cabin homes, I often saw sewing machines that had been purchased or were being bought on installments, often costing as much as sixty dollars, or flashy clocks that the cabin residents had paid twelve or fourteen dollars for. I remember one time when I went into one of these cabins for dinner; as I sat down at the table with the four members of the family, I noticed that even though there were five of us at the table, there was only one fork for us to share. Naturally, there was an awkward moment on my part. In the opposite corner of the same cabin was an organ that the family told me they were paying sixty dollars for in monthly installments. One fork and a sixty-dollar organ!
In most cases the sewing-machine was not used, the clocks were so worthless that they did not keep correct time—and if they had, in nine cases out of ten there would have been no one in the family who could have told the time of day—while the organ, of course, was rarely used for want of a person who could play upon it.
In most cases, the sewing machine wasn’t used, the clocks were so unreliable that they didn’t keep the right time—and even if they did, in nine out of ten cases, no one in the family would have known how to tell the time—while the organ, of course, was rarely played because there was no one who could play it.
In the case to which I have referred, where the family sat down to the table for the meal at which I was their guest, I could see plainly that this was an awkward and unusual proceeding, and was done in my honour. In most cases, when the family got up in the morning, for example, the wife would put a piece of meat in a frying-pan and put a lump of dough in a "skillet," as they called it. These utensils would be placed on the fire, and in ten or fifteen minutes breakfast would be ready. Frequently the husband would take his bread and meat in his hand and start for the field, eating as he walked. The mother would sit down in a corner and eat her breakfast, perhaps from a plate and perhaps directly from the "skillet" or frying-pan, while the children would eat their portion of the bread and meat while running about the yard. At certain seasons of the year, when meat was scarce, it was rarely that the children who were not old enough or strong enough to work in the fields would have the luxury of meat.
In the situation I mentioned, where the family gathered at the table for the meal while I was their guest, it was clear that this was an awkward and unusual event, and it was done to honor me. Usually, when the family got up in the morning, the wife would put a piece of meat in a frying pan and a lump of dough in a "skillet," as they called it. These items would be placed on the fire, and in ten or fifteen minutes, breakfast would be ready. Often, the husband would grab his bread and meat and head to the field, eating as he walked. The mother would sit in a corner, eating her breakfast, sometimes from a plate and sometimes directly from the "skillet" or frying pan, while the children would munch on their bread and meat while running around the yard. During certain times of the year, when meat was scarce, the younger children who weren't old enough or strong enough to work in the fields rarely had the luxury of meat.
The breakfast over, and with practically no attention given to the house, the whole family would, as a general thing, proceed to the cotton-field. Every child that was large enough to carry a hoe was put to work, and the baby—for usually there was at least one baby—would be laid down at the end of the cotton row, so that its mother could give it a certain amount of attention when she had finished chopping her row. The noon meal and the supper were taken in much the same way as the breakfast.
After breakfast, and with hardly any attention paid to the house, the whole family would typically head to the cotton field. Every child old enough to handle a hoe was put to work, and the baby—there was usually at least one—would be laid down at the end of the cotton row so its mother could keep an eye on it when she was done chopping her row. Lunch and dinner were taken in a similar fashion to breakfast.
All the days of the family would be spent after much this same routine, except Saturday and Sunday. On Saturday the whole family would spent at least half a day, and often a whole day, in town. The idea in going to town was, I suppose, to do shopping, but all the shopping that the whole family had money for could have been attended to in ten minutes by one person. Still, the whole family remained in town for most of the day, spending the greater part of the time in standing on the streets, the women, too often, sitting about somewhere smoking or dipping snuff. Sunday was usually spent in going to some big meeting. With few exceptions, I found that the crops were mortgaged in the counties where I went, and that the most of the coloured farmers were in debt. The state had not been able to build schoolhouses in the country districts, and, as a rule, the schools were taught in churches or in log cabins. More than once, while on my journeys, I found that there was no provision made in the house used for school purposes for heating the building during the winter, and consequently a fire had to be built in the yard, and teacher and pupils passed in and out of the house as they got cold or warm. With few exceptions, I found the teachers in these country schools to be miserably poor in preparation for their work, and poor in moral character. The schools were in session from three to five months. There was practically no apparatus in the schoolhouses, except that occasionally there was a rough blackboard. I recall that one day I went into a schoolhouse—or rather into an abandoned log cabin that was being used as a schoolhouse—and found five pupils who were studying a lesson from one book. Two of these, on the front seat, were using the book between them; behind these were two others peeping over the shoulders of the first two, and behind the four was a fifth little fellow who was peeping over the shoulders of all four.
All the days of the family followed the same routine, except for Saturday and Sunday. On Saturday, the whole family would spend at least half a day, and often a whole day, in town. The purpose of going to town was probably for shopping, but all the shopping that the family could afford could have been done in ten minutes by one person. Still, the entire family stayed in town for most of the day, spending most of their time standing on the streets, with the women often sitting around somewhere smoking or using snuff. Sunday was usually spent attending some big meeting. With few exceptions, I found that the crops were mortgaged in the counties where I traveled, and most of the colored farmers were in debt. The state had been unable to build schoolhouses in the rural areas, so the schools were usually taught in churches or log cabins. More than once, during my travels, I discovered that there was no heating in the building used for school during the winter, so a fire had to be built outside, and teachers and students came in and out of the house to warm up. With few exceptions, I found the teachers in these rural schools to be poorly prepared for their jobs and lacking in moral character. The schools were in session for three to five months. There was almost no equipment in the schoolhouses, except occasionally for a rough blackboard. I remember one day walking into a schoolhouse—or rather an old log cabin being used as a school—and finding five students studying a lesson from one book. Two of them, in the front row, were sharing the book; behind them were two others peeking over their shoulders, and at the back was a fifth little boy peeking over the shoulders of all four.
What I have said concerning the character of the schoolhouses and teachers will also apply quite accurately as a description of the church buildings and the ministers.
What I’ve said about the character of the schoolhouses and teachers will also accurately describe the church buildings and the ministers.
I met some very interesting characters during my travels. As illustrating the peculiar mental processes of the country people, I remember that I asked one coloured man, who was about sixty years old, to tell me something of his history. He said that he had been born in Virginia, and sold into Alabama in 1845. I asked him how many were sold at the same time. He said, "There were five of us; myself and brother and three mules."
I met some really interesting people during my travels. To highlight the unique thinking of the local folks, I remember asking a man of about sixty years old to share his story. He told me he was born in Virginia and sold to Alabama in 1845. I asked him how many others were sold at the same time. He said, "There were five of us: me, my brother, and three mules."
In giving all these descriptions of what I saw during my month of travel in the country around Tuskegee, I wish my readers to keep in mind the fact that there were many encouraging exceptions to the conditions which I have described. I have stated in such plain words what I saw, mainly for the reason that later I want to emphasize the encouraging changes that have taken place in the community, not wholly by the work of the Tuskegee school, but by that of other institutions as well.
In sharing all these details about what I experienced during my month of traveling around Tuskegee, I want my readers to remember that there were many positive exceptions to the situations I've described. I've expressed what I saw in straightforward terms because I want to later highlight the encouraging changes that have occurred in the community, driven not only by the efforts of the Tuskegee school but also by other organizations.
Chapter VIII. Teaching School In A Stable And A Hen-House
I confess that what I saw during my month of travel and investigation left me with a very heavy heart. The work to be done in order to lift these people up seemed almost beyond accomplishing. I was only one person, and it seemed to me that the little effort which I could put forth could go such a short distance toward bringing about results. I wondered if I could accomplish anything, and if it were worth while for me to try.
I admit that what I experienced during my month of travel and exploration left me feeling very heavy-hearted. The work needed to help these people seemed almost impossible to achieve. I was just one person, and it felt like the small effort I could contribute wouldn’t make much of a difference in creating change. I questioned whether I could make any impact at all and if it was worth it for me to even try.
Of one thing I felt more strongly convinced than ever, after spending this month in seeing the actual life of the coloured people, and that was that, in order to lift them up, something must be done more than merely to imitate New England education as it then existed. I saw more clearly than ever the wisdom of the system which General Armstrong had inaugurated at Hampton. To take the children of such people as I had been among for a month, and each day give them a few hours of mere book education, I felt would be almost a waste of time.
One thing I became more convinced of than ever, after spending this month observing the real lives of the people of color, was that to uplift them, we needed to do more than just replicate the education system that existed in New England at that time. I recognized more than ever the value of the approach that General Armstrong had started at Hampton. I felt that taking the children from the communities I had been with for a month and giving them only a few hours of basic book education each day would be almost a waste of time.
After consultation with the citizens of Tuskegee, I set July 4, 1881, as the day for the opening of the school in the little shanty and church which had been secured for its accommodation. The white people, as well as the coloured, were greatly interested in the starting of the new school, and the opening day was looked forward to with much earnest discussion. There were not a few white people in the vicinity of Tuskegee who looked with some disfavour upon the project. They questioned its value to the coloured people, and had a fear that it might result in bringing about trouble between the races. Some had the feeling that in proportion as the Negro received education, in the same proportion would his value decrease as an economic factor in the state. These people feared the result of education would be that the Negroes would leave the farms, and that it would be difficult to secure them for domestic service.
After talking with the people of Tuskegee, I set July 4, 1881, as the day to open the school in the small hut and church that had been secured for it. Both white and Black communities were very interested in starting the new school, and everyone eagerly anticipated the opening day with much discussion. However, there were several white people around Tuskegee who viewed the project with some disapproval. They questioned its value to the Black community and were concerned that it might lead to conflict between the races. Some believed that as Black people received education, their economic value to the state would decrease. These individuals feared that education would cause Black people to leave the farms and it would become hard to find them for domestic work.
The white people who questioned the wisdom of starting this new school had in their minds pictures of what was called an educated Negro, with a high hat, imitation gold eye-glasses, a showy walking-stick, kid gloves, fancy boots, and what not—in a word, a man who was determined to live by his wits. It was difficult for these people to see how education would produce any other kind of a coloured man.
The white people who questioned the wisdom of starting this new school had in mind images of what they considered an educated Black man, complete with a top hat, fake gold glasses, a flashy walking stick, fancy gloves, stylish boots, and so on—in short, someone who was set on living off his cleverness. It was hard for these people to imagine how education could create any other kind of Black man.
In the midst of all the difficulties which I encountered in getting the little school started, and since then through a period of nineteen years, there are two men among all the many friends of the school in Tuskegee upon whom I have depended constantly for advice and guidance; and the success of the undertaking is largely due to these men, from whom I have never sought anything in vain. I mention them simply as types. One is a white man and an ex-slaveholder, Mr. George W. Campbell; the other is a black man and an ex-slave, Mr. Lewis Adams. These were the men who wrote to General Armstrong for a teacher.
In the middle of all the challenges I faced in starting the little school, and throughout the following nineteen years, there are two men among all the many supporters of the school in Tuskegee whom I have relied on continuously for advice and guidance; the success of the endeavor is largely thanks to these men, from whom I have never asked for anything in vain. I mention them simply as representatives. One is a white man and a former slave owner, Mr. George W. Campbell; the other is a black man and a former slave, Mr. Lewis Adams. These were the men who wrote to General Armstrong for a teacher.
Mr. Campbell is a merchant and banker, and had had little experience in dealing with matters pertaining to education. Mr. Adams was a mechanic, and had learned the trades of shoemaking, harness-making, and tinsmithing during the days of slavery. He had never been to school a day in his life, but in some way he had learned to read and write while a slave. From the first, these two men saw clearly what my plan of education was, sympathized with me, and supported me in every effort. In the days which were darkest financially for the school, Mr. Campbell was never appealed to when he was not willing to extend all the aid in his power. I do not know two men, one an ex-slaveholder, one an ex-slave, whose advice and judgment I would feel more like following in everything which concerns the life and development of the school at Tuskegee than those of these two men.
Mr. Campbell is a merchant and banker who had little experience with education issues. Mr. Adams was a mechanic who learned shoemaking, harness-making, and tinsmithing during slavery. He never attended school but somehow learned to read and write while he was enslaved. From the beginning, these two men clearly understood my educational plan, sympathized with me, and supported my efforts. During the toughest financial times for the school, Mr. Campbell was always willing to help whenever approached. I can't think of two men—one an ex-slaveholder and the other an ex-slave—whose advice and judgment I would trust more in everything that affects the life and growth of the school at Tuskegee than those of these two men.
I have always felt that Mr. Adams, in a large degree, derived his unusual power of mind from the training given his hands in the process of mastering well three trades during the days of slavery. If one goes to-day into any Southern town, and asks for the leading and most reliable coloured man in the community, I believe that in five cases out of ten he will be directed to a Negro who learned a trade during the days of slavery.
I’ve always thought that Mr. Adams got a big part of his unique mental strength from the hands-on experience he gained by mastering three trades during the time of slavery. If you go to any Southern town today and ask for the most respected and reliable Black man in the community, I believe that in about half the cases, you’ll be pointed to a Black person who learned a trade during the era of slavery.
On the morning that the school opened, thirty students reported for admission. I was the only teacher. The students were about equally divided between the sexes. Most of them lived in Macon County, the county in which Tuskegee is situated, and of which it is the county-seat. A great many more students wanted to enter the school, but it had been decided to receive only those who were above fifteen years of age, and who had previously received some education. The greater part of the thirty were public-school teachers, and some of them were nearly forty years of age. With the teachers came some of their former pupils, and when they were examined it was amusing to note that in several cases the pupil entered a higher class than did his former teacher. It was also interesting to note how many big books some of them had studied, and how many high-sounding subjects some of them claimed to have mastered. The bigger the book and the longer the name of the subject, the prouder they felt of their accomplishment. Some had studied Latin, and one or two Greek. This they thought entitled them to special distinction.
On the morning the school opened, thirty students showed up for admission. I was the only teacher. The students were almost evenly split between boys and girls. Most of them lived in Macon County, where Tuskegee is located and which serves as the county seat. Many more students wanted to join the school, but it was decided to accept only those over fifteen years old who had some prior education. Most of the thirty were public school teachers, and some were nearly forty years old. Along with the teachers came some of their former students, and it was amusing to see that in several cases, a student entered a higher class than their former teacher. It was also interesting to note how many hefty books some of them had studied and how many impressive subjects they claimed to have mastered. The bigger the book and the longer the subject name, the prouder they felt of their achievements. Some had studied Latin, and a few had even studied Greek. They believed this gave them special distinction.
In fact, one of the saddest things I saw during the month of travel which I have described was a young man, who had attended some high school, sitting down in a one-room cabin, with grease on his clothing, filth all around him, and weeds in the yard and garden, engaged in studying a French grammar.
In fact, one of the saddest things I saw during the month of travel that I described was a young man who had gone to some high school, sitting in a one-room cabin, with grease on his clothes, dirt all around him, and weeds in the yard and garden, focused on studying a French grammar.
The students who came first seemed to be fond of memorizing long and complicated "rules" in grammar and mathematics, but had little thought or knowledge of applying these rules to their everyday affairs of their life. One subject which they liked to talk about, and tell me that they had mastered, in arithmetic, was "banking and discount," but I soon found out that neither they nor almost any one in the neighbourhood in which they had lived had ever had a bank account. In registering the names of the students, I found that almost every one of them had one or more middle initials. When I asked what the "J" stood for, in the name of John J. Jones, it was explained to me that this was a part of his "entitles." Most of the students wanted to get an education because they thought it would enable them to earn more money as school-teachers.
The students who came in first seemed to enjoy memorizing long and complicated "rules" in grammar and math but didn't really think about or know how to apply these rules to their everyday lives. One topic they loved to discuss was "banking and discount" in arithmetic, but I quickly discovered that neither they nor anyone else in their neighborhood had ever had a bank account. When I registered the students' names, I noticed that almost all of them had one or more middle initials. When I asked what the "J" stood for in John J. Jones, I was told it was part of his "entitles." Most of the students wanted to get an education because they believed it would help them earn more money as teachers.
Notwithstanding what I have said about them in these respects, I have never seen a more earnest and willing company of young men and women than these students were. They were all willing to learn the right thing as soon as it was shown them what was right. I was determined to start them off on a solid and thorough foundation, so far as their books were concerned. I soon learned that most of them had the merest smattering of the high-sounding things that they had studied. While they could locate the Desert of Sahara or the capital of China on an artificial globe, I found out that the girls could not locate the proper places for the knives and forks on an actual dinner-table, or the places on which the bread and meat should be set.
Despite what I've mentioned about them in certain areas, I've never encountered a more dedicated and eager group of young men and women than these students. They were all ready to learn the right things as soon as they were shown what was correct. I was determined to give them a solid and comprehensive foundation regarding their studies. I quickly realized that most of them only had a basic understanding of the impressive topics they had covered. While they could pinpoint the Sahara Desert or the capital of China on a globe, I discovered that the girls couldn’t figure out where to place the knives and forks on an actual dinner table, or where to put the bread and meat.
I had to summon a good deal of courage to take a student who had been studying cube root and "banking and discount," and explain to him that the wisest thing for him to do first was thoroughly master the multiplication table.
I had to gather a lot of courage to take a student who had been studying cube roots and “banking and discount” and explain to him that the smartest thing for him to do first was to thoroughly master the multiplication table.
The number of pupils increased each week, until by the end of the first month there were nearly fifty. Many of them, however, said that, as they could remain only for two or three months, they wanted to enter a high class and get a diploma the first year if possible.
The number of students grew every week, until by the end of the first month there were nearly fifty. Many of them, however, said that since they could only stay for two or three months, they wanted to join a higher class and earn a diploma in their first year if possible.
At the end of the first six weeks a new and rare face entered the school as a co-teacher. This was Miss Olivia A. Davidson, who later became my wife. Miss Davidson was born in Ohio, and received her preparatory education in the public schools of that state. When little more than a girl, she heard of the need of teachers in the South. She went to the state of Mississippi and began teaching there. Later she taught in the city of Memphis. While teaching in Mississippi, one of her pupils became ill with smallpox. Every one in the community was so frightened that no one would nurse the boy. Miss Davidson closed her school and remained by the bedside of the boy night and day until he recovered. While she was at her Ohio home on her vacation, the worst epidemic of yellow fever broke out in Memphis, Tenn., that perhaps has ever occurred in the South. When she heard of this, she at once telegraphed the Mayor of Memphis, offering her services as a yellow-fever nurse, although she had never had the disease.
At the end of the first six weeks, a new and unusual face joined the school as a co-teacher. This was Miss Olivia A. Davidson, who later became my wife. Miss Davidson was born in Ohio and received her early education in the public schools there. When she was just a girl, she learned about the need for teachers in the South. She went to Mississippi and started teaching there. Later, she taught in Memphis. While she was teaching in Mississippi, one of her students fell seriously ill with smallpox. The whole community was so scared that no one would care for the boy. Miss Davidson closed her school and stayed by his bedside day and night until he got better. While she was at her family home in Ohio on vacation, a terrible outbreak of yellow fever hit Memphis, Tennessee—perhaps the worst ever seen in the South. When she found out about it, she immediately sent a telegram to the Mayor of Memphis, offering her help as a yellow fever nurse, even though she had never had the disease.
Miss Davidon's experience in the South showed her that the people needed something more than mere book-learning. She heard of the Hampton system of education, and decided that this was what she wanted in order to prepare herself for better work in the South. The attention of Mrs. Mary Hemenway, of Boston, was attracted to her rare ability. Through Mrs. Hemenway's kindness and generosity, Miss Davidson, after graduating at Hampton, received an opportunity to complete a two years' course of training at the Massachusetts State Normal School at Framingham.
Miss Davidson's experience in the South made her realize that the people needed more than just textbook knowledge. She learned about the Hampton education system and decided it was what she needed to better prepare herself for work in the South. Mrs. Mary Hemenway from Boston noticed her exceptional ability. Thanks to Mrs. Hemenway's kindness and generosity, after graduating from Hampton, Miss Davidson got the chance to finish a two-year training program at the Massachusetts State Normal School in Framingham.
Before she went to Framingham, some one suggested to Miss Davidson that, since she was so very light in colour, she might find it more comfortable not to be known as a coloured women in this school in Massachusetts. She at once replied that under no circumstances and for no considerations would she consent to deceive any one in regard to her racial identity.
Before she went to Framingham, someone suggested to Miss Davidson that, since she was very light-skinned, she might find it more comfortable not to be identified as a Black woman in this school in Massachusetts. She immediately responded that under no circumstances and for no reasons would she agree to mislead anyone about her racial identity.
Soon after her graduation from the Framingham institution, Miss Davidson came to Tuskegee, bringing into the school many valuable and fresh ideas as to the best methods of teaching, as well as a rare moral character and a life of unselfishness that I think has seldom been equalled. No single individual did more toward laying the foundations of the Tuskegee Institute so as to insure the successful work that has been done there than Olivia A. Davidson.
Soon after graduating from the Framingham institution, Miss Davidson came to Tuskegee, bringing a lot of valuable and innovative ideas about effective teaching methods, along with a remarkable moral character and a life of selflessness that I believe is rarely matched. No one individual contributed more to establishing the foundations of the Tuskegee Institute, ensuring the successful work done there, than Olivia A. Davidson.
Miss Davidson and I began consulting as to the future of the school from the first. The students were making progress in learning books and in developing their minds; but it became apparent at once that, if we were to make any permanent impression upon those who had come to us for training we must do something besides teach them mere books. The students had come from homes where they had had no opportunities for lessons which would teach them how to care for their bodies. With few exceptions, the homes in Tuskegee in which the students boarded were but little improvement upon those from which they had come. We wanted to teach the students how to bathe; how to care for their teeth and clothing. We wanted to teach them what to eat, and how to eat it properly, and how to care for their rooms. Aside from this, we wanted to give them such a practical knowledge of some one industry, together with the spirit of industry, thrift, and economy, that they would be sure of knowing how to make a living after they had left us. We wanted to teach them to study actual things instead of mere books alone.
Miss Davidson and I started discussing the future of the school right from the beginning. The students were making progress in their studies and developing their minds; however, it quickly became clear that if we wanted to make a lasting impact on those who came to us for training, we needed to do more than just teach them from books. The students had come from homes where they had no opportunities to learn how to take care of themselves. With few exceptions, the homes in Tuskegee where the students stayed offered little improvement over their previous living situations. We aimed to teach the students how to bathe, how to take care of their teeth and clothes, what foods to eat, how to eat properly, and how to keep their rooms tidy. Beyond this, we wanted to give them practical knowledge in a specific trade, along with instilling a sense of hard work, saving, and managing money, so they would know how to support themselves after they left us. We wanted to teach them to engage with real-world activities instead of just focusing on books alone.
We found that the most of our students came from the country districts, where agriculture in some form or other was the main dependence of the people. We learned that about eighty-five per cent of the coloured people in the Gulf states depended upon agriculture for their living. Since this was true, we wanted to be careful not to educate our students out of sympathy with agricultural life, so that they would be attracted from the country to the cities, and yield to the temptation of trying to live by their wits. We wanted to give them such an education as would fit a large proportion of them to be teachers, and at the same time cause them to return to the plantation districts and show the people there how to put new energy and new ideas into farming, as well as into the intellectual and moral and religious life of the people.
Most of our students came from rural areas, where farming was the primary source of income for the community. We found that about eighty-five percent of the Black population in the Gulf states relied on agriculture for their livelihoods. Knowing this, we wanted to ensure that we didn't educate our students in a way that distanced them from agricultural life, which might lead them to leave their rural roots for the cities and fall into the trap of trying to survive by their wits. Our goal was to provide them with an education that would enable many of them to become teachers and encourage them to return to the farming communities. There, they could share new energy and ideas about farming, as well as contribute to the intellectual, moral, and religious life of the people.
All these ideas and needs crowded themselves upon us with a seriousness that seemed well-nigh overwhelming. What were we to do? We had only the little old shanty and the abandoned church which the good coloured people of the town of Tuskegee had kindly loaned us for the accommodation of the classes. The number of students was increasing daily. The more we saw of them, and the more we travelled through the country districts, the more we saw that our efforts were reaching, to only a partial degree, the actual needs of the people whom we wanted to lift up through the medium of the students whom we should educate and send out as leaders.
All these ideas and needs piled up around us with a seriousness that felt almost overwhelming. What were we supposed to do? We only had the old little shack and the abandoned church that the kind residents of Tuskegee had graciously lent us for the classes. The number of students was growing daily. The more we interacted with them and the more we traveled through the rural areas, the more we realized that our efforts were only partially meeting the actual needs of the people we wanted to uplift through the students we aimed to educate and send out as leaders.
The more we talked with the students, who were then coming to us from several parts of the state, the more we found that the chief ambition among a large proportion of them was to get an education so that they would not have to work any longer with their hands.
The more we spoke with the students, who were coming to us from various parts of the state, the more we discovered that a significant number of them were primarily focused on getting an education so they wouldn't have to work with their hands anymore.
This is illustrated by a story told of a coloured man in Alabama, who, one hot day in July, while he was at work in a cotton-field, suddenly stopped, and, looking toward the skies, said: "O Lawd, de cotton am so grassy, de work am so hard, and the sun am so hot dat I b'lieve dis darky am called to preach!"
This is illustrated by a story about a Black man in Alabama who, on a hot July day while working in a cotton field, suddenly stopped and looked up at the sky, saying: "Oh Lord, the cotton is so overgrown, the work is so hard, and the sun is so hot that I think this man is called to preach!"
About three months after the opening of the school, and at the time when we were in the greatest anxiety about our work, there came into market for sale an old and abandoned plantation which was situated about a mile from the town of Tuskegee. The mansion house—or "big house," as it would have been called—which had been occupied by the owners during slavery, had been burned. After making a careful examination of the place, it seemed to be just the location that we wanted in order to make our work effective and permanent.
About three months after the school opened, and when we were really worried about our work, an old and abandoned plantation came up for sale. It was located about a mile from the town of Tuskegee. The main house—or "big house," as it would have been called—had been burned down by the owners during slavery. After carefully checking out the place, it looked like just the right spot we needed to make our work effective and lasting.
But how were we to get it? The price asked for it was very little—only five hundred dollars—but we had no money, and we were strangers in the town and had no credit. The owner of the land agreed to let us occupy the place if we could make a payment of two hundred and fifty dollars down, with the understanding that the remaining two hundred and fifty dollars must be paid within a year. Although five hundred dollars was cheap for the land, it was a large sum when one did not have any part of it.
But how were we supposed to get it? The asking price was pretty low—only five hundred dollars—but we had no money, and we were newcomers in town with no credit. The landowner agreed to let us use the place if we could pay two hundred and fifty dollars upfront, with the understanding that the remaining two hundred and fifty dollars had to be paid within a year. Even though five hundred dollars was a bargain for the land, it was still a lot of money when you didn’t have any of it.
In the midst of the difficulty I summoned a great deal of courage and wrote to my friend General J.F.B. Marshall, the Treasurer of the Hampton Institute, putting the situation before him and beseeching him to lend me the two hundred and fifty dollars on my own personal responsibility. Within a few days a reply came to the effect that he had no authority to lend me the money belonging to the Hampton Institute, but that he would gladly lend me the amount needed from his own personal funds.
In the middle of the struggle, I found a lot of courage and wrote to my friend General J.F.B. Marshall, the Treasurer of the Hampton Institute. I explained my situation and begged him to lend me two hundred and fifty dollars on my own personal guarantee. A few days later, I received a response saying that he didn’t have the authority to lend me the money belonging to the Hampton Institute, but he would be happy to lend me the amount I needed from his own personal funds.
I confess that the securing of this money in this way was a great surprise to me, as well as a source of gratification. Up to that time I never had had in my possession so much money as one hundred dollars at a time, and the loan which I had asked General Marshall for seemed a tremendously large sum to me. The fact of my being responsible for the repaying of such a large amount of money weighed very heavily upon me.
I admit that getting this money in this way was a big surprise for me and made me really happy. Until then, I had never held onto more than one hundred dollars at once, and the loan I had asked General Marshall for felt like an enormous amount. The responsibility of paying back such a large sum really weighed on me.
I lost no time in getting ready to move the school on to the new farm. At the time we occupied the place there were standing upon it a cabin, formerly used as a dining room, an old kitchen, a stable, and an old hen-house. Within a few weeks we had all of these structures in use. The stable was repaired and used as a recitation-room, and very presently the hen-house was utilized for the same purpose.
I quickly got to work preparing to move the school to the new farm. At that time, the place had a cabin that was once used as a dining room, an old kitchen, a stable, and an old chicken coop. Within a few weeks, we had all of these buildings in operation. The stable was fixed up and used as a classroom, and soon enough, the chicken coop was repurposed for the same use.
I recall that one morning, when I told an old coloured man who lived near, and who sometimes helped me, that our school had grown so large that it would be necessary for us to use the hen-house for school purposes, and that I wanted him to help me give it a thorough cleaning out the next day, he replied, in the most earnest manner: "What you mean, boss? You sholy ain't gwine clean out de hen-house in de day-time?"
I remember one morning when I told an old Black man who lived nearby and sometimes helped me that our school had grown so big we would need to use the henhouse for classes, and I wanted his help to clean it out the next day. He responded very seriously, "What do you mean, boss? You really aren't planning to clean out the henhouse during the day, are you?"
Nearly all the work of getting the new location ready for school purposes was done by the students after school was over in the afternoon. As soon as we got the cabins in condition to be used, I determined to clear up some land so that we could plant a crop. When I explained my plan to the young men, I noticed that they did not seem to take to it very kindly. It was hard for them to see the connection between clearing land and an education. Besides, many of them had been school-teachers, and they questioned whether or not clearing land would be in keeping with their dignity. In order to relieve them from any embarrassment, each afternoon after school I took my axe and led the way to the woods. When they saw that I was not afraid or ashamed to work, they began to assist with more enthusiasm. We kept at the work each afternoon, until we had cleared about twenty acres and had planted a crop.
Almost all the work needed to prepare the new location for school was done by the students after class in the afternoons. Once we got the cabins ready to be used, I decided to clear some land so we could plant a crop. When I shared my plan with the young men, I noticed they didn’t seem too enthusiastic. They found it hard to see how clearing land was connected to education. Plus, many of them had been teachers, and they questioned whether clearing land would be appropriate for their dignity. To help ease any embarrassment, every afternoon after school, I would take my axe and lead the way into the woods. When they saw that I wasn’t afraid or ashamed to work, they started to help with more enthusiasm. We worked on the project every afternoon until we had cleared about twenty acres and planted a crop.
In the meantime Miss Davidson was devising plans to repay the loan. Her first effort was made by holding festivals, or "suppers." She made a personal canvass among the white and coloured families in the town of Tuskegee, and got them to agree to give something, like a cake, a chicken, bread, or pies, that could be sold at the festival. Of course the coloured people were glad to give anything that they could spare, but I want to add that Miss Davidson did not apply to a single white family, so far as I now remember, that failed to donate something; and in many ways the white families showed their interest in the school.
In the meantime, Miss Davidson was coming up with plans to pay back the loan. Her first idea was to hold festivals, or "suppers." She personally reached out to both white and Black families in Tuskegee and got them to agree to contribute things like cakes, chickens, bread, or pies for sale at the festival. Naturally, the Black families were happy to donate whatever they could spare, but I want to point out that Miss Davidson didn’t approach a single white family that, as far as I remember, didn’t donate something; and in many ways, the white families showed their support for the school.
Several of these festivals were held, and quite a little sum of money was raised. A canvass was also made among the people of both races for direct gifts of money, and most of those applied to gave small sums. It was often pathetic to note the gifts of the older coloured people, most of whom had spent their best days in slavery. Sometimes they would give five cents, sometimes twenty-five cents. Sometimes the contribution was a quilt, or a quantity of sugarcane. I recall one old coloured women who was about seventy years of age, who came to see me when we were raising money to pay for the farm. She hobbled into the room where I was, leaning on a cane. She was clad in rags; but they were clean. She said: "Mr. Washin'ton, God knows I spent de bes' days of my life in slavery. God knows I's ignorant an' poor; but," she added, "I knows what you an' Miss Davidson is tryin' to do. I knows you is tryin' to make better men an' better women for de coloured race. I ain't got no money, but I wants you to take dese six eggs, what I's been savin' up, an' I wants you to put dese six eggs into the eddication of dese boys an' gals."
Several of these festivals took place, and a decent amount of money was raised. A collection was also made among people of both races for direct cash donations, and most of those approached gave small amounts. It was often touching to see the contributions from the older Black individuals, many of whom had spent their best years in slavery. Sometimes they would give five cents, sometimes twenty-five cents. Occasionally, the donation was a quilt or some sugarcane. I remember one elderly Black woman, around seventy years old, who came to see me when we were raising money for the farm. She hobbled into the room where I was, leaning on a cane. She was dressed in rags, but they were clean. She said, "Mr. Washington, God knows I spent the best days of my life in slavery. God knows I'm ignorant and poor; but," she added, "I know what you and Miss Davidson are trying to do. I know you are trying to create better men and better women for the Black community. I don’t have any money, but I want you to take these six eggs that I've been saving up, and I want you to use these six eggs for the education of these boys and girls."
Since the work at Tuskegee started, it has been my privilege to receive many gifts for the benefit of the institution, but never any, I think, that touched me so deeply as this one.
Since the work at Tuskegee began, I've had the honor of receiving many gifts for the benefit of the institution, but I don't think any has ever touched me as deeply as this one.
Chapter IX. Anxious Days And Sleepless Nights
The coming of Christmas, that first year of our residence in Alabama, gave us an opportunity to get a farther insight into the real life of the people. The first thing that reminded us that Christmas had arrived was the "foreday" visits of scores of children rapping at our doors, asking for "Chris'mus gifts! Chris'mus gifts!" Between the hours of two o'clock and five o'clock in the morning I presume that we must have had a half-hundred such calls. This custom prevails throughout this portion of the South to-day.
The arrival of Christmas, that first year we lived in Alabama, gave us a chance to gain a deeper understanding of the local people's real lives. The first sign that Christmas was here was the early morning visits from scores of children knocking on our doors, asking for "Christmas gifts! Christmas gifts!" Between two and five in the morning, I guess we must have had around fifty such visits. This tradition continues in this part of the South today.
During the days of slavery it was a custom quite generally observed throughout all the Southern states to give the coloured people a week of holiday at Christmas, or to allow the holiday to continue as long as the "yule log" lasted. The male members of the race, and often the female members, were expected to get drunk. We found that for a whole week the coloured people in and around Tuskegee dropped work the day before Christmas, and that it was difficult for any one to perform any service from the time they stopped work until after the New Year. Persons who at other times did not use strong drink thought it quite the proper thing to indulge in it rather freely during the Christmas week. There was a widespread hilarity, and a free use of guns, pistols, and gunpowder generally. The sacredness of the season seemed to have been almost wholly lost sight of.
During the days of slavery, it was a common practice throughout the Southern states to give the Black people a week off for Christmas or to let the holiday last as long as the "yule log" was burning. The men, and often the women as well, were expected to get drunk. We found that for an entire week, the Black people in and around Tuskegee stopped working the day before Christmas, making it hard for anyone to get any work done until after the New Year. People who usually didn’t drink heavily felt it was totally acceptable to indulge during Christmas week. There was a lot of festive spirit, with a lot of gunfire, pistol use, and fireworks happening everywhere. The true meaning of the season seemed to be almost completely forgotten.
During this first Christmas vacation I went some distance from the town to visit the people on one of the large plantations. In their poverty and ignorance it was pathetic to see their attempts to get joy out of the season that in most parts of the country is so sacred and so dear to the heart. In one cabin I notice that all that the five children had to remind them of the coming of Christ was a single bunch of firecrackers, which they had divided among them. In another cabin, where there were at least a half-dozen persons, they had only ten cents' worth of ginger-cakes, which had been bought in the store the day before. In another family they had only a few pieces of sugarcane. In still another cabin I found nothing but a new jug of cheap, mean whiskey, which the husband and wife were making free use of, notwithstanding the fact that the husband was one of the local ministers. In a few instances I found that the people had gotten hold of some bright-coloured cards that had been designed for advertising purposes, and were making the most of these. In other homes some member of the family had bought a new pistol. In the majority of cases there was nothing to be seen in the cabin to remind one of the coming of the Saviour, except that the people had ceased work in the fields and were lounging about their homes. At night, during Christmas week, they usually had what they called a "frolic," in some cabin on the plantation. That meant a kind of rough dance, where there was likely to be a good deal of whiskey used, and where there might be some shooting or cutting with razors.
During this first Christmas break, I traveled a bit away from town to visit people on one of the large plantations. It was sad to see their attempts to find joy in a season that is so meaningful and cherished in most parts of the country, especially given their poverty and lack of awareness. In one cabin, I noticed that the five children had only a single bunch of firecrackers, which they divided among themselves. In another cabin, where there were at least six people, they had only ten cents' worth of ginger cakes, which they had bought from the store the day before. In yet another family, they had just a few pieces of sugarcane. In a different cabin, I found only a new jug of cheap whiskey, which the husband and wife were drinking freely, even though the husband was one of the local ministers. In some cases, I saw that people had gotten some colorful cards meant for advertising and were making the most of them. In other homes, someone in the family had bought a new pistol. In most cabins, there was nothing to indicate the celebration of the coming of the Savior, except that people had stopped working in the fields and were hanging out at home. At night during Christmas week, they usually had what they called a "frolic" in some cabin on the plantation. That meant a kind of rough dance where a lot of whiskey was likely to be consumed, and there might be some shooting or fighting with razors.
While I was making this Christmas visit I met an old coloured man who was one of the numerous local preachers, who tried to convince me, from the experience Adam had in the Garden of Eden, that God had cursed all labour, and that, therefore, it was a sin for any man to work. For that reason this man sought to do as little work as possible. He seemed at that time to be supremely happy, because he was living, as he expressed it, through one week that was free from sin.
While I was visiting for Christmas, I met an old Black man who was one of the many local preachers. He tried to convince me, based on Adam's experience in the Garden of Eden, that God had cursed all labor, and that it was a sin for any man to work. Because of this belief, he tried to do as little work as possible. At that moment, he seemed incredibly happy because he was living, as he put it, through a week that was free from sin.
In the school we made a special effort to teach our students the meaning of Christmas, and to give them lessons in its proper observance. In this we have been successful to a degree that makes me feel safe in saying that the season now has a new meaning, not only through all that immediate region, but, in a measure, wherever our graduates have gone.
At our school, we worked hard to teach our students the true meaning of Christmas and how to celebrate it properly. I’m pleased to say that we’ve been fairly successful, and I feel confident that the season now carries a new significance, not just in our local area, but also to some extent, wherever our graduates have ended up.
At the present time one of the most satisfactory features of the Christmas and Thanksgiving season at Tuskegee is the unselfish and beautiful way in which our graduates and students spend their time in administering to the comfort and happiness of others, especially the unfortunate. Not long ago some of our young men spent a holiday in rebuilding a cabin for a helpless coloured women who was about seventy-five years old. At another time I remember that I made it known in chapel, one night, that a very poor student was suffering from cold, because he needed a coat. The next morning two coats were sent to my office for him.
Right now, one of the most rewarding aspects of the Christmas and Thanksgiving season at Tuskegee is the selfless and wonderful way our graduates and students dedicate their time to ensuring the comfort and happiness of others, especially those in need. Recently, some of our young men spent a holiday rebuilding a cabin for an elderly Black woman who was around seventy-five years old. I also recall announcing one night in chapel that a very poor student was struggling with the cold because he didn’t have a coat. The next morning, two coats were dropped off at my office for him.
I have referred to the disposition on the part of the white people in the town of Tuskegee and vicinity to help the school. From the first, I resolved to make the school a real part of the community in which it was located. I was determined that no one should have the feeling that it was a foreign institution, dropped down in the midst of the people, for which they had no responsibility and in which they had no interest. I noticed that the very fact that they had been asking to contribute toward the purchase of the land made them begin to feel as if it was going to be their school, to a large degree. I noted that just in proportion as we made the white people feel that the institution was a part of the life of the community, and that, while we wanted to make friends in Boston, for example, we also wanted to make white friends in Tuskegee, and that we wanted to make the school of real service to all the people, their attitude toward the school became favourable.
I have talked about how the white people in the town of Tuskegee and the surrounding area were willing to help the school. From the beginning, I was committed to making the school an integral part of the community it served. I wanted to ensure that no one felt it was a foreign institution, dropped in among them with no connection or interest from the local people. I noticed that the fact they were asking to contribute towards purchasing the land made them start feeling like it was their school, to a significant extent. I realized that as we helped the white community feel that the institution was a part of their lives, and while we sought to build relationships in places like Boston, we also aimed to create friendships with white residents in Tuskegee. We wanted the school to genuinely benefit everyone, and their attitude towards the school improved as a result.
Perhaps I might add right here, what I hope to demonstrate later, that, so far as I know, the Tuskegee school at the present time has no warmer and more enthusiastic friends anywhere than it has among the white citizens of Tuskegee and throughout the state of Alabama and the entire South. From the first, I have advised our people in the South to make friends in every straightforward, manly way with their next-door neighbour, whether he be a black man or a white man. I have also advised them, where no principle is at stake, to consult the interests of their local communities, and to advise with their friends in regard to their voting.
I’d like to point out here, what I plan to show later, that as far as I know, the Tuskegee school right now has some of its strongest and most passionate supporters among the white citizens of Tuskegee and across Alabama and the entire South. From the beginning, I've encouraged our people in the South to build friendships in every honest, respectful way with their neighbors, whether they are black or white. I’ve also suggested that when no principle is at stake, they should consider the interests of their local communities and discuss their voting choices with their friends.
For several months the work of securing the money with which to pay for the farm went on without ceasing. At the end of three months enough was secured to repay the loan of two hundred and fifty dollars to General Marshall, and within two months more we had secured the entire five hundred dollars and had received a deed of the one hundred acres of land. This gave us a great deal of satisfaction. It was not only a source of satisfaction to secure a permanent location for the school, but it was equally satisfactory to know that the greater part of the money with which it was paid for had been gotten from the white and coloured people in the town of Tuskegee. The most of this money was obtained by holding festivals and concerts, and from small individual donations.
For several months, we worked tirelessly to gather the funds needed to purchase the farm. By the end of three months, we had enough to repay General Marshall’s loan of two hundred and fifty dollars. Within two more months, we raised the full five hundred dollars and received the deed for the one hundred acres. This brought us immense satisfaction. Not only was it fulfilling to secure a permanent location for the school, but it was also gratifying to know that most of the money used for the purchase came from the white and Black residents of Tuskegee. Most of these funds were raised through festivals, concerts, and small individual donations.
Our next effort was in the direction of increasing the cultivation of the land, so as to secure some return from it, and at the same time give the students training in agriculture. All the industries at Tuskegee have been started in natural and logical order, growing out of the needs of a community settlement. We began with farming, because we wanted something to eat.
Our next step was to boost the farming on the land to get some return from it, while also providing the students with training in agriculture. All the industries at Tuskegee have developed in a natural and logical way, based on the needs of the community. We started with farming because we needed food.
Many of the students, also, were able to remain in school but a few weeks at a time, because they had so little money with which to pay their board. Thus another object which made it desirable to get an industrial system started was in order to make it available as a means of helping the students to earn money enough so that they might be able to remain in school during the nine months' session of the school year.
Many of the students could only stay in school for a few weeks at a time because they had so little money to pay for their board. Therefore, another goal of starting an industrial system was to provide a way for students to earn enough money to stay in school for the entire nine-month school year.
The first animal that the school came into possession of was an old blind horse given us by one of the white citizens of Tuskegee. Perhaps I may add here that at the present time the school owns over two hundred horses, colts, mules, cows, calves, and oxen, and about seven hundred hogs and pigs, as well as a large number of sheep and goats.
The first animal that the school got was an old blind horse given to us by one of the white citizens of Tuskegee. I should mention that today the school owns over two hundred horses, colts, mules, cows, calves, and oxen, along with about seven hundred hogs and pigs, as well as a large number of sheep and goats.
The school was constantly growing in numbers, so much so that, after we had got the farm paid for, the cultivation of the land begun, and the old cabins which we had found on the place somewhat repaired, we turned our attention toward providing a large, substantial building. After having given a good deal of thought to the subject, we finally had the plans drawn for a building that was estimated to cost about six thousand dollars. This seemed to us a tremendous sum, but we knew that the school must go backward or forward, and that our work would mean little unless we could get hold of the students in their home life.
The school was steadily increasing in enrollment, so much so that after we had paid off the farm, started cultivating the land, and made some repairs to the old cabins we found on the property, we shifted our focus to building a large, solid structure. After putting a lot of thought into it, we finally had plans made for a building that was estimated to cost around six thousand dollars. That seemed like a huge amount to us, but we understood that the school needed to either progress or regress, and that our efforts wouldn't mean much unless we could reach the students in their home lives.
One incident which occurred about this time gave me a great deal of satisfaction as well as surprise. When it became known in the town that we were discussing the plans for a new, large building, a Southern white man who was operating a sawmill not far from Tuskegee came to me and said that he would gladly put all the lumber necessary to erect the building on the grounds, with no other guarantee for payment than my word that it would be paid for when we secured some money. I told the man frankly that at the time we did not have in our hands one dollar of the money needed. Notwithstanding this, he insisted on being allowed to put the lumber on the grounds. After we had secured some portion of the money we permitted him to do this.
One incident that happened around that time really surprised and pleased me. Once it became known in town that we were planning a new, large building, a white man from the South who ran a sawmill near Tuskegee approached me and offered to provide all the lumber we needed to build the structure, asking for nothing in return except my promise that we would pay him once we had the funds. I honestly told him that we didn’t currently have a single dollar available. Despite that, he insisted on being allowed to deliver the lumber. After we managed to secure some of the necessary funds, we allowed him to go ahead.
Miss Davidson again began the work of securing in various ways small contributions for the new building from the white and coloured people in and near Tuskegee. I think I never saw a community of people so happy over anything as were the coloured people over the prospect of this new building. One day, when we were holding a meeting to secure funds for its erection, an old, ante-bellum coloured man came a distance of twelve miles and brought in his ox-cart a large hog. When the meeting was in progress, he rose in the midst of the company and said that he had no money which he could give, but he had raised two fine hogs, and that he had brought one of them as a contribution toward the expenses of the building. He closed his announcement by saying: "Any nigger that's got any love for his race, or any respect for himself, will bring a hog to the next meeting." Quite a number of men in the community also volunteered to give several days' work, each, toward the erection of the building.
Miss Davidson started gathering small donations for the new building from both the white and Black people in and around Tuskegee. I don't think I've ever seen a community so excited about anything as the Black community was about this new building. One day, during a fundraiser meeting, an elderly man, who had lived through the pre-Civil War era, traveled twelve miles with a large hog in his ox-cart. While the meeting was underway, he stood up and said that he didn't have any money to give, but he had raised two fine hogs and brought one as his contribution toward the building's costs. He ended his speech by saying, "Anyone who cares about their community or respects themselves should bring a hog to the next meeting." Several men from the community also offered to volunteer a few days of labor for the construction of the building.
After we had secured all the help that we could in Tuskegee, Miss Davidson decided to go North for the purpose of securing additional funds. For weeks she visited individuals and spoke in churches and before Sunday schools and other organizations. She found this work quite trying, and often embarrassing. The school was not known, but she was not long in winning her way into the confidence of the best people in the North.
After we got all the help we could in Tuskegee, Miss Davidson decided to head North to raise more funds. For weeks, she met with people and spoke in churches, Sunday schools, and other groups. She found this work pretty challenging and often uncomfortable. The school wasn't well-known, but she quickly earned the trust of the best people in the North.
The first gift from any Northern person was received from a New York lady whom Miss Davidson met on the boat that was bringing her North. They fell into a conversation, and the Northern lady became so much interested in the effort being made at Tuskegee that before they parted Miss Davidson was handed a check for fifty dollars. For some time before our marriage, and also after it, Miss Davidson kept up the work of securing money in the North and in the South by interesting people by personal visits and through correspondence. At the same time she kept in close touch with the work at Tuskegee, as lady principal and classroom teacher. In addition to this, she worked among the older people in and near Tuskegee, and taught a Sunday school class in the town. She was never very strong, but never seemed happy unless she was giving all of her strength to the cause which she loved. Often, at night, after spending the day in going from door to door trying to interest persons in the work at Tuskegee, she would be so exhausted that she could not undress herself. A lady upon whom she called, in Boston, afterward told me that at one time when Miss Davidson called her to see and send up her card the lady was detained a little before she could see Miss Davidson, and when she entered the parlour she found Miss Davidson so exhausted that she had fallen asleep.
The first gift from any Northern person came from a woman in New York whom Miss Davidson met on the boat heading North. They struck up a conversation, and the Northern lady became so interested in the work being done at Tuskegee that before they parted, she handed Miss Davidson a check for fifty dollars. For a while before and after our marriage, Miss Davidson continued to raise money in both the North and the South by engaging people through personal visits and letters. At the same time, she stayed closely involved with the work at Tuskegee as the lady principal and a classroom teacher. She also worked with older residents in and around Tuskegee and taught a Sunday school class in the town. Though she was never very strong, she didn’t seem happy unless she was pouring all her energy into the cause she loved. Often, at night, after spending the day going door to door to interest people in the work at Tuskegee, she would be so exhausted that she couldn’t undress herself. A woman she visited in Boston later told me that one time when Miss Davidson arrived to see her, she had to wait a little before she could meet her, and when she finally entered the parlor, she found Miss Davidson so worn out that she had fallen asleep.
While putting up our first building, which was named Porter Hall, after Mr. A.H. Porter, of Brooklyn, N.Y., who gave a generous sum toward its erection, the need for money became acute. I had given one of our creditors a promise that upon a certain day he should be paid four hundred dollars. On the morning of that day we did not have a dollar. The mail arrived at the school at ten o'clock, and in this mail there was a check sent by Miss Davidson for exactly four hundred dollars. I could relate many instances of almost the same character. This four hundred dollars was given by two ladies in Boston. Two years later, when the work at Tuskegee had grown considerably, and when we were in the midst of a season when we were so much in need of money that the future looked doubtful and gloomy, the same two Boston ladies sent us six thousand dollars. Words cannot describe our surprise, or the encouragement that the gift brought to us. Perhaps I might add here that for fourteen years these same friends have sent us six thousand dollars a year.
While constructing our first building, which we named Porter Hall after Mr. A.H. Porter from Brooklyn, N.Y., who generously contributed to its construction, we found ourselves in urgent need of funds. I had promised one of our creditors that he would be paid four hundred dollars on a specific day. On the morning of that day, we didn't have a single dollar. The mail arrived at the school at ten o'clock, and in that mail was a check from Miss Davidson for exactly four hundred dollars. I could share many similar stories. This four hundred dollars came from two ladies in Boston. Two years later, as the work at Tuskegee expanded significantly and we faced a critical financial need that made the future seem uncertain, the same two Boston ladies sent us six thousand dollars. Words can’t express our surprise or the encouragement that gift provided us. It’s worth noting that for fourteen years, these same friends have sent us six thousand dollars each year.
As soon as the plans were drawn for the new building, the students began digging out the earth where the foundations were to be laid, working after the regular classes were over. They had not fully outgrown the idea that it was hardly the proper thing for them to use their hands, since they had come there, as one of them expressed it, "to be educated, and not to work." Gradually, though, I noted with satisfaction that a sentiment in favour of work was gaining ground. After a few weeks of hard work the foundations were ready, and a day was appointed for the laying of the corner-stone.
As soon as the plans were made for the new building, the students started digging out the ground where the foundations would be laid, working after regular classes ended. They hadn’t completely moved past the idea that it wasn’t quite right for them to use their hands, since they had come there, as one of them put it, "to be educated, not to work." Gradually, though, I noticed with satisfaction that a positive attitude towards work was growing. After a few weeks of hard work, the foundations were ready, and a day was set for the laying of the corner-stone.
When it is considered that the laying of this corner-stone took place in the heart of the South, in the "Black Belt," in the centre of that part of our country that was most devoted to slavery; that at that time slavery had been abolished only about sixteen years; that only sixteen years before no Negro could be taught from books without the teacher receiving the condemnation of the law or of public sentiment—when all this is considered, the scene that was witnessed on that spring day at Tuskegee was a remarkable one. I believe there are few places in the world where it could have taken place.
When you think about the fact that the laying of this corner-stone happened in the heart of the South, in the "Black Belt," right in the center of the part of our country that was most committed to slavery; that slavery had only been abolished about sixteen years earlier; and that just sixteen years prior, it was illegal for any Black person to be educated from books without the teacher facing legal or social backlash—when you take all this into account, the scene that unfolded on that spring day at Tuskegee was truly remarkable. I believe there are very few places in the world where this could have happened.
The principal address was delivered by the Hon. Waddy Thompson, the Superintendent of Education for the county. About the corner-stone were gathered the teachers, the students, their parents and friends, the county officials—who were white—and all the leading white men in that vicinity, together with many of the black men and women whom the same white people but a few years before had held a title to as property. The members of both races were anxious to exercise the privilege of placing under the corner-stone some momento.
The main speech was given by the Hon. Waddy Thompson, the Superintendent of Education for the county. Around the corner-stone were gathered the teachers, students, their parents and friends, the county officials—who were white—and all the prominent white men in the area, along with many black men and women whom the same white people had, just a few years earlier, considered as property. People from both races were eager to take part in the opportunity to place a momento under the corner-stone.
Before the building was completed we passed through some very trying seasons. More than once our hearts were made to bleed, as it were, because bills were falling due that we did not have the money to meet. Perhaps no one who has not gone through the experience, month after month, of trying to erect buildings and provide equipment for a school when no one knew where the money was to come from, can properly appreciate the difficulties under which we laboured. During the first years at Tuskegee I recall that night after night I would roll and toss on my bed, without sleep, because of the anxiety and uncertainty which we were in regarding money. I knew that, in a large degree, we were trying an experiment—that of testing whether or not it was possible for Negroes to build up and control the affairs of a large education institution. I knew that if we failed it would injure the whole race. I knew that the presumption was against us. I knew that in the case of white people beginning such an enterprise it would be taken for granted that they were going to succeed, but in our case I felt that people would be surprised if we succeeded. All this made a burden which pressed down on us, sometimes, it seemed, at the rate of a thousand pounds to the square inch.
Before the building was finished, we went through some really tough times. More than once, we felt heartbroken because bills were due that we just couldn't pay. Unless you've experienced the stress of trying to build and equip a school month after month, not knowing where the money would come from, it’s hard to understand the struggles we faced. In the early years at Tuskegee, I remember lying awake night after night, anxious and uncertain about our financial situation. I realized that we were largely attempting an experiment—testing whether it was possible for Black people to build and manage a large educational institution. I knew that if we failed, it would impact the entire race. The odds were against us. I understood that if white people were starting such a project, it would be assumed they would succeed, but I felt that people would be shocked if we succeeded. All of this created a weight on us that sometimes felt like a thousand pounds pressing down.
In all our difficulties and anxieties, however, I never went to a white or a black person in the town of Tuskegee for any assistance that was in their power to render, without being helped according to their means. More than a dozen times, when bills figuring up into the hundreds of dollars were falling due, I applied to the white men of Tuskegee for small loans, often borrowing small amounts from as many as a half-dozen persons, to meet our obligations. One thing I was determined to do from the first, and that was to keep the credit of the school high; and this, I think I can say without boasting, we have done all through these years.
In all our struggles and worries, I never asked a white or black person in Tuskegee for help that they could offer, without receiving assistance based on what they could provide. More than a dozen times, when bills totaling hundreds of dollars were due, I approached the white men of Tuskegee for small loans, often borrowing little amounts from as many as six people to meet our obligations. From the very beginning, I was set on keeping the school's credit strong; and I believe, without boasting, that we have maintained it throughout these years.
I shall always remember a bit of advice given me by Mr. George W. Campbell, the white man to whom I have referred to as the one who induced General Armstrong to send me to Tuskegee. Soon after I entered upon the work Mr. Campbell said to me, in his fatherly way: "Washington, always remember that credit is capital."
I will always remember some advice given to me by Mr. George W. Campbell, the white man I mentioned earlier who encouraged General Armstrong to send me to Tuskegee. Shortly after I started working, Mr. Campbell said to me in a fatherly manner: "Washington, always remember that credit is capital."
At one time when we were in the greatest distress for money that we ever experienced, I placed the situation frankly before General Armstrong. Without hesitation he gave me his personal check for all the money which he had saved for his own use. This was not the only time that General Armstrong helped Tuskegee in this way. I do not think I have ever made this fact public before.
At one point when we were in the biggest financial crisis we had ever faced, I told General Armstrong about our situation honestly. Without any hesitation, he handed me his personal check for all the money he had saved for himself. This wasn’t the only time General Armstrong supported Tuskegee like this. I don't think I've ever shared this information publicly before.
During the summer of 1882, at the end of the first year's work of the school, I was married to Miss Fannie N. Smith, of Malden, W. Va. We began keeping house in Tuskegee early in the fall. This made a home for our teachers, who now had been increased to four in number. My wife was also a graduate of the Hampton Institute. After earnest and constant work in the interests of the school, together with her housekeeping duties, my wife passed away in May, 1884. One child, Portia M. Washington, was born during our marriage.
During the summer of 1882, at the end of the first year of the school, I married Miss Fannie N. Smith from Malden, W. Va. We started our household in Tuskegee early in the fall. This created a home for our teachers, who had now increased to four. My wife was also a graduate of the Hampton Institute. After dedicated and ongoing work for the school, along with her housekeeping responsibilities, my wife passed away in May 1884. One child, Portia M. Washington, was born during our marriage.
From the first, my wife most earnestly devoted her thoughts and time to the work of the school, and was completely one with me in every interest and ambition. She passed away, however, before she had an opportunity of seeing what the school was designed to be.
From the beginning, my wife dedicated her thoughts and time to the school's work, fully aligning with my interests and ambitions. Unfortunately, she passed away before she could see what the school was meant to become.
Chapter X. A Harder Task Than Making Bricks Without Straw
From the very beginning, at Tuskegee, I was determined to have the students do not only the agricultural and domestic work, but to have them erect their own buildings. My plan was to have them, while performing this service, taught the latest and best methods of labour, so that the school would not only get the benefit of their efforts, but the students themselves would be taught to see not only utility in labour, but beauty and dignity; would be taught, in fact, how to lift labour up from mere drudgery and toil, and would learn to love work for its own sake. My plan was not to teach them to work in the old way, but to show them how to make the forces of nature—air, water, steam, electricity, horse-power—assist them in their labour.
From the very beginning at Tuskegee, I was set on having the students not only handle agricultural and domestic tasks but also build their own structures. My plan was to teach them the latest and best methods of work while they performed these services, so that the school would benefit from their efforts, and the students themselves would learn to see not just the practical side of work, but also its beauty and dignity. They would learn how to elevate labor beyond mere drudgery and toil and ultimately come to love work for its own sake. My goal wasn’t to teach them to work in the old-fashioned way, but to show them how to use natural forces—like air, water, steam, electricity, and horsepower—to support their work.
At first many advised against the experiment of having the buildings erected by the labour of the students, but I was determined to stick to it. I told those who doubted the wisdom of the plan that I knew that our first buildings would not be so comfortable or so complete in their finish as buildings erected by the experienced hands of outside workmen, but that in the teaching of civilization, self-help, and self-reliance, the erection of buildings by the students themselves would more than compensate for any lack of comfort or fine finish.
At first, many advised against the idea of having the buildings built by the students, but I was set on going through with it. I told those who questioned the wisdom of the plan that I realized our first buildings wouldn't be as comfortable or as polished as those built by experienced workers from outside, but that in teaching civilization, self-help, and self-reliance, having the students construct the buildings themselves would more than make up for any lack of comfort or quality.
I further told those who doubted the wisdom of this plan, that the majority of our students came to us in poverty, from the cabins of the cotton, sugar, and rice plantations of the South, and that while I knew it would please the students very much to place them at once in finely constructed buildings, I felt that it would be following out a more natural process of development to teach them how to construct their own buildings. Mistakes I knew would be made, but these mistakes would teach us valuable lessons for the future.
I also told those who questioned the wisdom of this plan that most of our students came from poor backgrounds, from the cabins of cotton, sugar, and rice plantations in the South. While I knew that putting them right away into well-built buildings would make the students very happy, I believed it would be more beneficial for their growth to teach them how to build their own structures. I knew mistakes would happen, but those mistakes would provide us with important lessons for the future.
During the now nineteen years' existence of the Tuskegee school, the plan of having the buildings erected by student labour has been adhered to. In this time forty buildings, counting small and large, have been built, and all except four are almost wholly the product of student labour. As an additional result, hundreds of men are now scattered throughout the South who received their knowledge of mechanics while being taught how to erect these buildings. Skill and knowledge are now handed down from one set of students to another in this way, until at the present time a building of any description or size can be constructed wholly by our instructors and students, from the drawing of the plans to the putting in of the electric fixtures, without going off the grounds for a single workman.
During the nineteen years that the Tuskegee school has been around, we've stuck to the plan of having students build the buildings. In that time, we've completed forty structures, big and small, with only four of them not being mostly built by students. As a bonus, there are now hundreds of men spread across the South who learned mechanical skills while helping to construct these buildings. Skills and knowledge are passed down from one group of students to the next, so today, our instructors and students can fully construct any kind of building, from drawing the plans to installing the electrical fixtures, without needing to bring in any outside workers.
Not a few times, when a new student has been led into the temptation of marring the looks of some building by leadpencil marks or by the cuts of a jack-knife, I have heard an old student remind him: "Don't do that. That is our building. I helped put it up."
Not infrequently, when a new student is tempted to deface a building with pencil marks or by carving into it with a knife, I've heard an older student say: "Don't do that. That's our building. I helped build it."
In the early days of the school I think my most trying experience was in the matter of brickmaking. As soon as we got the farm work reasonably well started, we directed our next efforts toward the industry of making bricks. We needed these for use in connection with the erection of our own buildings; but there was also another reason for establishing this industry. There was no brickyard in the town, and in addition to our own needs there was a demand for bricks in the general market.
In the early days of the school, I think my toughest experience was with brickmaking. Once we got the farm work running smoothly, we focused our next efforts on making bricks. We needed them for our own buildings, but there was another reason for starting this industry. There was no brickyard in town, and besides our own needs, there was also a demand for bricks in the general market.
I had always sympathized with the "Children of Israel," in their task of "making bricks without straw," but ours was the task of making bricks with no money and no experience.
I had always felt for the "Children of Israel" in their struggle of "making bricks without straw," but ours was the challenge of making bricks with no money and no experience.
In the first place, the work was hard and dirty, and it was difficult to get the students to help. When it came to brickmaking, their distaste for manual labour in connection with book education became especially manifest. It was not a pleasant task for one to stand in the mud-pit for hours, with the mud up to his knees. More than one man became disgusted and left the school.
In the beginning, the work was tough and messy, and it was hard to get the students to pitch in. When it came to making bricks, their dislike for physical labor related to academic learning became especially obvious. It wasn’t a fun job to stand in the mud pit for hours with mud up to your knees. More than one person got fed up and left the school.
We tried several locations before we opened up a pit that furnished brick clay. I had always supposed that brickmaking was very simple, but I soon found out by bitter experience that it required special skill and knowledge, particularly in the burning of the bricks. After a good deal of effort we moulded about twenty-five thousand bricks, and put them into a kiln to be burned. This kiln turned out to be a failure, because it was not properly constructed or properly burned. We began at once, however, on a second kiln. This, for some reason, also proved a failure. The failure of this kiln made it still more difficult to get the students to take part in the work. Several of the teachers, however, who had been trained in the industries at Hampton, volunteered their services, and in some way we succeeded in getting a third kiln ready for burning. The burning of a kiln required about a week. Toward the latter part of the week, when it seemed as if we were going to have a good many thousand bricks in a few hours, in the middle of the night the kiln fell. For the third time we had failed.
We tried out several locations before we dug a pit that provided brick clay. I always thought that making bricks was really simple, but I quickly learned through tough experience that it took special skill and knowledge, especially when it came to firing the bricks. After a lot of hard work, we shaped about twenty-five thousand bricks and put them into a kiln to be fired. Unfortunately, this kiln ended up being a failure because it wasn't built correctly or fired properly. We immediately set to work on a second kiln. For some reason, this one also failed. The failure of this kiln made it even harder to get the students involved in the process. However, several teachers who had been trained in industry at Hampton offered their help, and somehow we managed to prepare a third kiln for firing. Firing a kiln takes about a week. Toward the end of that week, just when it looked like we were going to have a lot of bricks ready in a few hours, the kiln collapsed in the middle of the night. For the third time, we had failed.
The failure of this last kiln left me without a single dollar with which to make another experiment. Most of the teachers advised the abandoning of the effort to make bricks. In the midst of my troubles I thought of a watch which had come into my possession years before. I took the watch to the city of Montgomery, which was not far distant, and placed it in a pawn-shop. I secured cash upon it to the amount of fifteen dollars, with which to renew the brickmaking experiment. I returned to Tuskegee, and, with the help of the fifteen dollars, rallied our rather demoralized and discouraged forces and began a fourth attempt to make bricks. This time, I am glad to say, we were successful. Before I got hold of any money, the time-limit on my watch had expired, and I have never seen it since; but I have never regretted the loss of it.
The failure of this last kiln left me with no money to try again. Most of the teachers advised giving up on making bricks. In the midst of my troubles, I remembered a watch I had gotten years before. I took the watch to the nearby city of Montgomery and sold it at a pawn shop. I got fifteen dollars for it, which I used to restart the brick-making effort. I went back to Tuskegee, and with that fifteen dollars, I motivated our discouraged team and began a fourth attempt at making bricks. This time, I’m happy to say, we succeeded. Before I received any money, the time on my watch ran out, and I’ve never seen it since; but I’ve never regretted losing it.
Brickmaking has now become such an important industry at the school that last season our students manufactured twelve hundred thousand of first-class bricks, of a quality suitable to be sold in any market. Aside from this, scores of young men have mastered the brickmaking trade—both the making of bricks by hand and by machinery—and are now engaged in this industry in many parts of the South.
Brickmaking has now become such a vital industry at the school that last season our students produced one million two hundred thousand top-quality bricks, suitable for sale in any market. In addition, many young men have learned the brickmaking trade—both making bricks by hand and using machinery—and are now working in this industry across various areas in the South.
The making of these bricks taught me an important lesson in regard to the relations of the two races in the South. Many white people who had had no contact with the school, and perhaps no sympathy with it, came to us to buy bricks because they found out that ours were good bricks. They discovered that we were supplying a real want in the community. The making of these bricks caused many of the white residents of the neighbourhood to begin to feel that the education of the Negro was not making him worthless, but that in educating our students we were adding something to the wealth and comfort of the community. As the people of the neighbourhood came to us to buy bricks, we got acquainted with them; they traded with us and we with them. Our business interests became intermingled. We had something which they wanted; they had something which we wanted. This, in a large measure, helped to lay the foundation for the pleasant relations that have continued to exist between us and the white people in that section, and which now extend throughout the South.
The process of making these bricks taught me an important lesson about the relationships between the two races in the South. Many white people who had no prior interaction with the school, and perhaps no sympathy for it, came to us to buy bricks after realizing that ours were high quality. They discovered that we were fulfilling a genuine need in the community. The production of these bricks led many white residents nearby to begin to understand that educating Black individuals didn’t make them worthless; instead, educating our students contributed to the wealth and comfort of the community. As neighbors came to us for bricks, we got to know each other; they traded with us, and we traded with them. Our business interests became intertwined. We had something they wanted; they had something we wanted. This significantly helped lay the groundwork for the friendly relations that have continued between us and the white community in that area, which now extend throughout the South.
Wherever one of our brickmakers has gone in the South, we find that he has something to contribute to the well-being of the community into which he has gone; something that has made the community feel that, in a degree, it is indebted to him, and perhaps, to a certain extent, dependent upon him. In this way pleasant relations between the races have been stimulated.
Wherever one of our brickmakers has gone in the South, we see that he has something to offer for the good of the community he's joined; something that has made the community feel somewhat grateful to him, and maybe even a bit reliant on him. This has encouraged positive relationships between the races.
My experience is that there is something in human nature which always makes an individual recognize and reward merit, no matter under what colour of skin merit is found. I have found, too, that it is the visible, the tangible, that goes a long ways in softening prejudices. The actual sight of a first-class house that a Negro has built is ten times more potent than pages of discussion about a house that he ought to build, or perhaps could build.
My experience shows that there's something in human nature that makes people recognize and reward talent, regardless of the skin color it comes from. I've also found that seeing something tangible and real can really help break down prejudices. The actual sight of a high-quality house built by a Black person is ten times more impactful than pages of discussion about a house they should build or might be able to build.
The same principle of industrial education has been carried out in the building of our own wagons, carts, and buggies, from the first. We now own and use on our farm and about the school dozens of these vehicles, and every one of them has been built by the hands of the students. Aside from this, we help supply the local market with these vehicles. The supplying of them to the people in the community has had the same effect as the supplying of bricks, and the man who learns at Tuskegee to build and repair wagons and carts is regarded as a benefactor by both races in the community where he goes. The people with whom he lives and works are going to think twice before they part with such a man.
The same idea of practical education has been implemented in making our own wagons, carts, and buggies from the beginning. We now own and use dozens of these vehicles on our farm and around the school, and every one of them has been built by the students. In addition to this, we help supply the local market with these vehicles. Providing them to the community has had a similar positive impact as supplying bricks, and a person who learns to build and repair wagons and carts at Tuskegee is seen as a valuable asset by both races in the community where they live. The people he works with will definitely think twice before letting go of someone like that.
The individual who can do something that the world wants done will, in the end, make his way regardless of race. One man may go into a community prepared to supply the people there with an analysis of Greek sentences. The community may not at the time be prepared for, or feel the need of, Greek analysis, but it may feel its need of bricks and houses and wagons. If the man can supply the need for those, then, it will lead eventually to a demand for the first product, and with the demand will come the ability to appreciate it and to profit by it.
The person who can provide something the world needs will ultimately succeed, no matter their race. One person might enter a community ready to offer an analysis of Greek sentences. The community may not be interested in or feel the need for Greek analysis at that moment, but they might need bricks, houses, and wagons. If that person can meet those needs, it will eventually create a demand for the Greek analysis, and with that demand will come an appreciation for it and the ability to benefit from it.
About the time that we succeeded in burning our first kiln of bricks we began facing in an emphasized form the objection of the students to being taught to work. By this time it had gotten to be pretty well advertised throughout the state that every student who came to Tuskegee, no matter what his financial ability might be, must learn some industry. Quite a number of letters came from parents protesting against their children engaging in labour while they were in the school. Other parents came to the school to protest in person. Most of the new students brought a written or a verbal request from their parents to the effect that they wanted their children taught nothing but books. The more books, the larger they were, and the longer the titles printed upon them, the better pleased the students and their parents seemed to be.
Around the time we successfully burned our first kiln of bricks, we started facing a strong objection from the students about being taught to work. By then, it was pretty well known across the state that every student who came to Tuskegee, regardless of their financial situation, had to learn some kind of trade. We received a number of letters from parents complaining about their children having to do labor while in school. Other parents even came to the school to voice their concerns in person. Most of the new students arrived with a written or verbal request from their parents saying they only wanted their children taught academic subjects. The more books, the bigger they were, and the longer the titles on them, the happier the students and their parents seemed to be.
I gave little heed to these protests, except that I lost no opportunity to go into as many parts of the state as I could, for the purpose of speaking to the parents, and showing them the value of industrial education. Besides, I talked to the students constantly on the subject. Notwithstanding the unpopularity of industrial work, the school continued to increase in numbers to such an extent that by the middle of the second year there was an attendance of about one hundred and fifty, representing almost all parts of the state of Alabama, and including a few from other states.
I paid little attention to these objections, but I made sure to visit as many areas of the state as I could to talk to parents and show them the benefits of industrial education. I also regularly discussed the topic with the students. Despite the unpopularity of industrial work, the school kept growing in attendance, so much so that by the middle of
In the summer of 1882 Miss Davidson and I both went North and engaged in the work of raising funds for the completion of our new building. On my way North I stopped in New York to try to get a letter of recommendation from an officer of a missionary organization who had become somewhat acquainted with me a few years previous. This man not only refused to give me the letter, but advised me most earnestly to go back home at once, and not make any attempt to get money, for he was quite sure that I would never get more than enough to pay my travelling expenses. I thanked him for his advice, and proceeded on my journey.
In the summer of 1882, Miss Davidson and I both headed North to raise funds for completing our new building. On my way up, I stopped in New York to see if I could get a letter of recommendation from an officer of a missionary organization who had gotten to know me a bit a few years earlier. This man not only refused to give me the letter but also strongly advised me to go back home right away and not try to raise money, as he was quite sure I would only manage to cover my travel expenses. I thanked him for his advice and continued on my way.
The first place I went to in the North, was Northampton, Mass., where I spent nearly a half-day in looking for a coloured family with whom I could board, never dreaming that any hotel would admit me. I was greatly surprised when I found that I would have no trouble in being accommodated at a hotel.
The first place I went to in the North was Northampton, Mass., where I spent almost half a day looking for a Black family to stay with, never thinking that any hotel would take me in. I was really surprised when I found out that I wouldn’t have any trouble getting a room at a hotel.
We were successful in getting money enough so that on Thanksgiving Day of that year we held our first service in the chapel of Porter Hall, although the building was not completed.
We successfully raised enough money so that on Thanksgiving Day that year, we held our first service in the chapel of Porter Hall, even though the building wasn't finished.
In looking about for some one to preach the Thanksgiving sermon, I found one of the rarest men that it has ever been my privilege to know. This was the Rev. Robert C. Bedford, a white man from Wisconsin, who was then pastor of a little coloured Congregational church in Montgomery, Ala. Before going to Montgomery to look for some one to preach this sermon I had never heard of Mr. Bedford. He had never heard of me. He gladly consented to come to Tuskegee and hold the Thanksgiving service. It was the first service of the kind that the coloured people there had ever observed, and what a deep interest they manifested in it! The sight of the new building made it a day of Thanksgiving for them never to be forgotten.
While searching for someone to give the Thanksgiving sermon, I came across one of the most remarkable people I've ever had the privilege to meet. This was the Rev. Robert C. Bedford, a white man from Wisconsin, who was then the pastor of a small Black Congregational church in Montgomery, Alabama. Before heading to Montgomery to find someone to preach this sermon, I had never heard of Mr. Bedford. He had never heard of me either. He happily agreed to come to Tuskegee and lead the Thanksgiving service. It was the first service of its kind that the Black community there had ever held, and they showed a deep interest in it! The sight of the new building made it a Thanksgiving day they would never forget.
Mr. Bedford consented to become one of the trustees of the school, and in that capacity, and as a worker for it, he has been connected with it for eighteen years. During this time he has borne the school upon his heart night and day, and is never so happy as when he is performing some service, no matter how humble, for it. He completely obliterates himself in everything, and looks only for permission to serve where service is most disagreeable, and where others would not be attracted. In all my relations with him he has seemed to me to approach as nearly to the spirit of the Master as almost any man I ever met.
Mr. Bedford agreed to become one of the trustees of the school, and in that role, as well as in his work for it, he has been involved for eighteen years. During this time, he has kept the school close to his heart day and night, and he’s never happier than when he’s doing some service, no matter how small, for it. He completely sets aside his own needs and looks for ways to help, even when the tasks are the least appealing and where others wouldn’t want to go. In all my interactions with him, he has seemed to embody the spirit of the Master more than almost anyone I’ve ever known.
A little later there came into the service of the school another man, quite young at the time, and fresh from Hampton, without whose service the school never could have become what it is. This was Mr. Warren Logan, who now for seventeen years has been the treasurer of the Institute, and the acting principal during my absence. He has always shown a degree of unselfishness and an amount of business tact, coupled with a clear judgment, that has kept the school in good condition no matter how long I have been absent from it. During all the financial stress through which the school has passed, his patience and faith in our ultimate success have not left him.
A little later, another man joined the school’s staff, quite young at the time and fresh from Hampton, without whom the school would never have become what it is today. This was Mr. Warren Logan, who has been the treasurer of the Institute for seventeen years and the acting principal during my absences. He has always demonstrated remarkable selflessness and business savvy, along with clear judgment, which has kept the school in great shape no matter how long I’ve been away. Throughout all the financial challenges the school has faced, his patience and belief in our eventual success have never wavered.
As soon as our first building was near enough to completion so that we could occupy a portion of it—which was near the middle of the second year of the school—we opened a boarding department. Students had begun coming from quite a distance, and in such increasing numbers that we felt more and more that we were merely skimming over the surface, in that we were not getting hold of the students in their home life.
As soon as our first building was close enough to being finished that we could use part of it—which was around the middle of the second year of the school—we started a boarding department. Students were beginning to come from far away, and in such growing numbers that we felt we were just touching the surface, as we weren't really connecting with the students in their home lives.
We had nothing but the students and their appetites with which to begin a boarding department. No provision had been made in the new building for a kitchen and dining room; but we discovered that by digging out a large amount of earth from under the building we could make a partially lighted basement room that could be used for a kitchen and dining room. Again I called on the students to volunteer for work, this time to assist in digging out the basement. This they did, and in a few weeks we had a place to cook and eat in, although it was very rough and uncomfortable. Any one seeing the place now would never believe that it was once used for a dining room.
We had nothing but the students and their hunger to kick off a boarding department. No plans were made in the new building for a kitchen and dining area; however, we found that by digging out a large amount of dirt from under the building, we could create a partially lit basement that could serve as a kitchen and dining room. Once again, I asked the students to volunteer for work, this time to help dig out the basement. They jumped in, and within a few weeks, we had a space to cook and eat in, though it was pretty rough and uncomfortable. Anyone who sees the place now would never believe it was once used as a dining room.
The most serious problem, though, was to get the boarding department started off in running order, with nothing to do with in the way of furniture, and with no money with which to buy anything. The merchants in the town would let us have what food we wanted on credit. In fact, in those earlier years I was constantly embarrassed because people seemed to have more faith in me than I had in myself. It was pretty hard to cook, however, without stoves, and awkward to eat without dishes. At first the cooking was done out-of-doors, in the old-fashioned, primitive style, in pots and skillets placed over a fire. Some of the carpenters' benches that had been used in the construction of the building were utilized for tables. As for dishes, there were too few to make it worth while to spend time in describing them.
The biggest challenge, though, was getting the boarding department up and running, with no furniture and no money to buy anything. The local merchants would let us have whatever food we needed on credit. In fact, during those early years, I often felt embarrassed because people seemed to have more faith in me than I did in myself. It was pretty tough to cook without stoves and awkward to eat without dishes. Initially, the cooking was done outdoors, in a simple, old-fashioned way, using pots and pans over an open fire. Some of the carpenters' benches used during the building construction were repurposed as tables. As for the dishes, there were so few that it wasn’t worth the time to describe them.
No one connected with the boarding department seemed to have any idea that meals must be served at certain fixed and regular hours, and this was a source of great worry. Everything was so out of joint and so inconvenient that I feel safe in saying that for the first two weeks something was wrong at every meal. Either the meat was not done or had been burnt, or the salt had been left out of the bread, or the tea had been forgotten.
No one involved with the boarding department seemed to realize that meals needed to be served at specific set times, and this caused a lot of stress. Everything was so disorganized and inconvenient that I can confidently say something was wrong at every meal for the first two weeks. Either the meat was undercooked or overcooked, the salt was missing from the bread, or the tea was forgotten.
Early one morning I was standing near the dining-room door listening to the complaints of the students. The complaints that morning were especially emphatic and numerous, because the whole breakfast had been a failure. One of the girls who had failed to get any breakfast came out and went to the well to draw some water to drink and take the place of the breakfast which she had not been able to get. When she reached the well, she found that the rope was broken and that she could get no water. She turned from the well and said, in the most discouraged tone, not knowing that I was where I could hear her, "We can't even get water to drink at this school." I think no one remark ever came so near discouraging me as that one.
Early one morning, I was standing by the dining-room door, listening to the students complain. That morning, their complaints were especially loud and frequent because breakfast had been a total disaster. One of the girls, who hadn’t managed to get any breakfast, went outside to the well to fetch some water to drink instead. When she got to the well, she discovered that the rope was broken and she couldn’t draw any water. She turned away from the well and said, in the most discouraged tone, not realizing I was close enough to hear her, "We can't even get water to drink at this school." I think no single remark ever came so close to discouraging me as that one.
At another time, when Mr. Bedford—whom I have already spoken of as one of our trustees, and a devoted friend of the institution—was visiting the school, he was given a bedroom immediately over the dining room. Early in the morning he was awakened by a rather animated discussion between two boys in the dining room below. The discussion was over the question as to whose turn it was to use the coffee-cup that morning. One boy won the case by proving that for three mornings he had not had an opportunity to use the cup at all.
At another time, when Mr. Bedford—whom I've already mentioned as one of our trustees and a dedicated friend of the institution—was visiting the school, he got a bedroom directly above the dining room. Early in the morning, he was woken up by a lively discussion between two boys in the dining room below. They were debating whose turn it was to use the coffee cup that morning. One boy won the argument by showing that he hadn't had a chance to use the cup at all for three mornings.
But gradually, with patience and hard work, we brought order out of chaos, just as will be true of any problem if we stick to it with patience and wisdom and earnest effort.
But gradually, with patience and hard work, we created order from chaos, just like any problem can be solved if we approach it with patience, wisdom, and sincere effort.
As I look back now over that part of our struggle, I am glad to see that we had it. I am glad that we endured all those discomforts and inconveniences. I am glad that our students had to dig out the place for their kitchen and dining room. I am glad that our first boarding-place was in the dismal, ill-lighted, and damp basement. Had we started in a fine, attractive, convenient room, I fear we would have "lost our heads" and become "stuck up." It means a great deal, I think, to start off on a foundation which one has made for one's self.
As I look back on that part of our journey, I’m grateful we went through it. I’m glad we faced all those hardships and inconveniences. I’m glad our students had to clear out the area for their kitchen and dining room. I’m glad our first boarding place was in the gloomy, poorly lit, damp basement. If we had started in a nice, appealing, convenient room, I worry we would have "lost our heads" and become "snobby." I believe it means a lot to begin on a foundation that you've built for yourself.
When our old students return to Tuskegee now, as they often do, and go into our large, beautiful, well-ventilated, and well-lighted dining room, and see tempting, well-cooked food—largely grown by the students themselves—and see tables, neat tablecloths and napkins, and vases of flowers upon the tables, and hear singing birds, and note that each meal is served exactly upon the minute, with no disorder, and with almost no complaint coming from the hundreds that now fill our dining room, they, too, often say to me that they are glad that we started as we did, and built ourselves up year by year, by a slow and natural process of growth.
When our former students come back to Tuskegee now, which they do frequently, and step into our spacious, beautiful, well-ventilated, and well-lit dining room, and see delicious, well-prepared food—mostly grown by the students themselves—and see tables set up with neat tablecloths and napkins, and vases of flowers on the tables, and hear singing birds, and notice that each meal is served right on time, with no chaos, and with hardly any complaints from the hundreds filling our dining room, they often tell me how happy they are that we started out as we did, growing steadily and naturally year after year.
Chapter XI. Making Their Beds Before They Could Lie On Them
A little later in the history of the school we had a visit from General J.F.B. Marshall, the Treasurer of the Hampton Institute, who had had faith enough to lend us the first two hundred and fifty dollars with which to make a payment down on the farm. He remained with us a week, and made a careful inspection of everything. He seemed well pleased with our progress, and wrote back interesting and encouraging reports to Hampton. A little later Miss Mary F. Mackie, the teacher who had given me the "sweeping" examination when I entered Hampton, came to see us, and still later General Armstrong himself came.
A little later in the school’s history, we had a visit from General J.F.B. Marshall, the Treasurer of the Hampton Institute, who had enough faith in us to lend us the first two hundred and fifty dollars to make a down payment on the farm. He stayed with us for a week and carefully inspected everything. He seemed satisfied with our progress and sent back interesting and encouraging reports to Hampton. Soon after, Miss Mary F. Mackie, the teacher who had given me the "sweeping" exam when I entered Hampton, came to visit us, and later, General Armstrong himself came by.
At the time of the visits of these Hampton friends the number of teachers at Tuskegee had increased considerably, and the most of the new teachers were graduates of the Hampton Institute. We gave our Hampton friends, especially General Armstrong, a cordial welcome. They were all surprised and pleased at the rapid progress that the school had made within so short a time. The coloured people from miles around came to the school to get a look at General Armstrong, about whom they had heard so much. The General was not only welcomed by the members of my own race, but by the Southern white people as well.
During the visits from our friends from Hampton, the number of teachers at Tuskegee had grown significantly, with most of the new teachers being graduates from the Hampton Institute. We warmly welcomed our Hampton friends, especially General Armstrong. Everyone was surprised and pleased by how much progress the school had made in such a short time. People of color from miles around came to the school just to see General Armstrong, whom they had heard so much about. The General was welcomed not only by my own community but also by the Southern white residents.
This first visit which General Armstrong made to Tuskegee gave me an opportunity to get an insight into his character such as I had not before had. I refer to his interest in the Southern white people. Before this I had had the thought that General Armstrong, having fought the Southern white man, rather cherished a feeling of bitterness toward the white South, and was interested in helping only the coloured man there. But this visit convinced me that I did not know the greatness and the generosity of the man. I soon learned, by his visits to the Southern white people, and from his conversations with them, that he was as anxious about the prosperity and the happiness of the white race as the black. He cherished no bitterness against the South, and was happy when an opportunity offered for manifesting his sympathy. In all my acquaintance with General Armstrong I never heard him speak, in public or in private, a single bitter word against the white man in the South. From his example in this respect I learned the lesson that great men cultivate love, and that only little men cherish a spirit of hatred. I learned that assistance given to the weak makes the one who gives it strong; and that oppression of the unfortunate makes one weak.
This first visit that General Armstrong made to Tuskegee gave me a chance to understand his character in a way I hadn’t before. I’m referring to his interest in the Southern white people. Before this, I thought that General Armstrong, having fought against the Southern white man, held some bitterness toward the white South and was only focused on helping the black community there. But this visit showed me that I didn't appreciate the greatness and generosity of the man. I soon realized, through his visits with Southern white people and his conversations with them, that he cared about the prosperity and happiness of the white race just as much as the black. He felt no bitterness toward the South and was eager whenever a chance arose to show his sympathy. In all my time knowing General Armstrong, I never heard him speak a single bitter word about the white man in the South, either publicly or privately. From his example, I learned that great people foster love, while only small-minded individuals hold onto hatred. I discovered that helping the weak makes the giver stronger, while oppressing the unfortunate weakens oneself.
It is now long ago that I learned this lesson from General Armstrong, and resolved that I would permit no man, no matter what his colour might be, to narrow and degrade my soul by making me hate him. With God's help, I believe that I have completely rid myself of any ill feeling toward the Southern white man for any wrong that he may have inflicted upon my race. I am made to feel just as happy now when I am rendering service to Southern white men as when the service is rendered to a member of my own race. I pity from the bottom of my heart any individual who is so unfortunate as to get into the habit of holding race prejudice.
A long time ago, I learned this lesson from General Armstrong and decided that I wouldn’t let anyone, regardless of their skin color, diminish or degrade my spirit by making me hate them. With God's help, I truly believe that I have let go of any negative feelings toward Southern white men for any harm they may have caused my race. I feel just as happy now when I’m serving Southern white men as I do when I’m helping someone from my own race. I deeply pity anyone who is unfortunate enough to develop a habit of racial prejudice.
The more I consider the subject, the more strongly I am convinced that the most harmful effect of the practice to which the people in certain sections of the South have felt themselves compelled to resort, in order to get rid of the force of the Negroes' ballot, is not wholly in the wrong done to the Negro, but in the permanent injury to the morals of the white man. The wrong to the Negro is temporary, but to the morals of the white man the injury is permanent. I have noted time and time again that when an individual perjures himself in order to break the force of the black man's ballot, he soon learns to practise dishonesty in other relations of life, not only where the Negro is concerned, but equally so where a white man is concerned. The white man who begins by cheating a Negro usually ends by cheating a white man. The white man who begins to break the law by lynching a Negro soon yields to the temptation to lynch a white man. All this, it seems to me, makes it important that the whole Nation lend a hand in trying to lift the burden of ignorance from the South.
The more I think about this, the more I believe that the most damaging effect of the actions some people in certain parts of the South have felt forced to take to undermine the power of Black voters isn’t just the harm done to Black individuals, but rather the lasting damage to the morals of white individuals. The harm to Black people might be temporary, but the impact on white people's morals is lasting. I've seen time and again that when someone lies in order to diminish the power of a Black vote, they quickly begin to act dishonestly in other areas of their life, not just regarding Black people, but also in dealing with other white individuals. A white person who starts by cheating a Black person typically ends up cheating another white person. Likewise, a white person who starts breaking the law by lynching a Black person often gives in to the urge to lynch another white person. All of this suggests to me that it’s crucial for the entire nation to come together and help lift the burden of ignorance from the South.
Another thing that is becoming more apparent each year in the development of education in the South is the influence of General Armstrong's idea of education; and this not upon the blacks alone, but upon the whites also. At the present time there is almost no Southern state that is not putting forth efforts in the direction of securing industrial education for its white boys and girls, and in most cases it is easy to trace the history of these efforts back to General Armstrong.
Another thing that's becoming more obvious each year in the development of education in the South is the impact of General Armstrong's educational philosophy; and this is affecting not just black students, but white ones too. Right now, there's almost no Southern state that isn't working to provide industrial education for its white boys and girls, and in most cases, it's easy to trace the origins of these efforts back to General Armstrong.
Soon after the opening of our humble boarding department students began coming to us in still larger numbers. For weeks we not only had to contend with the difficulty of providing board, with no money, but also with that of providing sleeping accommodations. For this purpose we rented a number of cabins near the school. These cabins were in a dilapidated condition, and during the winter months the students who occupied them necessarily suffered from the cold. We charge the students eight dollars a month—all they were able to pay—for their board. This included, besides board, room, fuel, and washing. We also gave the students credit on their board bills for all the work which they did for the school which was of any value to the institution. The cost of tuition, which was fifty dollars a year for each student, we had to secure then, as now, wherever we could.
Soon after we opened our small boarding department, more and more students started coming to us. For weeks, we not only struggled to provide meals with no money but also had to figure out sleeping arrangements. To deal with this, we rented several cabins near the school. These cabins were in bad shape, and during the winter months, the students living in them had to deal with the cold. We charged the students eight dollars a month—about all they could afford—for their board. This included meals, a room, heating, and laundry. We also gave students credit on their board bills for any work they did that benefited the school. The tuition, which was fifty dollars a year for each student, we still had to find funding for, just like we do now.
This small charge in cash gave us no capital with which to start a boarding department. The weather during the second winter of our work was very cold. We were not able to provide enough bed-clothes to keep the students warm. In fact, for some time we were not able to provide, except in a few cases, bedsteads and mattresses of any kind. During the coldest nights I was so troubled about the discomfort of the students that I could not sleep myself. I recall that on several occasions I went in the middle of the night to the shanties occupied by the young men, for the purpose of confronting them. Often I found some of them sitting huddled around a fire, with the one blanket which we had been able to provide wrapped around them, trying in this way to keep warm. During the whole night some of them did not attempt to lie down. One morning, when the night previous had been unusually cold, I asked those of the students in the chapel who thought that they had been frostbitten during the night to raise their hands. Three hands went up. Notwithstanding these experiences, there was almost no complaining on the part of the students. They knew that we were doing the best that we could for them. They were happy in the privilege of being permitted to enjoy any kind of opportunity that would enable them to improve their condition. They were constantly asking what they might do to lighten the burdens of the teachers.
This small cash amount gave us no funds to start a boarding program. The weather during our second winter was extremely cold. We couldn't provide enough bedding to keep the students warm. In fact, for a while, we couldn't supply, except in a few cases, any bed frames or mattresses. On the coldest nights, I was so worried about the students' discomfort that I couldn't sleep. I remember going to the shanties where the young men stayed in the middle of the night, just to check on them. Often, I found some sitting huddled around a fire, wrapped in the one blanket we managed to provide, trying to stay warm. Many of them didn’t even try to lie down all night. One morning, after an especially cold night, I asked the students in the chapel who thought they might have gotten frostbite to raise their hands. Three hands went up. Despite these experiences, there was almost no complaining from the students. They understood we were doing our best for them. They were grateful for the chance to have any opportunity that could help improve their situation. They were always asking how they could help lighten the teachers' burdens.
I have heard it stated more than once, both in the North and in the South, that coloured people would not obey and respect each other when one member of the race is placed in a position of authority over others. In regard to this general belief and these statements, I can say that during the nineteen years of my experience at Tuskegee I never, either by word or act, have been treated with disrespect by any student or officer connected with the institution. On the other hand, I am constantly embarrassed by the many acts of thoughtful kindness. The students do not seem to want to see me carry a large book or a satchel or any kind of a burden through the grounds. In such cases more than one always offers to relieve me. I almost never go out of my office when the rain is falling that some student does not come to my side with an umbrella and ask to be allowed to hold it over me.
I’ve heard more than once, both in the North and the South, that people of color don’t respect or obey each other when one of them is in a position of authority over others. Regarding this belief, I can say that in my nineteen years at Tuskegee, I have never been treated with disrespect by any student or staff member connected to the institution, either through words or actions. On the contrary, I am often embarrassed by the many thoughtful gestures of kindness. The students seem to want to help, always offering to carry a large book or my bag when they see me with a burden on campus. Almost every time I leave my office when it’s raining, a student approaches me with an umbrella and insists on holding it over me.
While writing upon this subject, it is a pleasure for me to add that in all my contact with the white people of the South I have never received a single personal insult. The white people in and near Tuskegee, to an especial degree, seem to count it as a privilege to show me all the respect within their power, and often go out of their way to do this.
While writing about this topic, I’m happy to say that in all my interactions with the white people in the South, I’ve never faced a single personal insult. The white people in and around Tuskegee, in particular, seem to take it as a privilege to show me all the respect they can, and they often go out of their way to do so.
Not very long ago I was making a journey between Dallas (Texas) and Houston. In some way it became known in advance that I was on the train. At nearly every station at which the train stopped, numbers of white people, including in most cases of the officials of the town, came aboard and introduced themselves and thanked me heartily for the work that I was trying to do for the South.
Not too long ago, I was traveling between Dallas and Houston. Somehow, it got out that I was on the train. At almost every station where the train stopped, quite a few white people, including many local officials, got on and introduced themselves, expressing their gratitude for the work I was doing for the South.
On another occasion, when I was making a trip from Augusta, Georgia, to Atlanta, being rather tired from much travel, I rode in a Pullman sleeper. When I went into the car, I found there two ladies from Boston whom I knew well. These good ladies were perfectly ignorant, it seems, of the customs of the South, and in the goodness of their hearts insisted that I take a seat with them in their section. After some hesitation I consented. I had been there but a few minutes when one of them, without my knowledge, ordered supper to be served for the three of us. This embarrassed me still further. The car was full of Southern white men, most of whom had their eyes on our party. When I found that supper had been ordered, I tried to contrive some excuse that would permit me to leave the section, but the ladies insisted that I must eat with them. I finally settled back in my seat with a sigh, and said to myself, "I am in for it now, sure."
One time, when I was traveling from Augusta, Georgia, to Atlanta, I was pretty tired from all the traveling, so I took a Pullman sleeper. When I entered the car, I ran into two ladies from Boston that I knew well. These kind ladies had no idea about Southern customs and eagerly insisted that I join them in their section. After a bit of hesitation, I agreed. I had only been there a few minutes when one of them, without me realizing it, ordered dinner for the three of us. This made me even more uncomfortable. The car was packed with Southern white men, most of whom were watching our group. When I realized dinner had been ordered, I tried to come up with an excuse to leave the section, but the ladies insisted I had to eat with them. I finally settled back in my seat with a sigh and thought to myself, "I'm really stuck now."
To add further to the embarrassment of the situation, soon after the supper was placed on the table one of the ladies remembered that she had in her satchel a special kind of tea which she wished served, and as she said she felt quite sure the porter did not know how to brew it properly, she insisted upon getting up and preparing and serving it herself. At last the meal was over; and it seemed the longest one that I had ever eaten. When we were through, I decided to get myself out of the embarrassing situation and go to the smoking-room, where most of the men were by that time, to see how the land lay. In the meantime, however, it had become known in some way throughout the car who I was. When I went into the smoking-room I was never more surprised in my life than when each man, nearly every one of them a citizen of Georgia, came up and introduced himself to me and thanked me earnestly for the work that I was trying to do for the whole South. This was not flattery, because each one of these individuals knew that he had nothing to gain by trying to flatter me.
To make the situation even more awkward, right after dinner was served, one of the ladies remembered she had a special kind of tea in her bag that she wanted served. She insisted on getting up to prepare and serve it herself, saying she was sure the porter wouldn’t know how to brew it properly. Finally, the meal ended, and it felt like the longest one I had ever had. Once we finished, I decided to escape the awkwardness and head to the smoking room, where most of the men had gathered, to see what was going on. Meanwhile, word had somehow spread throughout the train car about who I was. When I walked into the smoking room, I was completely taken aback when each man—nearly all of them Georgians—came up to introduce themselves and sincerely thanked me for the work I was trying to do for the South. This wasn't flattery, as each of them knew they had nothing to gain by trying to butter me up.
From the first I have sought to impress the students with the idea that Tuskegee is not my institution, or that of the officers, but that it is their institution, and that they have as much interest in it as any of the trustees or instructors. I have further sought to have them feel that I am at the institution as their friend and adviser, and not as their overseer. It has been my aim to have them speak with directness and frankness about anything that concerns the life of the school. Two or three times a year I ask the students to write me a letter criticising or making complaints or suggestions about anything connected with the institution. When this is not done, I have them meet me in the chapel for a heart-to-heart talk about the conduct of the school. There are no meetings with our students that I enjoy more than these, and none are more helpful to me in planning for the future. These meetings, it seems to me, enable me to get at the very heart of all that concerns the school. Few things help an individual more than to place responsibility upon him, and to let him know that you trust him. When I have read of labour troubles between employers and employees, I have often thought that many strikes and similar disturbances might be avoided if the employers would cultivate the habit of getting nearer to their employees, of consulting and advising with them, and letting them feel that the interests of the two are the same. Every individual responds to confidence, and this is not more true of any race than of the Negroes. Let them once understand that you are unselfishly interested in them, and you can lead them to any extent.
From the start, I've tried to stress to the students that Tuskegee isn't just my school or the officers', but their school too, and they have just as much stake in it as any of the trustees or teachers. I've also aimed to be seen as their friend and advisor, not as some kind of overseer. I want them to speak openly and honestly about anything affecting school life. A couple of times a year, I ask students to write me letters with their criticisms, complaints, or suggestions about anything related to the school. If that doesn't happen, I gather them in the chapel for a candid discussion about the school's operations. I enjoy these meetings more than any others with our students, and they are incredibly valuable for me in planning ahead. These sessions help me get to the core of everything involving the school. Few things benefit a person more than being given responsibility and knowing that they can be trusted. When I read about labor issues between employers and employees, I often think that many strikes and disruptions could be avoided if employers made an effort to get closer to their employees, seeking their input and letting them feel their interests align. Everyone responds to being trusted, and this is especially true for Black individuals. Once they realize that you genuinely care about them, you can lead them anywhere.
It was my aim from the first at Tuskegee to not only have the buildings erected by the students themselves, but to have them make their own furniture as far as was possible. I now marvel at the patience of the students while sleeping upon the floor while waiting for some kind of a bedstead to be constructed, or at their sleeping without any kind of a mattress while waiting for something that looked like a mattress to be made.
From the beginning at Tuskegee, my goal was not only for the students to build the buildings themselves but also to have them create their own furniture as much as they could. I now admire the patience of the students who had to sleep on the floor while waiting for some kind of bed frame to be made, or who slept without any mattress at all as they awaited something that resembled a mattress to be constructed.
In the early days we had very few students who had been used to handling carpenters' tools, and the bedsteads made by the students then were very rough and very weak. Not unfrequently when I went into the students' rooms in the morning I would find at least two bedsteads lying about on the floor. The problem of providing mattresses was a difficult one to solve. We finally mastered this, however, by getting some cheap cloth and sewing pieces of this together as to make large bags. These bags we filled with the pine straw—or, as it is sometimes called, pine needles—which we secured from the forests near by. I am glad to say that the industry of mattress-making has grown steadily since then, and has been improved to such an extent that at the present time it is an important branch of the work which is taught systematically to a number of our girls, and that the mattresses that now come out of the mattress-shop at Tuskegee are about as good as those bought in the average store. For some time after the opening of the boarding department we had no chairs in the students' bedrooms or in the dining rooms. Instead of chairs we used stools which the students constructed by nailing together three pieces of rough board. As a rule, the furniture in the students' rooms during the early days of the school consisted of a bed, some stools, and sometimes a rough table made by the students. The plan of having the students make the furniture is still followed, but the number of pieces in a room has been increased, and the workmanship has so improved that little fault can be found with the articles now. One thing that I have always insisted upon at Tuskegee is that everywhere there should be absolute cleanliness. Over and over again the students were reminded in those first years—and are reminded now—that people would excuse us for our poverty, for our lack of comforts and conveniences, but that they would not excuse us for dirt.
In the early days, we had very few students who were familiar with carpentry tools, and the beds made by the students were quite rough and weak. Often, when I walked into the students' rooms in the morning, I would find at least two beds lying on the floor. Finding mattresses was a tough challenge. However, we eventually figured it out by getting some inexpensive fabric and sewing pieces together to create large bags. We filled these bags with pine straw—or what’s sometimes called pine needles—that we gathered from the nearby forests. I'm happy to say that mattress-making has steadily improved since then and is now an important part of the curriculum for several of our girls. The mattresses that come out of the mattress shop at Tuskegee are now comparable to those sold in average stores. For some time after we started the boarding program, there were no chairs in the students' bedrooms or dining rooms. Instead, we used stools that the students made by nailing together three pieces of rough wood. Generally, the furniture in the students’ rooms during the early days consisted of a bed, a few stools, and sometimes a rough table made by the students. The practice of having students make the furniture continues, but the number of pieces per room has increased, and the craftsmanship has improved so much that little fault can be found with the items now. One thing I have always insisted on at Tuskegee is that everywhere must be absolutely clean. Time and again, the students were reminded in those early years—and still are today—that while people might excuse our poverty or lack of comforts, they would never excuse us for being dirty.
Another thing that has been insisted upon at the school is the use of the tooth-brush. "The gospel of the tooth-brush," as General Armstrong used to call it, is part of our creed at Tuskegee. No student is permitted to retain who does not keep and use a tooth-brush. Several times, in recent years, students have come to us who brought with them almost no other article except a tooth-brush. They had heard from the lips of other students about our insisting upon the use of this, and so, to make a good impression, they brought at least a tooth-brush with them. I remember that one morning, not long ago, I went with the lady principal on her usual morning tour of inspection of the girls' rooms. We found one room that contained three girls who had recently arrived at the school. When I asked them if they had tooth-brushes, one of the girls replied, pointing to a brush: "Yes, sir. That is our brush. We bought it together, yesterday." It did not take them long to learn a different lesson.
Another thing that has been emphasized at the school is the use of the toothbrush. "The gospel of the toothbrush," as General Armstrong used to call it, is part of our core beliefs at Tuskegee. No student is allowed to stay who doesn’t keep and use a toothbrush. Several times in recent years, students have arrived with almost no other belongings except a toothbrush. They had heard from other students about how we stress the importance of this, so to make a good impression, they brought at least a toothbrush with them. I remember that one morning, not long ago, I went with the lady principal on her regular morning inspection of the girls' rooms. We found one room that had three girls who had just come to the school. When I asked them if they had toothbrushes, one of the girls replied, pointing to a brush: "Yes, sir. That is our brush. We bought it together yesterday." It didn’t take them long to learn a different lesson.
It has been interesting to note the effect that the use of the tooth-brush has had in bringing about a higher degree of civilization among the students. With few exceptions, I have noticed that, if we can get a student to the point where, when the first or second tooth-brush disappears, he of his own motion buys another, I have not been disappointed in the future of that individual. Absolute cleanliness of the body has been insisted upon from the first. The students have been taught to bathe as regularly as to take their meals. This lesson we began teaching before we had anything in the shape of a bath-house. Most of the students came from plantation districts, and often we had to teach them how to sleep at night; that is, whether between the two sheets—after we got to the point where we could provide them two sheets—or under both of them. Naturally I found it difficult to teach them to sleep between two sheets when we were able to supply but one. The importance of the use of the night-gown received the same attention.
It's been interesting to see how using a toothbrush has contributed to a higher level of civility among the students. With few exceptions, I've noticed that if we can get a student to the point where, after the first or second toothbrush goes missing, they buy another one on their own, I haven't been let down by that person's future. We've stressed the importance of absolute cleanliness from the beginning. Students have been taught to bathe as regularly as they eat. We started teaching this lesson before we even had a bathhouse. Most of the students came from plantation areas, and often we had to show them how to sleep at night; that is, whether under the two sheets—after we finally managed to provide them with two—or beneath both of them. Naturally, I found it challenging to teach them to sleep between two sheets when we could only supply one. The significance of wearing a nightgown received the same focus.
For a long time one of the most difficult tasks was to teach the students that all the buttons were to be kept on their clothes, and that there must be no torn places or grease-spots. This lesson, I am pleased to be able to say, has been so thoroughly learned and so faithfully handed down from year to year by one set of students to another that often at the present time, when the students march out of the chapel in the evening and their dress is inspected, as it is every night, not one button is found to be missing.
For a long time, one of the toughest tasks was teaching students to keep all the buttons on their clothes and to ensure there were no rips or grease stains. I’m happy to say this lesson has been so thoroughly learned and passed down from one group of students to the next that now, when the students walk out of the chapel in the evening and their outfits are checked, as they are every night, not a single button is found missing.
Chapter XII. Raising Money
When we opened our boarding department, we provided rooms in the attic of Porter Hall, our first building, for a number of girls. But the number of students, of both sexes, continued to increase. We could find rooms outside the school grounds for many of the young men, but the girls we did not care to expose in this way. Very soon the problem of providing more rooms for the girls, as well as a larger boarding department for all the students, grew serious. As a result, we finally decided to undertake the construction of a still larger building—a building that would contain rooms for the girls and boarding accommodations for all.
When we started our boarding department, we used the attic of Porter Hall, our first building, to provide rooms for some girls. However, the number of students, both boys and girls, kept growing. We were able to find places for many of the young men off-campus, but we didn't want to expose the girls in that way. Soon, the need for more rooms for the girls and a bigger boarding department for all students became a serious issue. Consequently, we decided to build a larger facility that would include rooms for the girls and boarding options for everyone.
After having had a preliminary sketch of the needed building made, we found that it would cost about ten thousand dollars. We had no money whatever with which to begin; still we decided to give the needed building a name. We knew we could name it, even though we were in doubt about our ability to secure the means for its construction. We decided to call the proposed building Alabama Hall, in honour of the state in which we were labouring. Again Miss Davidson began making efforts to enlist the interest and help of the coloured and white people in and near Tuskegee. They responded willingly, in proportion to their means. The students, as in the case of our first building, Porter Hall, began digging out the dirt in order to allow the laying of the foundations.
After getting a preliminary sketch of the building we needed, we found that it would cost about ten thousand dollars. We didn’t have any money to start; still, we decided to give the building a name. We knew we could name it, even though we were uncertain about how we would get the funds for its construction. We chose to call the proposed building Alabama Hall, in honor of the state where we were working. Again, Miss Davidson started efforts to get the interest and support of both the Black and white communities in and around Tuskegee. They responded generously, according to what they could afford. The students, like with our first building, Porter Hall, began digging out the dirt to prepare for the foundation.
When we seemed at the end of our resources, so far as securing money was concerned, something occurred which showed the greatness of General Armstrong—something which proved how far he was above the ordinary individual. When we were in the midst of great anxiety as to where and how we were to get funds for the new building, I received a telegram from General Armstrong asking me if I could spend a month travelling with him through the North, and asking me, if I could do so, to come to Hampton at once. Of course I accepted General Armstrong's invitation, and went to Hampton immediately. On arriving there I found that the General had decided to take a quartette of singers through the North, and hold meetings for a month in important cities, at which meetings he and I were to speak. Imagine my surprise when the General told me, further, that these meetings were to be held, not in the interests of Hampton, but in the interests of Tuskegee, and that the Hampton Institute was to be responsible for all the expenses.
When we felt like we had exhausted all our options for getting funding, something happened that showed how remarkable General Armstrong was—something that highlighted how he stood out from the average person. Just when we were really worried about where we would find money for the new building, I got a telegram from General Armstrong asking if I could spend a month traveling with him in the North, and requesting that I come to Hampton right away if I could. Naturally, I accepted General Armstrong's invitation and hurried to Hampton. When I arrived, I discovered that the General planned to take a group of singers on a tour through the North for a month, holding meetings in major cities where he and I would speak. I was shocked when the General revealed that these meetings would not be for Hampton’s benefit, but for Tuskegee’s, and that the Hampton Institute would cover all the expenses.
Although he never told me so in so many words, I found that General Armstrong took this method of introducing me to the people of the North, as well as for the sake of securing some immediate funds to be used in the erection of Alabama Hall. A weak and narrow man would have reasoned that all the money which came to Tuskegee in this way would be just so much taken from the Hampton Institute; but none of these selfish or short-sighted feelings ever entered the breast of General Armstrong. He was too big to be little, too good to be mean. He knew that the people in the North who gave money gave it for the purpose of helping the whole cause of Negro civilization, and not merely for the advancement of any one school. The General knew, too, that the way to strengthen Hampton was to make it a centre of unselfish power in the working out of the whole Southern problem.
Although he never explicitly said so, I realized that General Armstrong used this approach to introduce me to the people of the North, as well as to secure some immediate funds for building Alabama Hall. A weak and narrow-minded person might have thought that all the money coming to Tuskegee in this way would just take away from the Hampton Institute; however, selfish or short-sighted thoughts never crossed General Armstrong's mind. He was too great to be small, too good to be petty. He understood that the people in the North who donated money did so to support the entire cause of Black advancement, not just to benefit one school. The General also recognized that the best way to strengthen Hampton was to make it a center of selfless influence in addressing the overall Southern issue.
In regard to the addresses which I was to make in the North, I recall just one piece of advice which the General gave me. He said: "Give them an idea for every word." I think it would be hard to improve upon this advice; and it might be made to apply to all public speaking. From that time to the present I have always tried to keep his advice in mind.
Regarding the speeches I was supposed to give in the North, I remember just one piece of advice the General gave me. He said, "Provide them with an idea for every word." I think it's tough to improve on this advice, and it could apply to all public speaking. Since then, I have always tried to keep his advice in mind.
Meetings were held in New York, Brooklyn, Boston, Philadelphia, and other large cities, and at all of these meetings General Armstrong pleaded, together with myself, for help, not for Hampton, but for Tuskegee. At these meetings an especial effort was made to secure help for the building of Alabama Hall, as well as to introduce the school to the attention of the general public. In both these respects the meetings proved successful.
Meetings were held in New York, Brooklyn, Boston, Philadelphia, and other large cities, and at all of these meetings, General Armstrong and I asked for help, not for Hampton, but for Tuskegee. At these meetings, we made a special effort to secure funding for the construction of Alabama Hall, as well as to raise public awareness of the school. In both these areas, the meetings were successful.
After that kindly introduction I began going North alone to secure funds. During the last fifteen years I have been compelled to spend a large proportion of my time away from the school, in an effort to secure money to provide for the growing needs of the institution. In my efforts to get funds I have had some experiences that may be of interest to my readers. Time and time again I have been asked, by people who are trying to secure money for philanthropic purposes, what rule or rules I followed to secure the interest and help of people who were able to contribute money to worthy objects. As far as the science of what is called begging can be reduced to rules, I would say that I have had but two rules. First, always to do my whole duty regarding making our work known to individuals and organizations; and, second, not to worry about the results. This second rule has been the hardest for me to live up to. When bills are on the eve of falling due, with not a dollar in hand with which to meet them, it is pretty difficult to learn not to worry, although I think I am learning more and more each year that all worry simply consumes, and to no purpose, just so much physical and mental strength that might otherwise be given to effective work. After considerable experience in coming into contact with wealthy and noted men, I have observed that those who have accomplished the greatest results are those who "keep under the body"; are those who never grow excited or lose self-control, but are always calm, self-possessed, patient, and polite. I think that President William McKinley is the best example of a man of this class that I have ever seen.
After that nice introduction, I started heading North by myself to raise funds. Over the last fifteen years, I've had to spend a lot of my time away from the school trying to gather money to meet the growing needs of the institution. Through my fundraising efforts, I've had some experiences that might interest my readers. Over and over, people trying to raise money for charitable causes have asked me what strategies I use to attract the attention and support of potential donors. If I had to reduce the art of fundraising to a couple of rules, I would say I follow two: First, always do my best to make our work known to individuals and organizations; and second, not to stress about the outcomes. The second rule has been the toughest for me to stick to. When bills are about to come due and I don’t have a dollar to my name, it’s pretty hard to not worry, though I'm learning more each year that worrying just drains physical and mental energy that could be better spent on effective work. After a lot of experience interacting with wealthy and prominent individuals, I've noticed that those who achieve the most are the ones who "stay grounded"; they never get overly excited or lose control, but remain calm, composed, patient, and polite. I believe President William McKinley is the best example of this kind of person I've ever encountered.
In order to be successful in any kind of undertaking, I think the main thing is for one to grow to the point where he completely forgets himself; that is, to lose himself in a great cause. In proportion as one loses himself in the way, in the same degree does he get the highest happiness out of his work.
To succeed in any endeavor, I believe the key is to reach a point where you completely forget about yourself; that is, to lose yourself in a greater cause. As you immerse yourself in this way, you will experience the highest happiness from your work.
My experience in getting money for Tuskegee has taught me to have no patience with those people who are always condemning the rich because they are rich, and because they do not give more to objects of charity. In the first place, those who are guilty of such sweeping criticisms do not know how many people would be made poor, and how much suffering would result, if wealthy people were to part all at once with any large proportion of their wealth in a way to disorganize and cripple great business enterprises. Then very few persons have any idea of the large number of applications for help that rich people are constantly being flooded with. I know wealthy people who receive as much as twenty calls a day for help. More than once when I have gone into the offices of rich men, I have found half a dozen persons waiting to see them, and all come for the same purpose, that of securing money. And all these calls in person, to say nothing of the applications received through the mails. Very few people have any idea of the amount of money given away by persons who never permit their names to be known. I have often heard persons condemned for not giving away money, who, to my own knowledge, were giving away thousands of dollars every year so quietly that the world knew nothing about it.
My experience in securing funding for Tuskegee has taught me to have no patience for those who constantly criticize the rich simply because they're wealthy, and for not donating more to charity. First of all, those who make such broad judgments don’t understand how many people would be left poor and how much suffering would arise if wealthy individuals suddenly gave away a large portion of their wealth in a way that disrupts and harms major business operations. Also, very few people realize just how many requests for help wealthy individuals are inundated with. I know wealthy people who get as many as twenty calls a day asking for assistance. More than once, when I’ve visited the offices of rich individuals, I’ve found several people waiting to see them, all there for the same reason: to secure financial support. And that’s just the in-person requests—not to mention the applications that come in through the mail. Very few people understand the volume of money given away by individuals who choose to remain anonymous. I’ve often heard people criticized for not donating money, who, to my knowledge, were giving away thousands of dollars every year so quietly that the world had no idea.
As an example of this, there are two ladies in New York, whose names rarely appear in print, but who, in a quiet way, have given us the means with which to erect three large and important buildings during the last eight years. Besides the gift of these buildings, they have made other generous donations to the school. And they not only help Tuskegee, but they are constantly seeking opportunities to help other worthy causes.
As an example of this, there are two women in New York whose names hardly show up in the news, but who, quietly, have provided us with the resources to build three large and important buildings over the past eight years. In addition to funding these buildings, they have made other generous contributions to the school. They not only support Tuskegee, but they are always looking for chances to assist other deserving causes.
Although it has been my privilege to be the medium through which a good many hundred thousand dollars have been received for the work at Tuskegee, I have always avoided what the world calls "begging." I often tell people that I have never "begged" any money, and that I am not a "beggar." My experience and observation have convinced me that persistent asking outright for money from the rich does not, as a rule, secure help. I have usually proceeded on the principle that persons who possess sense enough to earn money have sense enough to know how to give it away, and that the mere making known of the facts regarding Tuskegee, and especially the facts regarding the work of the graduates, has been more effective than outright begging. I think that the presentation of facts, on a high, dignified plane, is all the begging that most rich people care for.
Even though I've been fortunate to help raise quite a few hundred thousand dollars for the work at Tuskegee, I've always steered clear of what people typically call "begging." I often tell others that I have never "begged" for money and that I am not a "beggar." My experience and observations have shown me that repeatedly asking the wealthy for money usually doesn't lead to support. I typically operate on the belief that those who are smart enough to earn money are also smart enough to know how to give it away, and that simply sharing the facts about Tuskegee—especially the achievements of its graduates—has been more effective than outright begging. I believe that presenting these facts in a respectful and dignified way is all the "begging" that most wealthy people appreciate.
While the work of going from door to door and from office to office is hard, disagreeable, and costly in bodily strength, yet it has some compensations. Such work gives one a rare opportunity to study human nature. It also has its compensations in giving one an opportunity to meet some of the best people in the world—to be more correct, I think I should say the best people in the world. When one takes a broad survey of the country, he will find that the most useful and influential people in it are those who take the deepest interest in institutions that exist for the purpose of making the world better.
While going door to door and visiting offices is tough, unpleasant, and draining, it has its rewards. This kind of work provides a unique chance to understand human nature. It also allows you to connect with some of the best people out there—more accurately, I should say the best people in the world. When you take a wide look at the country, you’ll see that the most helpful and influential people are those who are genuinely invested in organizations aimed at improving the world.
At one time, when I was in Boston, I called at the door of a rather wealthy lady, and was admitted to the vestibule and sent up my card. While I was waiting for an answer, her husband came in, and asked me in the most abrupt manner what I wanted. When I tried to explain the object of my call, he became still more ungentlemanly in his words and manner, and finally grew so excited that I left the house without waiting for a reply from the lady. A few blocks from that house I called to see a gentleman who received me in the most cordial manner. He wrote me his check for a generous sum, and then, before I had had an opportunity to thank him, said: "I am so grateful to you, Mr. Washington, for giving me the opportunity to help a good cause. It is a privilege to have a share in it. We in Boston are constantly indebted to you for doing our work." My experience in securing money convinces me that the first type of man is growing more rare all the time, and that the latter type is increasing; that is, that, more and more, rich people are coming to regard men and women who apply to them for help for worthy objects, not as beggars, but as agents for doing their work.
At one point, when I was in Boston, I visited the home of a pretty wealthy lady and was let into the foyer, where I sent up my card. While I was waiting for a response, her husband came in and abruptly asked what I wanted. When I tried to explain the reason for my visit, he became even ruder in his words and behavior, and eventually got so worked up that I left without waiting for the lady's response. A few blocks away, I visited a gentleman who welcomed me very warmly. He wrote me a generous check, and before I could even thank him, he said: "I’m really grateful to you, Mr. Washington, for giving me the chance to support a good cause. It’s a privilege to be part of it. We in Boston are constantly in your debt for doing our work." My experience in raising money convinces me that the first type of man is becoming rarer, while the second type is on the rise; that is, more and more, wealthy people see men and women who ask for help for worthy causes not as beggars, but as partners in doing their work.
In the city of Boston I have rarely called upon an individual for funds that I have not been thanked for calling, usually before I could get an opportunity to thank the donor for the money. In that city the donors seem to feel, in a large degree, that an honour is being conferred upon them in their being permitted to give. Nowhere else have I met with, in so large a measure, this fine and Christlike spirit as in the city of Boston, although there are many notable instances of it outside that city. I repeat my belief that the world is growing in the direction of giving. I repeat that the main rule by which I have been guided in collecting money is to do my full duty in regard to giving people who have money an opportunity for help.
In Boston, I’ve rarely asked someone for money without being thanked for reaching out, often before I even had a chance to express my gratitude to the donor. In that city, donors seem to feel, to a large extent, that it's an honor for them to be able to give. I haven't encountered this kind and Christlike spirit in such abundance anywhere else as I have in Boston, although there are certainly many great examples of it elsewhere. I stand by my belief that the world is moving towards generosity. I also reaffirm that my main principle in fundraising has been to ensure that people with money have the chance to help.
In the early years of the Tuskegee school I walked the streets or travelled country roads in the North for days and days without receiving a dollar. Often as it happened, when during the week I had been disappointed in not getting a cent from the very individuals from whom I most expected help, and when I was almost broken down and discouraged, that generous help has come from some one who I had had little idea would give at all.
In the early years of the Tuskegee school, I walked the streets or traveled country roads in the North for days without earning a dollar. Many times, when I had been let down during the week by the very people I expected help from, and when I felt nearly defeated and discouraged, that generous support unexpectedly came from someone I hardly thought would contribute at all.
I recall that on one occasion I obtained information that led me to believe that a gentleman who lived about two miles out in the country from Stamford, Conn., might become interested in our efforts at Tuskegee if our conditions and needs were presented to him. On an unusually cold and stormy day I walked the two miles to see him. After some difficulty I succeeded in securing an interview with him. He listened with some degree of interest to what I had to say, but did not give me anything. I could not help having the feeling that, in a measure, the three hours that I had spent in seeing him had been thrown away. Still, I had followed my usual rule of doing my duty. If I had not seen him, I should have felt unhappy over neglect of duty.
I remember one time I got some info that made me think a guy who lived about two miles outside Stamford, Conn., might be interested in what we were doing at Tuskegee if we explained our situation and needs to him. On an unusually cold and stormy day, I walked the two miles to meet him. After some effort, I managed to get an interview. He listened with some interest to what I had to say, but didn’t give me anything. I couldn’t shake the feeling that those three hours I spent with him had been wasted. Still, I stuck to my usual rule of doing my duty. If I hadn’t met him, I would have felt bad about neglecting my responsibilities.
Two years after this visit a letter came to Tuskegee from this man, which read like this: "Enclosed I send you a New York draft for ten thousand dollars, to be used in furtherance of your work. I had placed this sum in my will for your school, but deem it wiser to give it to you while I live. I recall with pleasure your visit to me two years ago."
Two years after this visit, a letter arrived at Tuskegee from this man, which said: "I'm sending you a New York draft for ten thousand dollars to support your work. I had included this amount in my will for your school, but I think it's better to give it to you while I'm still alive. I fondly remember your visit to me two years ago."
I can hardly imagine any occurrence which could have given me more genuine satisfaction than the receipt of this draft. It was by far the largest single donation which up to that time the school had ever received. It came at a time when an unusually long period had passed since we had received any money. We were in great distress because of lack of funds, and the nervous strain was tremendous. It is difficult for me to think of any situation that is more trying on the nerves than that of conducting a large institution, with heavy obligations to meet, without knowing where the money is to come from to meet these obligations from month to month.
I can hardly think of anything that could have brought me more genuine satisfaction than receiving this donation. It was by far the largest single contribution the school had ever gotten up to that point. It came at a time when it had been a long while since we had received any funds. We were in serious trouble because of the lack of money, and the stress was overwhelming. It's hard for me to imagine a situation that tests your nerves more than running a large institution with significant obligations to meet, while not knowing where the money is going to come from to cover those obligations each month.
In our case I felt a double responsibility, and this made the anxiety all the more intense. If the institution had been officered by white persons, and had failed, it would have injured the cause of Negro education; but I knew that the failure of our institution, officered by Negroes, would not only mean the loss of a school, but would cause people, in a large degree, to lose faith in the ability of the entire race. The receipt of this draft for ten thousand dollars, under all these circumstances, partially lifted a burden that had been pressing down upon me for days.
In my situation, I felt a significant sense of responsibility, which intensified my anxiety. If the institution had been run by white people and had failed, it would have harmed the cause of Black education. However, I knew that if our institution, led by Black individuals, failed, it wouldn't just mean losing a school; it would cause many people to lose faith in the capabilities of our entire race. Receiving this draft for ten thousand dollars, given all these circumstances, partly relieved a burden that had been weighing on me for days.
From the beginning of our work to the present I have always had the feeling, and lose no opportunity to impress our teachers with the same idea, that the school will always be supported in proportion as the inside of the institution is kept clean and pure and wholesome.
From the start of our efforts to now, I've always felt—and make sure to remind our teachers—that the school's success depends on how clean, pure, and healthy the environment inside the institution is kept.
The first time I ever saw the late Collis P. Huntington, the great railroad man, he gave me two dollars for our school. The last time I saw him, which was a few months before he died, he gave me fifty thousand dollars toward our endowment fund. Between these two gifts there were others of generous proportions which came every year from both Mr. and Mrs. Huntington.
The first time I ever met the late Collis P. Huntington, the legendary railroad magnate, he gave me two dollars for our school. The last time I saw him, just a few months before he passed away, he contributed fifty thousand dollars to our endowment fund. In between these two donations, there were several other generous contributions that came every year from both Mr. and Mrs. Huntington.
Some people may say that it was Tuskegee's good luck that brought to us this gift of fifty thousand dollars. No, it was not luck. It was hard work. Nothing ever comes to me, that is worth having, except as the result of hard work. When Mr. Huntington gave me the first two dollars, I did not blame him for not giving me more, but made up my mind that I was going to convince him by tangible results that we were worthy of larger gifts. For a dozen years I made a strong effort to convince Mr. Huntington of the value of our work. I noted that just in proportion as the usefulness of the school grew, his donations increased. Never did I meet an individual who took a more kindly and sympathetic interest in our school than did Mr. Huntington. He not only gave money to us, but took time in which to advise me, as a father would a son, about the general conduct of the school.
Some people might say that it was just luck that brought us the generous gift of fifty thousand dollars from Tuskegee. But it wasn't luck; it was hard work. Nothing that’s truly valuable comes to me without the effort of hard work. When Mr. Huntington gave me the first two dollars, I didn't blame him for not giving more; instead, I decided to show him through tangible results that we deserved larger donations. For twelve years, I put in a strong effort to demonstrate to Mr. Huntington the importance of our work. I noticed that as the school's usefulness grew, so did his donations. I never met anyone who showed more kindness and genuine interest in our school than Mr. Huntington. He not only gave us money, but also took the time to advise me like a father would his son regarding the overall operation of the school.
More than once I have found myself in some pretty tight places while collecting money in the North. The following incident I have never related but once before, for the reason that I feared that people would not believe it. One morning I found myself in Providence, Rhode Island, without a cent of money with which to buy breakfast. In crossing the street to see a lady from whom I hoped to get some money, I found a bright new twenty-five-cent piece in the middle of the street track. I not only had this twenty-five cents for my breakfast, but within a few minutes I had a donation from the lady on whom I had started to call.
More than once, I've found myself in some tough spots while collecting money in the North. I’ve only shared this particular incident once before because I worried people wouldn’t believe it. One morning, I was in Providence, Rhode Island, with no money to buy breakfast. While crossing the street to visit a lady I hoped could help me, I spotted a shiny new twenty-five-cent coin in the middle of the street. Not only did I have this twenty-five cents for my breakfast, but shortly after, I also received a donation from the lady I had planned to see.
At one of our Commencements I was bold enough to invite the Rev. E. Winchester Donald, D.D., rector of Trinity Church, Boston, to preach the Commencement sermon. As we then had no room large enough to accommodate all who would be present, the place of meeting was under a large improvised arbour, built partly of brush and partly of rough boards. Soon after Dr. Donald had begun speaking, the rain came down in torrents, and he had to stop, while someone held an umbrella over him.
At one of our Commencements, I had the courage to invite Rev. E. Winchester Donald, D.D., rector of Trinity Church in Boston, to give the Commencement sermon. Since we didn't have a venue large enough to fit everyone who wanted to attend, we held the event under a big makeshift shelter made of branches and rough boards. Soon after Dr. Donald started speaking, it started pouring rain, and he had to pause while someone held an umbrella over him.
The boldness of what I had done never dawned upon me until I saw the picture made by the rector of Trinity Church standing before that large audience under an old umbrella, waiting for the rain to cease so that he could go on with his address.
The bravery of what I had done didn’t hit me until I saw the rector of Trinity Church standing in front of that big crowd under an old umbrella, waiting for the rain to stop so he could continue his speech.
It was not very long before the rain ceased and Dr. Donald finished his sermon; and an excellent sermon it was, too, in spite of the weather. After he had gone to his room, and had gotten the wet threads of his clothes dry, Dr. Donald ventured the remark that a large chapel at Tuskegee would not be out of place. The next day a letter came from two ladies who were then travelling in Italy, saying that they had decided to give us the money for such a chapel as we needed.
It wasn't long before the rain stopped and Dr. Donald wrapped up his sermon, which was excellent despite the weather. Once he was in his room and had dried the wet threads of his clothes, Dr. Donald suggested that a large chapel at Tuskegee would be a great idea. The next day, we received a letter from two ladies who were traveling in Italy, saying they had decided to donate the money for the chapel we needed.
A short time ago we received twenty thousand dollars from Mr. Andrew Carnegie, to be used for the purpose of erecting a new library building. Our first library and reading-room were in a corner of a shanty, and the whole thing occupied a space about five by twelve feet. It required ten years of work before I was able to secure Mr. Carnegie's interest and help. The first time I saw him, ten years ago, he seemed to take but little interest in our school, but I was determined to show him that we were worthy of his help. After ten years of hard work I wrote him a letter reading as follows:
A little while ago, we received twenty thousand dollars from Mr. Andrew Carnegie to build a new library. Our first library and reading room were in a corner of a small shack, and the entire space was only about five by twelve feet. It took me ten years of effort to gain Mr. Carnegie's interest and support. When I first met him ten years ago, he didn’t seem very interested in our school, but I was committed to proving that we deserved his help. After a decade of hard work, I wrote him a letter that said the following:
December 15, 1900.
December 15, 1900.
Mr. Andrew Carnegie, 5 W. Fifty-first St., New York.
Mr. Andrew Carnegie, 5 W. 51st St., New York.
Dear Sir: Complying with the request which you made of me when I saw you at your residence a few days ago, I now submit in writing an appeal for a library building for our institution.
Dear Sir: Following up on your request when I visited your home a few days ago, I am now submitting in writing a proposal for a library building for our institution.
We have 1100 students, 86 officers and instructors, together with their families, and about 200 coloured people living near the school, all of whom would make use of the library building.
We have 1,100 students, 86 officers and instructors, along with their families, and about 200 people of color living near the school, all of whom would use the library building.
We have over 12,000 books, periodicals, etc., gifts from our friends, but we have no suitable place for them, and we have no suitable reading-room.
We have more than 12,000 books, magazines, and other materials, gifts from our friends, but we don't have a proper place for them, and we don't have a good reading room.
Our graduates go to work in every section of the South, and whatever knowledge might be obtained in the library would serve to assist in the elevation of the whole Negro race.
Our graduates find jobs in every part of the South, and any knowledge gained from the library would help uplift the entire Black community.
Such a building as we need could be erected for about $20,000. All of the work for the building, such as brickmaking, brick-masonry, carpentry, blacksmithing, etc., would be done by the students. The money which you would give would not only supply the building, but the erection of the building would give a large number of students an opportunity to learn the building trades, and the students would use the money paid to them to keep themselves in school. I do not believe that a similar amount of money often could be made go so far in uplifting a whole race.
We could build the kind of facility we need for about $20,000. All the work needed for the building, like making bricks, masonry, carpentry, blacksmithing, and more, would be done by the students. Your contribution wouldn't just fund the construction; it would also give many students a chance to learn valuable trade skills, and they would use the money they earn to support themselves while in school. I truly believe that a similar investment rarely has the potential to uplift an entire community as effectively.
If you wish further information, I shall be glad to furnish it.
If you want more information, I’ll be happy to provide it.
Yours truly,
Sincerely,
Booker T. Washington, Principal.
Booker T. Washington, Principal.
The next mail brought back the following reply: "I will be very glad to pay the bills for the library building as they are incurred, to the extent of twenty thousand dollars, and I am glad of this opportunity to show the interest I have in your noble work."
The next mail brought back the following reply: "I will be very happy to pay the bills for the library building as they come up, up to twenty thousand dollars, and I'm glad for the chance to show my support for your wonderful work."
I have found that strict business methods go a long way in securing the interest of rich people. It has been my constant aim at Tuskegee to carry out, in our financial and other operations, such business methods as would be approved of by any New York banking house.
I’ve discovered that strict business practices are really effective in attracting wealthy individuals. My ongoing goal at Tuskegee has been to implement financial and other operations that would be respected by any New York bank.
I have spoken of several large gifts to the school; but by far the greater proportion of the money that has built up the institution has come in the form of small donations from persons of moderate means. It is upon these small gifts, which carry with them the interest of hundreds of donors, that any philanthropic work must depend largely for its support. In my efforts to get money I have often been surprised at the patience and deep interest of the ministers, who are besieged on every hand and at all hours of the day for help. If no other consideration had convinced me of the value of the Christian life, the Christlike work which the Church of all denominations in America has done during the last thirty-five years for the elevation of the black man would have made me a Christian. In a large degree it has been the pennies, the nickels, and the dimes which have come from the Sunday-schools, the Christian Endeavour societies, and the missionary societies, as well as from the church proper, that have helped to elevate the Negro at so rapid a rate.
I've mentioned several major donations to the school, but most of the funding that has built the institution has actually come from small contributions made by people with moderate incomes. It's these small donations, which reflect the concern of hundreds of donors, that philanthropic efforts heavily rely on for support. In my quest for funding, I've often been impressed by the patience and genuine interest of ministers, who are approached constantly throughout the day for assistance. If nothing else had convinced me of the value of a Christian life, the Christlike efforts made by churches of all denominations in America over the past thirty-five years to uplift the black community would have made me a Christian. It's largely the pennies, nickels, and dimes collected from Sunday schools, Christian Endeavor societies, and missionary groups, as well as from the church itself, that have significantly advanced the elevation of the Negro.
This speaking of small gifts reminds me to say that very few Tuskegee graduates fail to send us an annual contribution. These contributions range from twenty-five cents up to ten dollars.
This mention of small gifts makes me note that very few Tuskegee graduates fail to send us an annual donation. These donations range from twenty-five cents to ten dollars.
Soon after beginning our third year's work we were surprised to receive money from three special sources, and up to the present time we have continued to receive help from them. First, the State Legislature of Alabama increased its annual appropriation from two thousand dollars to three thousand dollars; I might add that still later it increased this sum to four thousand five hundred dollars a year. The effort to secure this increase was led by the Hon. M.F. Foster, the member of the Legislature from Tuskegee. Second, we received one thousand dollars from the John F. Slater Fund. Our work seemed to please the trustees of this fund, as they soon began increasing their annual grant. This has been added to from time to time until at present we receive eleven thousand dollars annually from the Fund. The other help to which I have referred came in the shape of an allowance from the Peabody Fund. This was at first five hundred dollars, but it has since been increased to fifteen hundred dollars.
Soon after we started our third year of work, we were surprised to receive funding from three special sources, and we have continued to get support from them. First, the State Legislature of Alabama raised its annual funding from two thousand dollars to three thousand dollars; I should mention that later on it increased this amount to four thousand five hundred dollars a year. The effort to secure this increase was led by the Hon. M.F. Foster, the member of the Legislature from Tuskegee. Second, we received one thousand dollars from the John F. Slater Fund. Our work seemed to impress the trustees of this fund, as they quickly began increasing their annual grant. This amount has been added to over time, and now we receive eleven thousand dollars annually from the Fund. The other support I mentioned came from the Peabody Fund, which initially provided five hundred dollars, but this has since been increased to fifteen hundred dollars.
The effort to secure help from the Slater and Peabody Funds brought me into contact with two rare men—men who have had much to do in shaping the policy for the education of the Negro. I refer to the Hon. J.L.M. Curry, of Washington, who is the general agent for these two funds, and Mr. Morris K. Jessup, of New York. Dr. Curry is a native of the South, an ex-Confederate soldier, yet I do not believe there is any man in the country who is more deeply interested in the highest welfare of the Negro than Dr. Curry, or one who is more free from race prejudice. He enjoys the unique distinction of possessing to an equal degree the confidence of the black man and the Southern white man. I shall never forget the first time I met him. It was in Richmond, Va., where he was then living. I had heard much about him. When I first went into his presence, trembling because of my youth and inexperience, he took me by the hand so cordially, and spoke such encouraging words, and gave me such helpful advice regarding the proper course to pursue, that I came to know him then, as I have known him ever since, as a high example of one who is constantly and unselfishly at work for the betterment of humanity.
The effort to get support from the Slater and Peabody Funds brought me into contact with two remarkable men—men who have played a significant role in shaping education policy for Black people. I’m referring to the Hon. J.L.M. Curry from Washington, who is the general agent for these two funds, and Mr. Morris K. Jessup from New York. Dr. Curry is a Southern native and a former Confederate soldier, yet I believe there is no one in the country more genuinely invested in the well-being of Black people than Dr. Curry, nor anyone less influenced by racial bias. He has the rare ability to earn the trust of both Black individuals and Southern white people. I will always remember the first time I met him. It was in Richmond, Virginia, where he was living at the time. I had heard a lot about him. When I first walked into the room, nervous because of my age and inexperience, he warmly took my hand, offered encouraging words, and gave me valuable advice on the right path to take. From that moment on, I recognized him as someone who is always and selflessly working toward the betterment of humanity.
Mr. Morris K. Jessup, the treasurer of the Slater Fund, I refer to because I know of no man of wealth and large and complicated business responsibilities who gives not only money but his time and thought to the subject of the proper method of elevating the Negro to the extent that is true of Mr. Jessup. It is very largely through this effort and influence that during the last few years the subject of industrial education has assumed the importance that it has, and been placed on its present footing.
Mr. Morris K. Jessup, the treasurer of the Slater Fund, comes to mind because I don’t know of anyone with wealth and significant business responsibilities who contributes not only money but also his time and thought to the issue of improving opportunities for Black people quite like Mr. Jessup. A lot of the progress we've made in the past few years regarding industrial education is due to his efforts and influence, which have helped raise its significance and establish its current standing.
Chapter XIII. Two Thousand Miles For A Five-Minute Speech
Soon after the opening of our boarding department, quite a number of students who evidently were worthy, but who were so poor that they did not have any money to pay even the small charges at the school, began applying for admission. This class was composed of both men and women. It was a great trial to refuse admission to these applicants, and in 1884 we established a night-school to accommodate a few of them.
Soon after we opened our boarding department, quite a few students who were clearly deserving but too poor to pay even the small fees at the school started applying for admission. This group included both men and women. It was really difficult to deny these applicants entry, so in 1884, we set up a night school to accommodate some of them.
The night-school was organized on a plan similar to the one which I had helped to establish at Hampton. At first it was composed of about a dozen students. They were admitted to the night-school only when they had no money with which to pay any part of their board in the regular day-school. It was further required that they must work for ten hours during the day at some trade or industry, and study academic branches for two hours during the evening. This was the requirement for the first one or two years of their stay. They were to be paid something above the cost of their board, with the understanding that all of their earnings, except a very small part, were to be reserved in the school's treasury, to be used for paying their board in the regular day-school after they had entered that department. The night-school, started in this manner, has grown until there are at present four hundred and fifty-seven students enrolled in it alone.
The night school was set up in a way similar to what I had helped establish at Hampton. Initially, it had about a dozen students. They were only admitted to the night school if they could not afford to pay any part of their board at the regular day school. Additionally, they had to work for ten hours during the day at some trade or job and study academic subjects for two hours in the evening. This was the requirement for the first year or two of their time there. They would be paid a little more than what it cost for their board, with the understanding that most of their earnings, except for a small amount, would be saved in the school's treasury to help pay their board at the regular day school once they joined that program. The night school, started this way, has grown to currently have four hundred and fifty-seven students enrolled.
There could hardly be a more severe test of a student's worth than this branch of the Institute's work. It is largely because it furnishes such a good opportunity to test the backbone of a student that I place such high value upon our night-school. Any one who is willing to work ten hours a day at the brick-yard, or in the laundry, through one or two years, in order that he or she may have the privilege of studying academic branches for two hours in the evening, has enough bottom to warrant being further educated.
There’s probably no tougher test of a student’s worth than this aspect of the Institute's work. It’s mainly because it provides a great chance to gauge a student’s determination that I value our night-school so highly. Anyone who is willing to work ten hours a day at the brick yard or in the laundry for one or two years just for the chance to study academic subjects for two hours in the evening has the resilience needed to deserve further education.
After the student has left the night-school he enters the day-school, where he takes academic branches four days in a week, and works at his trade two days. Besides this he usually works at his trade during the three summer months. As a rule, after a student has succeeded in going through the night-school test, he finds a way to finish the regular course in industrial and academic training. No student, no matter how much money he may be able to command, is permitted to go through school without doing manual labour. In fact, the industrial work is now as popular as the academic branches. Some of the most successful men and women who have graduated from the institution obtained their start in the night-school.
After the student finishes night school, he starts day school, where he takes academic classes four days a week and works at his trade for two days. Additionally, he typically works at his trade during the three summer months. Generally, once a student passes the night school test, he finds a way to complete the regular course in both industrial and academic training. No student, regardless of how much money he has, is allowed to go through school without doing manual labor. In fact, the industrial work is now as sought after as the academic subjects. Some of the most successful men and women who graduated from the institution got their start in night school.
While a great deal of stress is laid upon the industrial side of the work at Tuskegee, we do not neglect or overlook in any degree the religious and spiritual side. The school is strictly undenominational, but it is thoroughly Christian, and the spiritual training of the students is not neglected. Our preaching service, prayer-meetings, Sunday-school, Christian Endeavour Society, Young Men's Christian Association, and various missionary organizations, testify to this.
While we emphasize the industrial aspect of work at Tuskegee, we definitely do not ignore the religious and spiritual side. The school is non-denominational, but it is firmly rooted in Christian values, and we make sure to focus on the spiritual development of our students. Our preaching services, prayer meetings, Sunday school, Christian Endeavour Society, Young Men's Christian Association, and various missionary organizations reflect this commitment.
In 1885, Miss Olivia Davidson, to whom I have already referred as being largely responsible for the success of the school during its early history, and I were married. During our married life she continued to divide her time and strength between our home and the work for the school. She not only continued to work in the school at Tuskegee, but also kept up her habit of going North to secure funds. In 1889 she died, after four years of happy married life and eight years of hard and happy work for the school. She literally wore herself out in her never ceasing efforts in behalf of the work that she so dearly loved. During our married life there were born to us two bright, beautiful boys, Booker Taliaferro and Ernest Davidson. The older of these, Booker, has already mastered the brick-maker's trade at Tuskegee.
In 1885, Miss Olivia Davidson, whom I've mentioned as being a key factor in the school's early success, and I got married. Throughout our marriage, she balanced her time and energy between our home and the school's work. She not only continued to work at the school in Tuskegee but also maintained her routine of traveling North to raise funds. Sadly, she passed away in 1889, after four years of a joyful marriage and eight years of dedicated work for the school. She truly exhausted herself in her tireless efforts for the cause she cared for so deeply. During our marriage, we welcomed two bright, beautiful boys, Booker Taliaferro and Ernest Davidson. The older one, Booker, has already learned the brick-making trade at Tuskegee.
I have often been asked how I began the practice of public speaking. In answer I would say that I never planned to give any large part of my life to speaking in public. I have always had more of an ambition to do things than merely to talk about doing them. It seems that when I went North with General Armstrong to speak at the series of public meetings to which I have referred, the President of the National Educational Association, the Hon. Thomas W. Bicknell, was present at one of those meetings and heard me speak. A few days afterward he sent me an invitation to deliver an address at the next meeting of the Educational Association. This meeting was to be held in Madison, Wis. I accepted the invitation. This was, in a sense, the beginning of my public-speaking career.
I’ve often been asked how I got into public speaking. In response, I’d say I never intended to dedicate a big part of my life to speaking in front of others. I've always been more interested in actually doing things than just talking about them. It seems that when I went North with General Armstrong to speak at the series of public meetings I mentioned, the President of the National Educational Association, Hon. Thomas W. Bicknell, was at one of those events and heard me speak. A few days later, he sent me an invitation to give a talk at the next meeting of the Educational Association. This meeting was scheduled to take place in Madison, Wis. I accepted the invitation. In a way, this marked the beginning of my public speaking career.
On the evening that I spoke before the Association there must have been not far from four thousand persons present. Without my knowing it, there were a large number of people present from Alabama, and some from the town of Tuskegee. These white people afterward frankly told me that they went to this meeting expecting to hear the South roundly abused, but were pleasantly surprised to find that there was no word of abuse in my address. On the contrary, the South was given credit for all the praiseworthy things that it had done. A white lady who was teacher in a college in Tuskegee wrote back to the local paper that she was gratified, as well as surprised, to note the credit which I gave the white people of Tuskegee for their help in getting the school started. This address at Madison was the first that I had delivered that in any large measure dealt with the general problem of the races. Those who heard it seemed to be pleased with what I said and with the general position that I took.
On the evening I spoke before the Association, there must have been nearly four thousand people there. Without me realizing it, a lot of folks from Alabama, including some from Tuskegee, were present. These white attendees later told me openly that they came to the meeting expecting to hear criticism of the South, but were pleasantly surprised to find that my speech contained no such criticism. Instead, I acknowledged all the commendable things the South had accomplished. A white woman who was a teacher at a college in Tuskegee wrote back to the local newspaper, expressing her satisfaction and surprise at the recognition I gave to the white community of Tuskegee for their support in getting the school started. This speech in Madison was the first one where I extensively addressed the broader issue of race relations. Those who heard it seemed pleased with what I said and the overall stance I took.
When I first came to Tuskegee, I determined that I would make it my home, that I would take as much pride in the right actions of the people of the town as any white man could do, and that I would, at the same time, deplore the wrong-doing of the people as much as any white man. I determined never to say anything in a public address in the North that I would not be willing to say in the South. I early learned that it is a hard matter to convert an individual by abusing him, and that this is more often accomplished by giving credit for all the praiseworthy actions performed than by calling attention alone to all the evil done.
When I first arrived in Tuskegee, I decided I would make it my home, that I would take as much pride in the good actions of the people in the town as any white person could, and that I would also criticize the wrongdoings of the people just as much as any white person. I resolved never to say anything in a public speech in the North that I wouldn’t be willing to say in the South. I quickly learned that it’s tough to change someone’s mind by attacking them, and that it’s more often achieved by recognizing all the good things done rather than just pointing out the bad.
While pursuing this policy I have not failed, at the proper time and in the proper manner, to call attention, in no uncertain terms, to the wrongs which any part of the South has been guilty of. I have found that there is a large element in the South that is quick to respond to straightforward, honest criticism of any wrong policy. As a rule, the place to criticise the South, when criticism is necessary, is in the South—not in Boston. A Boston man who came to Alabama to criticise Boston would not effect so much good, I think, as one who had his word of criticism to say in Boston.
While following this approach, I have made sure to point out, at the right time and in the right way, the injustices committed by any part of the South. I've discovered that there’s a significant group in the South that is open to honest, direct criticism of any misguided policies. Generally, if criticism of the South is needed, it should be done in the South—not in Boston. I believe that a Bostonian coming to Alabama to critique Boston wouldn't be as effective as someone sharing their critique in Boston.
In this address at Madison I took the ground that the policy to be pursued with references to the races was, by every honourable means, to bring them together and to encourage the cultivation of friendly relations, instead of doing that which would embitter. I further contended that, in relation to his vote, the Negro should more and more consider the interests of the community in which he lived, rather than seek alone to please some one who lived a thousand miles away from him and from his interests.
In my speech at Madison, I stated that the approach to take regarding the races should be, through every honorable means, to bring them together and promote friendly relations, rather than to foster bitterness. I also argued that when it comes to voting, Black individuals should focus more on the needs of their local community instead of trying to please someone who lives far away and is disconnected from their interests.
In this address I said that the whole future of the Negro rested largely upon the question as to whether or not he should make himself, through his skill, intelligence, and character, of such undeniable value to the community in which he lived that the community could not dispense with his presence. I said that any individual who learned to do something better than anybody else—learned to do a common thing in an uncommon manner—had solved his problem, regardless of the colour of his skin, and that in proportion as the Negro learned to produce what other people wanted and must have, in the same proportion would he be respected.
In this speech, I mentioned that the future of Black people largely depended on whether they could prove their worth to the community through their skills, intelligence, and character, making it impossible for the community to overlook their presence. I stated that anyone who mastered a skill better than anyone else—who could do an ordinary task in an extraordinary way—had found the solution to their challenges, regardless of their skin color, and that as Black people learned to provide what others needed and desired, they would gain respect in equal measure.
I spoke of an instance where one of our graduates had produced two hundred and sixty-six bushels of sweet potatoes from an acre of ground, in a community where the average production had been only forty-nine bushels to the acre. He had been able to do this by reason of his knowledge of the chemistry of the soil and by his knowledge of improved methods of agriculture. The white farmers in the neighbourhood respected him, and came to him for ideas regarding the raising of sweet potatoes. These white farmers honoured and respected him because he, by his skill and knowledge, had added something to the wealth and the comfort of the community in which he lived. I explained that my theory of education for the Negro would not, for example, confine him for all time to farm life—to the production of the best and the most sweet potatoes—but that, if he succeeded in this line of industry, he could lay the foundations upon which his children and grand-children could grow to higher and more important things in life.
I talked about a situation where one of our graduates produced two hundred sixty-six bushels of sweet potatoes from an acre of land, in a community where the average yield was only forty-nine bushels per acre. He achieved this because of his understanding of soil chemistry and improved farming methods. The white farmers in the area respected him and sought his advice on growing sweet potatoes. These farmers admired him because he had contributed to the wealth and well-being of his community through his skills and knowledge. I explained that my vision of education for Black people wouldn’t just limit them to farming—creating the best and sweetest potatoes—but that success in this area could lay the groundwork for their children and grandchildren to pursue greater and more significant things in life.
Such, in brief, were some of the views I advocated in this first address dealing with the broad question of the relations of the two races, and since that time I have not found any reason for changing my views on any important point.
Here's a summary of some of the opinions I shared in my first speech about the overall relationship between the two races, and since then, I haven't found any reason to change my perspective on any key issue.
In my early life I used to cherish a feeling of ill will toward any one who spoke in bitter terms against the Negro, or who advocated measures that tended to oppress the black man or take from him opportunities for growth in the most complete manner. Now, whenever I hear any one advocating measures that are meant to curtail the development of another, I pity the individual who would do this. I know that the one who makes this mistake does so because of his own lack of opportunity for the highest kind of growth. I pity him because I know that he is trying to stop the progress of the world, and because I know that in time the development and the ceaseless advance of humanity will make him ashamed of his weak and narrow position. One might as well try to stop the progress of a mighty railroad train by throwing his body across the track, as to try to stop the growth of the world in the direction of giving mankind more intelligence, more culture, more skill, more liberty, and in the direction of extending more sympathy and more brotherly kindness.
In my early life, I used to have a strong dislike for anyone who spoke harshly about Black people or who supported actions that aimed to oppress them or deny them opportunities for growth. Now, whenever I hear someone advocating for measures that limit another's development, I feel sorry for that person. I understand that they make this mistake due to their own lack of opportunity for true growth. I feel pity for them because they are trying to hinder the world's progress, and I know that eventually, the ongoing development of humanity will make them regret their narrow mindset. It’s just as futile to try to stop a powerful train by standing on the tracks as it is to try to halt the world’s progress toward providing more knowledge, culture, skills, freedom, and compassion.
The address which I delivered at Madison, before the National Educational Association, gave me a rather wide introduction in the North, and soon after that opportunities began offering themselves for me to address audiences there.
The speech I gave in Madison at the National Educational Association helped me gain recognition in the North, and soon after, I started getting opportunities to speak to audiences there.
I was anxious, however, that the way might also be opened for me to speak directly to a representative Southern white audience. A partial opportunity of this kind, one that seemed to me might serve as an entering wedge, presented itself in 1893, when the international meeting of Christian Workers was held at Atlanta, Ga. When this invitation came to me, I had engagements in Boston that seemed to make it impossible for me to speak in Atlanta. Still, after looking over my list of dates and places carefully, I found that I could take a train from Boston that would get me into Atlanta about thirty minutes before my address was to be delivered, and that I could remain in that city before taking another train for Boston. My invitation to speak in Atlanta stipulated that I was to confine my address to five minutes. The question, then, was whether or not I could put enough into a five-minute address to make it worth while for me to make such a trip.
I was nervous, though, that this might be my chance to speak directly to a Southern white audience. A possible opportunity arose in 1893 when the international meeting of Christian Workers took place in Atlanta, Ga. When I received the invitation, I had commitments in Boston that made it seem impossible for me to speak in Atlanta. However, after checking my schedule, I realized I could catch a train from Boston that would get me to Atlanta about thirty minutes before my speech was supposed to start, and I could stay in the city before catching another train back to Boston. My invitation to speak in Atlanta stated that I was supposed to limit my speech to five minutes. The question was whether I could say enough in a five-minute speech to make the trip worthwhile.
I knew that the audience would be largely composed of the most influential class of white men and women, and that it would be a rare opportunity for me to let them know what we were trying to do at Tuskegee, as well as to speak to them about the relations of the races. So I decided to make the trip. I spoke for five minutes to an audience of two thousand people, composed mostly of Southern and Northern whites. What I said seemed to be received with favour and enthusiasm. The Atlanta papers of the next day commented in friendly terms on my address, and a good deal was said about it in different parts of the country. I felt that I had in some degree accomplished my object—that of getting a hearing from the dominant class of the South.
I knew that the audience would mainly consist of influential white men and women, and that this would be a unique chance for me to share what we were doing at Tuskegee, as well as to discuss the relationships between races. So, I decided to make the trip. I spoke for five minutes to a crowd of two thousand people, mostly Southern and Northern whites. What I said seemed to be well-received and generated enthusiasm. The next day's Atlanta papers commented positively on my speech, and it was discussed widely in various places across the country. I felt that I had somewhat achieved my goal—getting a chance to speak before the dominant class in the South.
The demands made upon me for public addresses continued to increase, coming in about equal numbers from my own people and from Northern whites. I gave as much time to these addresses as I could spare from the immediate work at Tuskegee. Most of the addresses in the North were made for the direct purpose of getting funds with which to support the school. Those delivered before the coloured people had for their main object the impressing upon them the importance of industrial and technical education in addition to academic and religious training.
The requests for public speeches kept growing, coming in roughly equal parts from my own community and from Northern whites. I dedicated as much time to these speeches as I could manage alongside my immediate work at Tuskegee. Most of the speeches in the North were aimed at raising funds to support the school. Those given to the Black community primarily focused on emphasizing the significance of industrial and technical education alongside academic and religious training.
I now come to that one of the incidents in my life which seems to have excited the greatest amount of interest, and which perhaps went further than anything else in giving me a reputation that in a sense might be called National. I refer to the address which I delivered at the opening of the Atlanta Cotton states and International Exposition, at Atlanta, Ga., September 18, 1895.
I now want to talk about one incident in my life that has generated the most interest and perhaps played a larger role than anything else in building a reputation that could be considered National. I'm referring to the speech I gave at the opening of the Atlanta Cotton States and International Exposition in Atlanta, GA, on September 18, 1895.
So much has been said and written about this incident, and so many questions have been asked me concerning the address, that perhaps I may be excused for taking up the matter with some detail. The five-minute address in Atlanta, which I came from Boston to deliver, was possibly the prime cause for an opportunity being given me to make the second address there. In the spring of 1895 I received a telegram from prominent citizens in Atlanta asking me to accompany a committee from that city to Washington for the purpose of appearing before a committee of Congress in the interest of securing Government help for the Exposition. The committee was composed of about twenty-five of the most prominent and most influential white men of Georgia. All the members of this committee were white men except Bishop Grant, Bishop Gaines, and myself. The Mayor and several other city and state officials spoke before the committee. They were followed by the two coloured bishops. My name was the last on the list of speakers. I had never before appeared before such a committee, nor had I ever delivered any address in the capital of the Nation. I had many misgivings as to what I ought to say, and as to the impression that my address would make. While I cannot recall in detail what I said, I remember that I tried to impress upon the committee, with all the earnestness and plainness of any language that I could command, that if Congress wanted to do something which would assist in ridding the South of the race question and making friends between the two races, it should, in every proper way, encourage the material and intellectual growth of both races. I said that the Atlanta Exposition would present an opportunity for both races to show what advance they had made since freedom, and would at the same time afford encouragement to them to make still greater progress.
So much has been said and written about this incident, and I've been asked so many questions regarding the address that I might be excused for discussing it in detail. The five-minute speech I flew in from Boston to deliver in Atlanta was likely the main reason I got the chance to give a second address there. In the spring of 1895, I received a telegram from prominent citizens in Atlanta asking me to join a committee from that city to Washington to appear before a Congressional committee to secure Government support for the Exposition. The committee consisted of about twenty-five of the most prominent and influential white men of Georgia. All the members were white except for Bishop Grant, Bishop Gaines, and myself. The Mayor and several other city and state officials spoke before the committee, followed by the two Black bishops. My name was the last on the list of speakers. I had never appeared before such a committee before, nor had I ever given a speech in the Nation's capital. I had many doubts about what to say and the impression my speech would make. While I can't recall everything I said in detail, I remember trying to emphasize to the committee, with as much earnestness and clarity as I could muster, that if Congress wanted to help eliminate the race issue in the South and foster friendships between the two races, it should encourage the material and intellectual growth of both races in every appropriate way. I stated that the Atlanta Exposition would provide an opportunity for both races to showcase the progress they had made since emancipation while also encouraging them to strive for even greater advances.
I tried to emphasize the fact that while the Negro should not be deprived by unfair means of the franchise, political agitation alone would not save him, and that back of the ballot he must have property, industry, skill, economy, intelligence, and character, and that no race without these elements could permanently succeed. I said that in granting the appropriation Congress could do something that would prove to be of real and lasting value to both races, and that it was the first great opportunity of the kind that had been presented since the close of the Civil War.
I tried to stress that while Black people shouldn't be unfairly denied the right to vote, political activism alone wouldn't be enough to help them. Behind the vote, they need to have assets, hard work, skills, savings, knowledge, and good character, and no group can truly succeed long-term without these qualities. I mentioned that by approving the funding, Congress could do something meaningful and lasting for both races, and that this was the first significant opportunity of its kind since the end of the Civil War.
I spoke for fifteen or twenty minutes, and was surprised at the close of my address to receive the hearty congratulations of the Georgia committee and of the members of Congress who were present. The Committee was unanimous in making a favourable report, and in a few days the bill passed Congress. With the passing of this bill the success of the Atlanta Exposition was assured.
I spoke for about fifteen or twenty minutes and was surprised at the end of my speech to receive warm congratulations from the Georgia committee and the Congress members who were there. The committee unanimously gave a positive report, and a few days later, the bill passed Congress. With the passage of this bill, the success of the Atlanta Exposition was guaranteed.
Soon after this trip to Washington the directors of the Exposition decided that it would be a fitting recognition of the coloured race to erect a large and attractive building which should be devoted wholly to showing the progress of the Negro since freedom. It was further decided to have the building designed and erected wholly by Negro mechanics. This plan was carried out. In design, beauty, and general finish the Negro Building was equal to the others on the grounds.
Soon after this trip to Washington, the directors of the Exposition decided that it would be a fitting acknowledgment of the Black community to build a large and attractive structure dedicated entirely to showcasing the progress of Black individuals since emancipation. They also decided that the building would be designed and constructed exclusively by Black workers. This plan was put into action. In terms of design, beauty, and overall finish, the Black Building was on par with the other buildings on the grounds.
After it was decided to have a separate Negro exhibit, the question arose as to who should take care of it. The officials of the Exposition were anxious that I should assume this responsibility, but I declined to do so, on the plea that the work at Tuskegee at that time demanded my time and strength. Largely at my suggestion, Mr. I. Garland Penn, of Lynchburg, Va., was selected to be at the head of the Negro department. I gave him all the aid that I could. The Negro exhibit, as a whole, was large and creditable. The two exhibits in this department which attracted the greatest amount of attention were those from the Hampton Institute and the Tuskegee Institute. The people who seemed to be the most surprised, as well as pleased, at what they saw in the Negro Building were the Southern white people.
After it was decided to have a separate Black exhibit, the question came up about who should oversee it. The officials of the Exposition were eager for me to take on this responsibility, but I declined, claiming that my work at Tuskegee at that time required my time and energy. Mostly at my suggestion, Mr. I. Garland Penn from Lynchburg, Va., was chosen to lead the Black department. I provided him with as much support as I could. Overall, the Black exhibit was large and impressive. The two exhibits in this department that drew the most attention were from Hampton Institute and Tuskegee Institute. The people who seemed the most surprised, as well as pleased, by what they saw in the Black Building were the Southern white attendees.
As the day for the opening of the Exposition drew near, the Board of Directors began preparing the programme for the opening exercises. In the discussion from day to day of the various features of this programme, the question came up as to the advisability of putting a member of the Negro race on for one of the opening addresses, since the Negroes had been asked to take such a prominent part in the Exposition. It was argued, further, that such recognition would mark the good feeling prevailing between the two races. Of course there were those who were opposed to any such recognition of the rights of the Negro, but the Board of Directors, composed of men who represented the best and most progressive element in the South, had their way, and voted to invite a black man to speak on the opening day. The next thing was to decide upon the person who was thus to represent the Negro race. After the question had been canvassed for several days, the directors voted unanimously to ask me to deliver one of the opening-day addresses, and in a few days after that I received the official invitation.
As the day for the opening of the Exposition approached, the Board of Directors started preparing the program for the opening events. In their daily discussions about the various aspects of this program, the question arose about whether to include a member of the Black community to give one of the opening addresses, especially since they had been invited to play a significant role in the Exposition. It was argued that this recognition would reflect the positive relationship between the two races. Naturally, there were those who opposed any acknowledgment of the rights of Black individuals, but the Board of Directors, made up of the most progressive and forward-thinking leaders in the South, decided to go ahead and invited a Black man to speak on opening day. The next step was to choose the person who would represent the Black community. After discussing it for several days, the directors unanimously voted to invite me to give one of the opening day addresses, and a few days later, I received the official invitation.
The receiving of this invitation brought to me a sense of responsibility that it would be hard for any one not placed in my position to appreciate. What were my feelings when this invitation came to me? I remembered that I had been a slave; that my early years had been spent in the lowest depths of poverty and ignorance, and that I had had little opportunity to prepare me for such a responsibility as this. It was only a few years before that time that any white man in the audience might have claimed me as his slave; and it was easily possible that some of my former owners might be present to hear me speak.
Receiving this invitation made me feel a sense of responsibility that would be hard for anyone not in my situation to understand. How did I feel when this invitation arrived? I remembered that I had been enslaved, that my early years were spent in extreme poverty and ignorance, and that I had little opportunity to prepare for such a responsibility. Just a few years earlier, any white man in the audience could have claimed me as his slave; it was quite possible that some of my former owners were present to hear me speak.
I knew, too, that this was the first time in the entire history of the Negro that a member of my race had been asked to speak from the same platform with white Southern men and women on any important National occasion. I was asked now to speak to an audience composed of the wealth and culture of the white South, the representatives of my former masters. I knew, too, that while the greater part of my audience would be composed of Southern people, yet there would be present a large number of Northern whites, as well as a great many men and women of my own race.
I also realized that this was the first time in the entire history of Black people that someone from my race had been invited to speak on the same stage as white Southern men and women at any significant national event. I was now being asked to address an audience made up of the wealth and culture of the white South, the representatives of my former masters. I was aware that, although most of my audience would be Southern, there would also be a sizable group of Northern whites, along with many people from my own race.
I was determined to say nothing that I did not feel from the bottom of my heart to be true and right. When the invitation came to me, there was not one word of intimation as to what I should say or as to what I should omit. In this I felt that the Board of Directors had paid a tribute to me. They knew that by one sentence I could have blasted, in a large degree, the success of the Exposition. I was also painfully conscious of the fact that, while I must be true to my own race in my utterances, I had it in my power to make such an ill-timed address as would result in preventing any similar invitation being extended to a black man again for years to come. I was equally determined to be true to the North, as well as to the best element of the white South, in what I had to say.
I was committed to saying only what I truly believed in my heart to be right. When the invitation arrived, there were no guidelines about what I should say or what I should leave out. I felt that the Board of Directors was honoring me with this freedom. They understood that with just one sentence, I could largely undermine the success of the Exposition. I was painfully aware that while I needed to be honest to my own race in my words, I also had the power to give such an ill-timed speech that it could prevent any similar invitations to a Black man for years. I was equally determined to stay true to the North, as well as to the better aspects of the white South, in what I planned to say.
The papers, North and South, had taken up the discussion of my coming speech, and as the time for it drew near this discussion became more and more widespread. Not a few of the Southern white papers were unfriendly to the idea of my speaking. From my own race I received many suggestions as to what I ought to say. I prepared myself as best I could for the address, but as the eighteenth of September drew nearer, the heavier my heart became, and the more I feared that my effort would prove a failure and a disappointment.
The newspapers, North and South, had started talking about my upcoming speech, and as the date approached, the discussion spread even further. Several Southern white newspapers were not supportive of the idea of me speaking. From my own community, I received many suggestions on what I should say. I did my best to prepare for the address, but as September eighteenth got closer, my heart felt heavier, and I became more afraid that my effort would end in failure and disappointment.
The invitation had come at a time when I was very busy with my school work, as it was the beginning of our school year. After preparing my address, I went through it, as I usually do with those utterances which I consider particularly important, with Mrs. Washington, and she approved of what I intended to say. On the sixteenth of September, the day before I was to start for Atlanta, so many of the Tuskegee teachers expressed a desire to hear my address that I consented to read it to them in a body. When I had done so, and had heard their criticisms and comments, I felt somewhat relieved, since they seemed to think well of what I had to say.
The invitation came at a time when I was really busy with my school work, since it was the start of the school year. After preparing my speech, I went over it, as I usually do with those statements I consider especially important, with Mrs. Washington, and she approved of what I planned to say. On September 16, the day before I was supposed to head to Atlanta, many of the Tuskegee teachers expressed a wish to hear my speech, so I agreed to read it to them all at once. After I did that and listened to their feedback and comments, I felt somewhat relieved, since they seemed to have a positive view of what I had to say.
On the morning of September 17, together with Mrs. Washington and my three children, I started for Atlanta. I felt a good deal as I suppose a man feels when he is on his way to the gallows. In passing through the town of Tuskegee I met a white farmer who lived some distance out in the country. In a jesting manner this man said: "Washington, you have spoken before the Northern white people, the Negroes in the South, and to us country white people in the South; but Atlanta, to-morrow, you will have before you the Northern whites, the Southern whites, and the Negroes all together. I am afraid that you have got yourself in a tight place." This farmer diagnosed the situation correctly, but his frank words did not add anything to my comfort.
On the morning of September 17, I set out for Atlanta with Mrs. Washington and my three kids. I felt much like a man on his way to the gallows. As we passed through the town of Tuskegee, I encountered a white farmer who lived a bit out in the countryside. Jokingly, he said, "Washington, you've spoken to Northern whites, Southern blacks, and us country whites in the South, but tomorrow in Atlanta, you'll have Northern whites, Southern whites, and blacks all in one place. I'm worried you've put yourself in a tough spot." The farmer was right about the situation, but his honest words didn’t make me feel any better.
In the course of the journey from Tuskegee to Atlanta both coloured and white people came to the train to point me out, and discussed with perfect freedom, in my hearings, what was going to take place the next day. We were met by a committee in Atlanta. Almost the first thing that I heard when I got off the train in that city was an expression something like this, from an old coloured man near by: "Dat's de man of my race what's gwine to make a speech at de Exposition to-morrow. I'se sho' gwine to hear him."
During the trip from Tuskegee to Atlanta, both Black and white people came to the train to point me out and openly talked, in my presence, about what was going to happen the next day. We were greeted by a committee in Atlanta. Almost the first thing I heard when I got off the train in that city was something like this from an old Black man nearby: "That's the guy from my race who's going to give a speech at the Exposition tomorrow. I'm definitely going to listen to him."
Atlanta was literally packed, at the time, with people from all parts of the country, and with representatives of foreign governments, as well as with military and civic organizations. The afternoon papers had forecasts of the next day's proceedings in flaring headlines. All this tended to add to my burden. I did not sleep much that night. The next morning, before day, I went carefully over what I planned to say. I also kneeled down and asked God's blessing upon my effort. Right here, perhaps, I ought to add that I make it a rule never to go before an audience, on any occasion, without asking the blessing of God upon what I want to say.
Atlanta was absolutely buzzing at the time, filled with people from all over the country, foreign diplomats, and both military and civic groups. The afternoon newspapers had bold headlines predicting the next day's events. All of this added to my stress. I hardly slept that night. The next morning, before dawn, I carefully reviewed what I intended to say. I also knelt and asked for God's blessing on my effort. I should mention that I make it a point never to speak in front of an audience without first asking for God's blessing on my words.
I always make it a rule to make especial preparation for each separate address. No two audiences are exactly alike. It is my aim to reach and talk to the heart of each individual audience, taking it into my confidence very much as I would a person. When I am speaking to an audience, I care little for how what I am saying is going to sound in the newspapers, or to another audience, or to an individual. At the time, the audience before me absorbs all my sympathy, thought, and energy.
I always make a point to prepare specifically for each speech. No two audiences are exactly the same. I aim to connect and communicate with the heart of each individual audience, treating it like I would a person. When I'm addressing an audience, I don't worry about how my words will come across in the news, to another audience, or to an individual. In that moment, the audience in front of me gets all my sympathy, thoughts, and energy.
Early in the morning a committee called to escort me to my place in the procession which was to march to the Exposition grounds. In this procession were prominent coloured citizens in carriages, as well as several Negro military organizations. I noted that the Exposition officials seemed to go out of their way to see that all of the coloured people in the procession were properly placed and properly treated. The procession was about three hours in reaching the Exposition grounds, and during all of this time the sun was shining down upon us disagreeably hot. When we reached the grounds, the heat, together with my nervous anxiety, made me feel as if I were about ready to collapse, and to feel that my address was not going to be a success. When I entered the audience-room, I found it packed with humanity from bottom to top, and there were thousands outside who could not get in.
Early in the morning, a group came to take me to my spot in the parade that was heading to the Exposition grounds. This parade included prominent Black citizens in carriages, as well as several Black military organizations. I noticed that the Exposition officials went out of their way to ensure that all the Black participants in the parade were properly positioned and treated well. The parade took about three hours to reach the Exposition grounds, and during that time, the sun was beating down on us uncomfortably. When we finally arrived, the heat and my nervous anxiety made me feel like I was about to collapse, and I was worried that my speech wouldn’t be successful. As I entered the audience room, I found it completely packed with people, and there were thousands outside who couldn’t get in.
The room was very large, and well suited to public speaking. When I entered the room, there were vigorous cheers from the coloured portion of the audience, and faint cheers from some of the white people. I had been told, while I had been in Atlanta, that while many white people were going to be present to hear me speak, simply out of curiosity, and that others who would be present would be in full sympathy with me, there was a still larger element of the audience which would consist of those who were going to be present for the purpose of hearing me make a fool of myself, or, at least, of hearing me say some foolish thing so that they could say to the officials who had invited me to speak, "I told you so!"
The room was really big and perfect for public speaking. When I walked in, there were loud cheers from the Black audience and some quiet claps from the white attendees. While I was in Atlanta, I had heard that many white people would be there out of curiosity, and some would genuinely support me, but there would also be a significant group there just to see me embarrass myself or to hear me say something foolish so they could tell the officials who invited me, "I knew it!"
One of the trustees of the Tuskegee Institute, as well as my personal friend, Mr. William H. Baldwin, Jr. was at the time General Manager of the Southern Railroad, and happened to be in Atlanta on that day. He was so nervous about the kind of reception that I would have, and the effect that my speech would produce, that he could not persuade himself to go into the building, but walked back and forth in the grounds outside until the opening exercises were over.
One of the trustees of the Tuskegee Institute and my personal friend, Mr. William H. Baldwin, Jr., was the General Manager of the Southern Railroad at that time and happened to be in Atlanta that day. He was so anxious about how I would be received and the impact my speech would have that he couldn't bring himself to enter the building and instead paced around outside until the opening exercises were finished.
Chapter XIV. The Atlanta Exposition Address
The Atlanta Exposition, at which I had been asked to make an address as a representative of the Negro race, as stated in the last chapter, was opened with a short address from Governor Bullock. After other interesting exercises, including an invocation from Bishop Nelson, of Georgia, a dedicatory ode by Albert Howell, Jr., and addresses by the President of the Exposition and Mrs. Joseph Thompson, the President of the Woman's Board, Governor Bullock introduce me with the words, "We have with us to-day a representative of Negro enterprise and Negro civilization."
The Atlanta Exposition, where I was invited to speak as a representative of the Black community, as mentioned in the last chapter, began with a brief speech from Governor Bullock. After various engaging activities, including a prayer from Bishop Nelson of Georgia, a dedicatory ode by Albert Howell, Jr., and speeches by the President of the Exposition and Mrs. Joseph Thompson, the President of the Woman's Board, Governor Bullock introduced me by saying, "We have with us today a representative of Black entrepreneurship and Black culture."
When I arose to speak, there was considerable cheering, especially from the coloured people. As I remember it now, the thing that was uppermost in my mind was the desire to say something that would cement the friendship of the races and bring about hearty cooperation between them. So far as my outward surroundings were concerned, the only thing that I recall distinctly now is that when I got up, I saw thousands of eyes looking intently into my face. The following is the address which I delivered:—
When I got up to speak, there was a lot of cheering, especially from the people of color. As I think back on it now, what stood out in my mind was the wish to say something that would strengthen the friendship between the races and encourage genuine cooperation. As for my surroundings, the only thing I clearly remember is seeing thousands of eyes focused intently on my face when I stood up. Here is the address I delivered:—
Mr. President and Gentlemen of the Board of Directors and Citizens.
Mr. President, members of the Board of Directors, and citizens.
One-third of the population of the South is of the Negro race. No enterprise seeking the material, civil, or moral welfare of this section can disregard this element of our population and reach the highest success. I but convey to you, Mr. President and Directors, the sentiment of the masses of my race when I say that in no way have the value and manhood of the American Negro been more fittingly and generously recognized than by the managers of this magnificent Exposition at every stage of its progress. It is a recognition that will do more to cement the friendship of the two races than any occurrence since the dawn of our freedom.
A third of the population in the South is Black. No effort aimed at improving the social, economic, or moral conditions in this region can ignore this part of our community and achieve maximum success. I am expressing the feelings of many in my community when I say that the value and dignity of the Black American have never been more appropriately and generously acknowledged than by the organizers of this amazing Exposition at every stage of its development. This acknowledgment will do more to strengthen the bonds between our two races than anything that has happened since we gained our freedom.
Not only this, but the opportunity here afforded will awaken among us a new era of industrial progress. Ignorant and inexperienced, it is not strange that in the first years of our new life we began at the top instead of at the bottom; that a seat in Congress or the state legislature was more sought than real estate or industrial skill; that the political convention or stump speaking had more attractions than starting a dairy farm or truck garden.
Not only that, but the chance we have here will spark a new era of industrial growth among us. It's no surprise that, in the early years of our new existence, we aimed high instead of starting from the ground up; that getting a seat in Congress or the state legislature was more desirable than owning land or having industrial skills; that political conventions or public speaking were more appealing than starting a dairy farm or a vegetable garden.
A ship lost at sea for many days suddenly sighted a friendly vessel. From the mast of the unfortunate vessel was seen a signal, "Water, water; we die of thirst!" The answer from the friendly vessel at once came back, "Cast down your bucket where you are." A second time the signal, "Water, water; send us water!" ran up from the distressed vessel, and was answered, "Cast down your bucket where you are." And a third and fourth signal for water was answered, "Cast down your bucket where you are." The captain of the distressed vessel, at last heading the injunction, cast down his bucket, and it came up full of fresh, sparkling water from the mouth of the Amazon River. To those of my race who depend on bettering their condition in a foreign land or who underestimate the importance of cultivating friendly relations with the Southern white man, who is their next-door neighbour, I would say: "Cast down your bucket where you are"—cast it down in making friends in every manly way of the people of all races by whom we are surrounded.
A ship lost at sea for many days finally spotted a friendly vessel. From the mast of the stranded ship, a signal was raised, "Water, water; we’re dying of thirst!" The reply from the friendly ship came back immediately, "Lower your bucket where you are." A second time, the signal, "Water, water; send us water!" was hoisted from the troubled vessel, and the response was, "Lower your bucket where you are." A third and fourth request for water was met with the same reply, "Lower your bucket where you are." Finally, the captain of the distressed ship, following the advice, lowered his bucket, and it came up full of fresh, sparkling water from the mouth of the Amazon River. To those in my community who rely on improving their situation in a foreign land or who underestimate the importance of building friendly relationships with the Southern white man, who is their neighbor, I would say: "Lower your bucket where you are"—lower it by making friends in every genuine way with the people of all races around us.
Cast it down in agriculture, mechanics, in commerce, in domestic service, and in the professions. And in this connection it is well to bear in mind that whatever other sins the South may be called to bear, when it comes to business, pure and simple, it is in the South that the Negro is given a man's chance in the commercial world, and in nothing is this Exposition more eloquent than in emphasizing this chance. Our greatest danger is that in the great leap from slavery to freedom we may overlook the fact that the masses of us are to live by the productions of our hands, and fail to keep in mind that we shall prosper in proportion as we learn to dignify and glorify common labour and put brains and skill into the common occupations of life; shall prosper in proportion as we learn to draw the line between the superficial and the substantial, the ornamental gewgaws of life and the useful. No race can prosper till it learns that there is as much dignity in tilling a field as in writing a poem. It is at the bottom of life we must begin, and not at the top. Nor should we permit our grievances to overshadow our opportunities.
Put it into practice in agriculture, mechanics, commerce, domestic work, and various professions. It's important to remember that despite any other issues the South may face, when it comes to straightforward business, it's in the South that Black individuals are given a fair shot in the commercial landscape, and this Exposition highlights that opportunity powerfully. Our biggest risk is that in the rapid transition from slavery to freedom, we might forget that most of us will support ourselves through our own labor, and we could neglect the idea that we will thrive to the extent that we honor and elevate everyday work and apply our intellect and skills to common jobs. We will thrive in line with our ability to distinguish between the trivial and the meaningful, between flashy frills and practical items. No group can succeed until it recognizes the inherent dignity in farming as much as in writing poetry. We must start from the ground up, not from the top down. And we shouldn't let our grievances overshadow our chances.
To those of the white race who look to the incoming of those of foreign birth and strange tongue and habits of the prosperity of the South, were I permitted I would repeat what I say to my own race: "Cast down your bucket where you are." Cast it down among the eight millions of Negroes whose habits you know, whose fidelity and love you have tested in days when to have proved treacherous meant the ruin of your firesides. Cast down your bucket among these people who have, without strikes and labour wars, tilled your fields, cleared your forests, builded your railroads and cities, and brought forth treasures from the bowels of the earth, and helped make possible this magnificent representation of the progress of the South. Casting down your bucket among my people, helping and encouraging them as you are doing on these grounds, and to education of head, hand, and heart, you will find that they will buy your surplus land, make blossom the waste places in your fields, and run your factories. While doing this, you can be sure in the future, as in the past, that you and your families will be surrounded by the most patient, faithful, law-abiding, and unresentful people that the world has seen. As we have proved our loyalty to you in the past, nursing your children, watching by the sick-bed of your mothers and fathers, and often following them with tear-dimmed eyes to their graves, so in the future, in our humble way, we shall stand by you with a devotion that no foreigner can approach, ready to lay down our lives, if need be, in defence of yours, interlacing our industrial, commercial, civil, and religious life with yours in a way that shall make the interests of both races one. In all things that are purely social we can be as separate as the fingers, yet one as the hand in all things essential to mutual progress.
To those of the white race who look to the arrival of newcomers from other countries with different languages and customs for the prosperity of the South, if I were allowed, I would say what I tell my own people: "Start where you are." Start among the eight million Black people whose ways you know, whose loyalty and love you have tested in times when being disloyal could have destroyed your homes. Start among these people who have, without strikes or labor disputes, worked your fields, cleared your forests, built your railroads and cities, and brought forth resources from the earth, helping to create this amazing representation of the South's progress. By reaching out and supporting my people, as you are doing here—investing in education of mind, skill, and heart—you will find that they will purchase your surplus land, revitalize the neglected areas of your fields, and operate your factories. While doing this, you can be confident, just as in the past, that you and your families will be surrounded by the most patient, loyal, law-abiding, and forgiving people the world has seen. As we have shown our loyalty in the past—caring for your children, staying by the bedside of your sick loved ones, and often following them to their graves with tear-filled eyes—so in the future, in our humble way, we will stand by you with a commitment that no outsider can match, ready to lay down our lives, if necessary, to defend yours, intertwining our industrial, commercial, civic, and religious lives in a way that unites the interests of both races. In all purely social matters, we can be as separate as fingers, yet united like a hand in all essential aspects of mutual progress.
There is no defence or security for any of us except in the highest intelligence and development of all. If anywhere there are efforts tending to curtail the fullest growth of the Negro, let these efforts be turned into stimulating, encouraging, and making him the most useful and intelligent citizen. Effort or means so invested will pay a thousand per cent interest. These efforts will be twice blessed—"blessing him that gives and him that takes."
There’s no protection or safety for any of us except in the highest intelligence and development of everyone. If there are any efforts aimed at limiting the full growth of Black people, those efforts should instead focus on encouraging and helping them become the most useful and intelligent citizens. Investing time and resources in this way will bring back a thousand percent return. These efforts will be doubly rewarding—“blessing both the giver and the receiver.”
There is no escape through law of man or God from the inevitable:—
There’s no way to escape the inevitable, whether through the law of man or God:—
The laws of changeless justice bind Oppressor with oppressed; And close as sin and suffering joined We march to fate abreast.
The unchanging laws of justice connect The oppressor with the oppressed; And as closely as sin and suffering are linked We move towards our fate together.
Nearly sixteen millions of hands will aid you in pulling the load upward, or they will pull against you the load downward. We shall constitute one-third and more of the ignorance and crime of the South, or one-third its intelligence and progress; we shall contribute one-third to the business and industrial prosperity of the South, or we shall prove a veritable body of death, stagnating, depressing, retarding every effort to advance the body politic.
Almost sixteen million people will help you lift the load, or they will pull against you, dragging it down. We will make up at least one-third of the ignorance and crime in the South, or one-third of its intelligence and progress; we will contribute one-third to the business and industrial success of the South, or we will become a true weight, holding back, discouraging, and slowing every effort to improve the community.
Gentlemen of the Exposition, as we present to you our humble effort at an exhibition of our progress, you must not expect overmuch. Starting thirty years ago with ownership here and there in a few quilts and pumpkins and chickens (gathered from miscellaneous sources), remember the path that has led from these to the inventions and production of agricultural implements, buggies, steam-engines, newspapers, books, statuary, carving, paintings, the management of drug-stores and banks, has not been trodden without contact with thorns and thistles. While we take pride in what we exhibit as a result of our independent efforts, we do not for a moment forget that our part in this exhibition would fall far short of your expectations but for the constant help that has come to our education life, not only from the Southern states, but especially from Northern philanthropists, who have made their gifts a constant stream of blessing and encouragement.
Gentlemen of the Exposition, as we showcase our humble attempt at demonstrating our progress, please don't expect too much. Starting thirty years ago with ownership of a few quilts, pumpkins, and chickens (gathered from various sources), keep in mind the journey from these beginnings to the inventions and production of agricultural tools, buggies, steam engines, newspapers, books, sculptures, carvings, paintings, and the management of drugstores and banks hasn’t been easy, filled with challenges along the way. While we take pride in what we present as a result of our independent efforts, we know that our contribution to this exhibition would not meet your expectations without the ongoing support that has shaped our education and lives, not only from the Southern states but especially from Northern philanthropists, whose generous contributions have been a continuous source of blessing and encouragement.
The wisest among my race understand that the agitation of questions of social equality is the extremest folly, and that progress in the enjoyment of all the privileges that will come to us must be the result of severe and constant struggle rather than of artificial forcing. No race that has anything to contribute to the markets of the world is long in any degree ostracized. It is important and right that all privileges of the law be ours, but it is vastly more important that we be prepared for the exercises of these privileges. The opportunity to earn a dollar in a factory just now is worth infinitely more than the opportunity to spend a dollar in an opera-house.
The smartest people in my community know that getting caught up in debates about social equality is a huge mistake. We will only truly enjoy the benefits that should come to us through hard work and consistent struggle, not by pushing for it artificially. No race that has anything valuable to offer the global market remains marginalized for long. It's crucial and just that we have all the legal rights available to us, but it’s even more important that we are ready to make use of those rights. Right now, having the chance to earn a dollar in a factory is worth so much more than the chance to spend a dollar at an opera house.
In conclusion, may I repeat that nothing in thirty years has given us more hope and encouragement, and drawn us so near to you of the white race, as this opportunity offered by the Exposition; and here bending, as it were, over the altar that represents the results of the struggles of your race and mine, both starting practically empty-handed three decades ago, I pledge that in your effort to work out the great and intricate problem which God has laid at the doors of the South, you shall have at all times the patient, sympathetic help of my race; only let this be constantly in mind, that, while from representations in these buildings of the product of field, of forest, of mine, of factory, letters, and art, much good will come, yet far above and beyond material benefits will be that higher good, that, let us pray God, will come, in a blotting out of sectional differences and racial animosities and suspicions, in a determination to administer absolute justice, in a willing obedience among all classes to the mandates of law. This, this, coupled with our material prosperity, will bring into our beloved South a new heaven and a new earth.
In conclusion, I want to reiterate that nothing in thirty years has brought us more hope and encouragement, or drawn us closer to you of the white race, than this opportunity provided by the Exposition. As we stand here, metaphorically leaning over the altar that symbolizes the outcomes of our shared struggles, both of our races starting nearly from scratch three decades ago, I promise that in your effort to tackle the significant and complex challenges that God has placed before the South, you will always have the patient and supportive help of my race. Just keep in mind that while the exhibits in these buildings showcasing the products of agriculture, forestry, mining, manufacturing, literature, and art will lead to much good, the greater benefit will be the moral progress that we pray will come—erasing regional differences and racial hostilities and mistrust, fostering a commitment to absolute justice, and encouraging all social classes to obey the law. This, along with our material success, will bring a new heaven and a new earth to our beloved South.
The first thing that I remember, after I had finished speaking, was that Governor Bullock rushed across the platform and took me by the hand, and that others did the same. I received so many and such hearty congratulations that I found it difficult to get out of the building. I did not appreciate to any degree, however, the impression which my address seemed to have made, until the next morning, when I went into the business part of the city. As soon as I was recognized, I was surprised to find myself pointed out and surrounded by a crowd of men who wished to shake hands with me. This was kept up on every street on to which I went, to an extent which embarrassed me so much that I went back to my boarding-place. The next morning I returned to Tuskegee. At the station in Atlanta, and at almost all of the stations at which the train stopped between that city and Tuskegee, I found a crowd of people anxious to shake hands with me.
The first thing I remember after finishing my speech is that Governor Bullock rushed across the platform, grabbed my hand, and others did the same. I received so many warm congratulations that it was hard to get out of the building. I didn't really understand the impact my speech had made until the next morning when I went into the business district. As soon as people recognized me, I was surprised to find myself surrounded by a crowd of men wanting to shake hands. This continued on every street I walked down, to the point that it embarrassed me so much I went back to my boarding place. The next morning, I returned to Tuskegee. At the Atlanta station, and at almost every station where the train stopped between that city and Tuskegee, I found a crowd of people eager to shake hands with me.
The papers in all parts of the United States published the address in full, and for months afterward there were complimentary editorial references to it. Mr. Clark Howell, the editor of the Atlanta Constitution, telegraphed to a New York paper, among other words, the following, "I do not exaggerate when I say that Professor Booker T. Washington's address yesterday was one of the most notable speeches, both as to character and as to the warmth of its reception, ever delivered to a Southern audience. The address was a revelation. The whole speech is a platform upon which blacks and whites can stand with full justice to each other."
The newspapers across the United States published the full address, and for months afterward, they included positive editorial mentions of it. Mr. Clark Howell, the editor of the Atlanta Constitution, sent a telegram to a New York paper saying, among other things, "I’m not exaggerating when I say that Professor Booker T. Washington's speech yesterday was one of the most significant ever delivered to a Southern audience, both in terms of its content and the warm reception it received. The address was eye-opening. The entire speech provides a foundation for both blacks and whites to stand on with complete justice to each other."
The Boston Transcript said editorially: "The speech of Booker T. Washington at the Atlanta Exposition, this week, seems to have dwarfed all the other proceedings and the Exposition itself. The sensation that it has caused in the press has never been equalled."
The Boston Transcript stated in an editorial: "Booker T. Washington's speech at the Atlanta Exposition this week seems to have overshadowed all the other events and the Exposition itself. The buzz it has created in the press has never been matched."
I very soon began receiving all kinds of propositions from lecture bureaus, and editors of magazines and papers, to take the lecture platform, and to write articles. One lecture bureau offered me fifty thousand dollars, or two hundred dollars a night and expenses, if I would place my services at its disposal for a given period. To all these communications I replied that my life-work was at Tuskegee; and that whenever I spoke it must be in the interests of Tuskegee school and my race, and that I would enter into no arrangements that seemed to place a mere commercial value upon my services.
I soon started getting all sorts of offers from lecture agencies and editors of magazines and newspapers to give talks and write articles. One lecture agency offered me fifty thousand dollars, or two hundred dollars a night plus expenses, if I would make myself available for a certain time. To all these messages, I replied that my life's work was at Tuskegee, and that whenever I spoke, it had to be for the benefit of the Tuskegee school and my race, and that I wouldn't agree to any arrangements that seemed to treat my services as purely commercial.
Some days after its delivery I sent a copy of my address to the President of the United States, the Hon. Grover Cleveland. I received from him the following autograph reply:—
Some days after it was delivered, I sent a copy of my speech to the President of the United States, the Hon. Grover Cleveland. I received the following handwritten reply from him:—
Gray Gables, Buzzard's Bay, Mass.,
Gray Gables, Buzzards Bay, MA,
October 6, 1895.
October 6, 1895.
Booker T. Washington, Esq.:
Booker T. Washington, Esq.
My Dear Sir: I thank you for sending me a copy of your address delivered at the Atlanta Exposition.
My Dear Sir: Thank you for sending me a copy of your speech given at the Atlanta Exposition.
I thank you with much enthusiasm for making the address. I have read it with intense interest, and I think the Exposition would be fully justified if it did not do more than furnish the opportunity for its delivery. Your words cannot fail to delight and encourage all who wish well for your race; and if our coloured fellow-citizens do not from your utterances gather new hope and form new determinations to gain every valuable advantage offered them by their citizenship, it will be strange indeed.
I want to thank you enthusiastically for giving the speech. I read it with great interest, and I believe the Exposition would be entirely justified even if it only provided the chance for you to deliver it. Your words are sure to inspire and uplift everyone who wishes the best for your community; if our colleagues of color don’t find new hope and resolve to take advantage of every opportunity their citizenship offers, it would indeed be surprising.
Yours very truly,
Sincerely yours,
Grover Cleveland.
Grover Cleveland.
Later I met Mr. Cleveland, for the first time, when, as President, he visited the Atlanta Exposition. At the request of myself and others he consented to spend an hour in the Negro Building, for the purpose of inspecting the Negro exhibit and of giving the coloured people in attendance an opportunity to shake hands with him. As soon as I met Mr. Cleveland I became impressed with his simplicity, greatness, and rugged honesty. I have met him many times since then, both at public functions and at his private residence in Princeton, and the more I see of him the more I admire him. When he visited the Negro Building in Atlanta he seemed to give himself up wholly, for that hour, to the coloured people. He seemed to be as careful to shake hands with some old coloured "auntie" clad partially in rags, and to take as much pleasure in doing so, as if he were greeting some millionaire. Many of the coloured people took advantage of the occasion to get him to write his name in a book or on a slip of paper. He was as careful and patient in doing this as if he were putting his signature to some great state document.
Later, I met Mr. Cleveland for the first time when he, as President, visited the Atlanta Exposition. At the request of myself and others, he agreed to spend an hour in the Negro Building to inspect the Negro exhibit and give the African American attendees a chance to shake hands with him. As soon as I met Mr. Cleveland, I was struck by his simplicity, greatness, and genuine honesty. I've met him many times since, both at public events and at his home in Princeton, and the more I see him, the more I admire him. When he visited the Negro Building in Atlanta, he seemed to fully dedicate that hour to the African American community. He took care to shake hands with an elderly African American "auntie" dressed in rags and seemed to enjoy it just as much as if he were greeting a millionaire. Many of the African American attendees took advantage of the opportunity to ask him to sign a book or a piece of paper. He was as careful and patient in doing this as if he were signing an important state document.
Mr. Cleveland has not only shown his friendship for me in many personal ways, but has always consented to do anything I have asked of him for our school. This he has done, whether it was to make a personal donation or to use his influence in securing the donations of others. Judging from my personal acquaintance with Mr. Cleveland, I do not believe that he is conscious of possessing any colour prejudice. He is too great for that. In my contact with people I find that, as a rule, it is only the little, narrow people who live for themselves, who never read good books, who do not travel, who never open up their souls in a way to permit them to come into contact with other souls—with the great outside world. No man whose vision is bounded by colour can come into contact with what is highest and best in the world. In meeting men, in many places, I have found that the happiest people are those who do the most for others; the most miserable are those who do the least. I have also found that few things, if any, are capable of making one so blind and narrow as race prejudice. I often say to our students, in the course of my talks to them on Sunday evenings in the chapel, that the longer I live and the more experience I have of the world, the more I am convinced that, after all, the one thing that is most worth living for—and dying for, if need be—is the opportunity of making some one else more happy and more useful.
Mr. Cleveland has shown his friendship for me in many personal ways and has always agreed to do anything I’ve asked him for our school. He has done this whether it was making a personal donation or using his influence to secure donations from others. Based on my personal experiences with Mr. Cleveland, I don’t think he is aware of having any color prejudice. He is too great for that. In my interactions with people, I find that, as a rule, it’s usually only the small-minded, narrow individuals who live for themselves, who never read good books, don’t travel, and never open up their souls enough to connect with other souls or the broader world. No one whose vision is limited by color can engage with what is highest and best in the world. In meeting people in many places, I’ve found that the happiest individuals are those who do the most for others; the most miserable are those who do the least. I’ve also discovered that very few things are capable of making someone as blind and narrow-minded as race prejudice. I often tell our students during my Sunday evening talks in the chapel that the longer I live and the more experiences I have in the world, the more convinced I become that, after all, the one thing that is truly worth living for—and dying for, if necessary—is the chance to make someone else happier and more useful.
The coloured people and the coloured newspapers at first seemed to be greatly pleased with the character of my Atlanta address, as well as with its reception. But after the first burst of enthusiasm began to die away, and the coloured people began reading the speech in cold type, some of them seemed to feel that they had been hypnotized. They seemed to feel that I had been too liberal in my remarks toward the Southern whites, and that I had not spoken out strongly enough for what they termed the "rights" of my race. For a while there was a reaction, so far as a certain element of my own race was concerned, but later these reactionary ones seemed to have been won over to my way of believing and acting.
The people of color and the community newspapers initially seemed really happy with my Atlanta speech and how it was received. But as the initial excitement faded and people started reading the speech in print, some began to feel like they had been misled. They felt I had been too accommodating towards the Southern whites and hadn't advocated strongly enough for what they called the “rights” of my race. For a while, there was pushback from a certain segment of my community, but eventually, those who were critical seemed to come around to my way of thinking and acting.
While speaking of changes in public sentiment, I recall that about ten years after the school at Tuskegee was established, I had an experience that I shall never forget. Dr. Lyman Abbott, then the pastor of Plymouth Church, and also editor of the Outlook (then the Christian Union), asked me to write a letter for his paper giving my opinion of the exact condition, mental and moral, of the coloured ministers in the South, as based upon my observations. I wrote the letter, giving the exact facts as I conceived them to be. The picture painted was a rather black one—or, since I am black, shall I say "white"? It could not be otherwise with a race but a few years out of slavery, a race which had not had time or opportunity to produce a competent ministry.
While discussing changes in public opinion, I remember an experience that I will never forget, which happened about ten years after the Tuskegee school was established. Dr. Lyman Abbott, who was then the pastor of Plymouth Church and also the editor of the Outlook (formerly known as the Christian Union), asked me to write a letter for his publication sharing my thoughts on the mental and moral state of the Black ministers in the South based on my observations. I wrote the letter, presenting the facts as I saw them. The portrayal was pretty bleak—or, since I’m Black, should I say "light"? It couldn’t be any other way for a race that had only recently emerged from slavery, a race that hadn’t had the time or opportunity to develop a capable ministry.
What I said soon reached every Negro minister in the country, I think, and the letters of condemnation which I received from them were not few. I think that for a year after the publication of this article every association and every conference or religious body of any kind, of my race, that met, did not fail before adjourning to pass a resolution condemning me, or calling upon me to retract or modify what I had said. Many of these organizations went so far in their resolutions as to advise parents to cease sending their children to Tuskegee. One association even appointed a "missionary" whose duty it was to warn the people against sending their children to Tuskegee. This missionary had a son in the school, and I noticed that, whatever the "missionary" might have said or done with regard to others, he was careful not to take his son away from the institution. Many of the coloured papers, especially those that were the organs of religious bodies, joined in the general chorus of condemnation or demands for retraction.
What I said quickly reached nearly every Black minister in the country, and the letters of condemnation I received from them were numerous. I believe that for a year after this article was published, every association and religious body of my race that met made sure to pass a resolution condemning me, or calling on me to retract or change what I had said, before adjourning. Many of these organizations went as far as to advise parents to stop sending their children to Tuskegee. One organization even appointed a "missionary" tasked with warning people against sending their children to Tuskegee. Interestingly, this missionary had a son in the school, and I noticed that no matter what he said or did regarding others, he was careful not to take his son away from the institution. Many of the Black newspapers, especially those affiliated with religious organizations, joined in the overall chorus of condemnation or demands for retraction.
During the whole time of the excitement, and through all the criticism, I did not utter a word of explanation or retraction. I knew that I was right, and that time and the sober second thought of the people would vindicate me. It was not long before the bishops and other church leaders began to make careful investigation of the conditions of the ministry, and they found out that I was right. In fact, the oldest and most influential bishop in one branch of the Methodist Church said that my words were far too mild. Very soon public sentiment began making itself felt, in demanding a purifying of the ministry. While this is not yet complete by any means, I think I may say, without egotism, and I have been told by many of our most influential ministers, that my words had much to do with starting a demand for the placing of a higher type of men in the pulpit. I have had the satisfaction of having many who once condemned me thank me heartily for my frank words.
Throughout all the excitement and criticism, I never said a word to explain or take back what I said. I knew I was right, and I believed that time and the careful reconsideration of the people would prove me correct. It didn't take long for bishops and other church leaders to start looking into the state of the ministry, and they discovered that I was right. In fact, the oldest and most prominent bishop in one branch of the Methodist Church mentioned that my words were actually too gentle. Soon, public opinion started to push for a cleansing of the ministry. While this process is far from complete, I can say, without being self-centered, and I've been told by many influential ministers, that my words played a significant role in creating a demand for a higher caliber of individuals in the pulpit. I've been pleased to have many who once criticized me thank me sincerely for my honest words.
The change of the attitude of the Negro ministry, so far as regards myself, is so complete that at the present time I have no warmer friends among any class than I have among the clergymen. The improvement in the character and life of the Negro ministers is one of the most gratifying evidences of the progress of the race. My experience with them, as well as other events in my life, convince me that the thing to do, when one feels sure that he has said or done the right thing, and is condemned, is to stand still and keep quiet. If he is right, time will show it.
The change in the attitude of the Black ministry towards me is so complete that right now, I have no closer friends in any group than I do among the clergymen. The improvement in the character and lives of Black ministers is one of the most satisfying signs of the progress of the race. My experiences with them, along with other events in my life, convince me that when someone is confident they've done or said the right thing and faces criticism, the best course is to stay calm and keep quiet. If they are right, time will reveal the truth.
In the midst of the discussion which was going on concerning my Atlanta speech, I received the letter which I give below, from Dr. Gilman, the President of Johns Hopkins University, who had been made chairman of the judges of award in connection with the Atlanta Exposition:—
In the middle of the conversation about my Atlanta speech, I got the letter below from Dr. Gilman, the President of Johns Hopkins University, who had been appointed as the chair of the judging panel for the Atlanta Exposition:—
Johns Hopkins University, Baltimore,
Johns Hopkins University, Baltimore
President's Office, September 30, 1895.
President's Office, September 30, 1895.
Dear Mr. Washington: Would it be agreeable to you to be one of the Judges of Award in the Department of Education at Atlanta? If so, I shall be glad to place your name upon the list. A line by telegraph will be welcomed.
Dear Mr. Washington: Would you be willing to be one of the Judges of Award in the Department of Education in Atlanta? If so, I would be happy to add your name to the list. A quick message by telegraph would be appreciated.
Yours very truly,
Sincerely,
D.C. Gilman
D.C. Gilman
I think I was even more surprised to receive this invitation than I had been to receive the invitation to speak at the opening of the Exposition. It was to be a part of my duty, as one of the jurors, to pass not only upon the exhibits of the coloured schools, but also upon those of the white schools. I accepted the position, and spent a month in Atlanta in performance of the duties which it entailed. The board of jurors was a large one, containing in all of sixty members. It was about equally divided between Southern white people and Northern white people. Among them were college presidents, leading scientists and men of letters, and specialists in many subjects. When the group of jurors to which I was assigned met for organization, Mr. Thomas Nelson Page, who was one of the number, moved that I be made secretary of that division, and the motion was unanimously adopted. Nearly half of our division were Southern people. In performing my duties in the inspection of the exhibits of white schools I was in every case treated with respect, and at the close of our labours I parted from my associates with regret.
I think I was even more surprised to get this invitation than I was to receive the invite to speak at the opening of the Exposition. It was part of my role as one of the jurors to evaluate not just the exhibits from the colored schools, but also those from the white schools. I accepted the role and spent a month in Atlanta fulfilling the duties it required. The jury was quite large, with a total of sixty members, almost equally split between Southern and Northern white people. Among them were college presidents, leading scientists, renowned authors, and specialists in various fields. When my assigned group of jurors met to organize, Mr. Thomas Nelson Page, who was part of the group, proposed that I be made secretary of our division, and the motion was unanimously passed. Almost half of our division consisted of people from the South. While carrying out my responsibilities in checking the exhibits from the white schools, I was treated with respect in every case, and by the end of our work, I parted from my colleagues with a sense of regret.
I am often asked to express myself more freely than I do upon the political condition and the political future of my race. These recollections of my experience in Atlanta give me the opportunity to do so briefly. My own belief is, although I have never before said so in so many words, that the time will come when the Negro in the South will be accorded all the political rights which his ability, character, and material possessions entitle him to. I think, though, that the opportunity to freely exercise such political rights will not come in any large degree through outside or artificial forcing, but will be accorded to the Negro by the Southern white people themselves, and that they will protect him in the exercise of those rights. Just as soon as the South gets over the old feeling that it is being forced by "foreigners," or "aliens," to do something which it does not want to do, I believe that the change in the direction that I have indicated is going to begin. In fact, there are indications that it is already beginning in a slight degree.
I often get asked to share my thoughts more openly about the political situation and future of my race. These memories from my time in Atlanta give me a chance to do that briefly. Personally, I believe—though I’ve never stated it outright—that the day will come when Black people in the South will receive all the political rights they deserve based on their abilities, character, and possessions. However, I think the chance to truly exercise these rights won’t largely come from outside pressure but will be given to Black people by Southern white folks themselves, who will protect them in exercising these rights. As soon as the South moves past the old sentiment of being forced by "outsiders" or "strangers" to do things it doesn't want to, I believe this change I’m talking about will start to happen. In fact, there are signs that it’s already beginning, even if just a little.
Let me illustrate my meaning. Suppose that some months before the opening of the Atlanta Exposition there had been a general demand from the press and public platform outside the South that a Negro be given a place on the opening programme, and that a Negro be placed upon the board of jurors of award. Would any such recognition of the race have taken place? I do not think so. The Atlanta officials went as far as they did because they felt it to be a pleasure, as well as a duty, to reward what they considered merit in the Negro race. Say what we will, there is something in human nature which we cannot blot out, which makes one man, in the end, recognize and reward merit in another, regardless of colour or race.
Let me clarify my point. Imagine that a few months before the Atlanta Exposition, there was widespread demand from the media and the public, outside the South, for a Black person to be included in the opening program and for a Black person to be on the awards jury. Would any such acknowledgment of the race have happened? I don’t think so. The Atlanta officials went as far as they did because they genuinely believed it was both a pleasure and a responsibility to acknowledge what they saw as merit in the Black community. No matter how we frame it, there's something in human nature that we can't erase, which drives one person to ultimately recognize and reward the abilities of another, regardless of their skin color or background.
I believe it is the duty of the Negro—as the greater part of the race is already doing—to deport himself modestly in regard to political claims, depending upon the slow but sure influences that proceed from the possession of property, intelligence, and high character for the full recognition of his political rights. I think that the according of the full exercise of political rights is going to be a matter of natural, slow growth, not an over-night, gourd-vine affair. I do not believe that the Negro should cease voting, for a man cannot learn the exercise of self-government by ceasing to vote, any more than a boy can learn to swim by keeping out of the water, but I do believe that in his voting he should more and more be influenced by those of intelligence and character who are his next-door neighbours.
I believe it’s the responsibility of Black people—like most of the community is already doing—to conduct themselves modestly when it comes to political claims, relying on the gradual but steady influence that comes from owning property, having knowledge, and being of good character for the full acknowledgment of their political rights. I think that achieving full political rights will be a natural, slow process, not something that happens overnight. I don’t believe that Black people should stop voting, as a person can’t learn self-governance by not voting, just like a boy can’t learn to swim by staying out of the water. However, I do believe that in their voting, they should increasingly be guided by the individuals of intelligence and good character who live nearby.
I know coloured men who, through the encouragement, help, and advice of Southern white people, have accumulated thousands of dollars' worth of property, but who, at the same time, would never think of going to those same persons for advice concerning the casting of their ballots. This, it seems to me, is unwise and unreasonable, and should cease. In saying this I do not mean that the Negro should truckle, or not vote from principle, for the instant he ceases to vote from principle he loses the confidence and respect of the Southern white man even.
I know Black men who, thanks to the support, help, and advice of Southern white people, have built up thousands of dollars in property, yet they would never think of going to those same individuals for guidance on how to vote. To me, this is unwise and unreasonable, and it should stop. When I say this, I don’t mean that Black people should compromise or not vote based on their beliefs, because the moment they stop voting on principle, they lose the confidence and respect of Southern white people as well.
I do not believe that any state should make a law that permits an ignorant and poverty-stricken white man to vote, and prevents a black man in the same condition from voting. Such a law is not only unjust, but it will react, as all unjust laws do, in time; for the effect of such a law is to encourage the Negro to secure education and property, and at the same time it encourages the white man to remain in ignorance and poverty. I believe that in time, through the operation of intelligence and friendly race relations, all cheating at the ballot-box in the South will cease. It will become apparent that the white man who begins by cheating a Negro out of his ballot soon learns to cheat a white man out of his, and that the man who does this ends his career of dishonesty by the theft of property or by some equally serious crime. In my opinion, the time will come when the South will encourage all of its citizens to vote. It will see that it pays better, from every standpoint, to have healthy, vigorous life than to have that political stagnation which always results when one-half of the population has no share and no interest in the Government.
I don’t believe any state should make a law that allows an ignorant, poor white man to vote while preventing a black man in the same situation from voting. Such a law is not only unfair, but it will eventually backfire, as all unfair laws do. The effect of that kind of law is to push black people to seek education and financial stability, while at the same time encouraging white people to stay in ignorance and poverty. I believe that over time, through education and positive race relations, all voter fraud in the South will come to an end. It will become clear that a white person who starts by cheating a black person out of their vote will soon learn to cheat a fellow white person out of theirs, and that the person doing this will ultimately face a career of dishonesty that could lead to theft or other serious crimes. In my view, one day the South will encourage all its citizens to vote. It will realize that it's better for everyone to have a healthy, active society rather than the political stagnation that always follows when half the population has no stake in their government.
As a rule, I believe in universal, free suffrage, but I believe that in the South we are confronted with peculiar conditions that justify the protection of the ballot in many of the states, for a while at least, either by an education test, a property test, or by both combined; but whatever tests are required, they should be made to apply with equal and exact justice to both races.
As a general principle, I support universal, free voting rights, but I think that in the South we face unique circumstances that warrant protecting the ballot in many states, at least for now, through either an education requirement, a property requirement, or a combination of both; however, whatever requirements are put in place should be applied equally and fairly to both races.
Chapter XV. The Secret Of Success In Public Speaking
As to how my address at Atlanta was received by the audience in the Exposition building, I think I prefer to let Mr. James Creelman, the noted war correspondent, tell. Mr. Creelman was present, and telegraphed the following account to the New York World:—
As for how my speech in Atlanta was received by the audience in the Exposition building, I think I'd rather have Mr. James Creelman, the renowned war correspondent, share it. Mr. Creelman was there and sent the following account to the New York World:—
Atlanta, September 18.
Atlanta, September 18th.
While President Cleveland was waiting at Gray Gables to-day, to send the electric spark that started the machinery of the Atlanta Exposition, a Negro Moses stood before a great audience of white people and delivered an oration that marks a new epoch in the history of the South; and a body of Negro troops marched in a procession with the citizen soldiery of Georgia and Louisiana. The whole city is thrilling to-night with a realization of the extraordinary significance of these two unprecedented events. Nothing has happened since Henry Grady's immortal speech before the New England society in New York that indicates so profoundly the spirit of the New South, except, perhaps, the opening of the Exposition itself.
While President Cleveland was at Gray Gables today, preparing to send the electric signal that would kick off the Atlanta Exposition, a Black leader stood before a large crowd of white people and gave a speech that signifies a new era in the South's history; a group of Black soldiers marched in a parade alongside the citizen soldiers of Georgia and Louisiana. The entire city is buzzing tonight with an understanding of the incredible importance of these two historic events. Nothing has occurred since Henry Grady's famous speech in front of the New England society in New York that so strongly captures the essence of the New South, except maybe the opening of the Exposition itself.
When Professor Booker T. Washington, Principal of an industrial school for coloured people in Tuskegee, Ala. stood on the platform of the Auditorium, with the sun shining over the heads of his auditors into his eyes, and with his whole face lit up with the fire of prophecy, Clark Howell, the successor of Henry Grady, said to me, "That man's speech is the beginning of a moral revolution in America."
When Professor Booker T. Washington, the Principal of an industrial school for Black people in Tuskegee, Alabama, stood on the stage of the Auditorium, with the sun shining in his eyes and his face glowing with passion, Clark Howell, who took over for Henry Grady, said to me, "That man's speech is the start of a moral revolution in America."
It is the first time that a Negro has made a speech in the South on any important occasion before an audience composed of white men and women. It electrified the audience, and the response was as if it had come from the throat of a whirlwind.
It's the first time a Black person has given a speech in the South on any important occasion in front of an audience of white men and women. It energized the crowd, and the reaction was like a roar from a whirlwind.
Mrs. Thompson had hardly taken her seat when all eyes were turned on a tall tawny Negro sitting in the front row of the platform. It was Professor Booker T. Washington, President of the Tuskegee (Alabama) Normal and Industrial Institute, who must rank from this time forth as the foremost man of his race in America. Gilmore's Band played the "Star-Spangled Banner," and the audience cheered. The tune changed to "Dixie" and the audience roared with shrill "hi-yis." Again the music changed, this time to "Yankee Doodle," and the clamour lessened.
Mrs. Thompson had barely taken her seat when everyone turned their attention to a tall, light-brown-skinned Black man sitting in the front row of the stage. It was Professor Booker T. Washington, President of the Tuskegee (Alabama) Normal and Industrial Institute, who would now be recognized as the leading figure of his race in America. Gilmore's Band played the "Star-Spangled Banner," and the audience cheered. The music switched to "Dixie," and the crowd erupted with loud "hi-yis." The music changed again, this time to "Yankee Doodle," and the noise gradually died down.
All this time the eyes of the thousands present looked straight at the Negro orator. A strange thing was to happen. A black man was to speak for his people, with none to interrupt him. As Professor Washington strode to the edge of the stage, the low, descending sun shot fiery rays through the windows into his face. A great shout greeted him. He turned his head to avoid the blinding light, and moved about the platform for relief. Then he turned his wonderful countenance to the sun without a blink of the eyelids, and began to talk.
All this time, the eyes of the thousands present were focused directly on the Black speaker. Something unusual was about to happen. A Black man would speak for his people without anyone interrupting him. As Professor Washington walked to the front of the stage, the setting sun shot bright rays through the windows into his face. A huge cheer welcomed him. He turned his head to escape the blinding light and moved around the platform for some relief. Then he faced the sun without blinking and started to speak.
There was a remarkable figure; tall, bony, straight as a Sioux chief, high forehead, straight nose, heavy jaws, and strong, determined mouth, with big white teeth, piercing eyes, and a commanding manner. The sinews stood out on his bronzed neck, and his muscular right arm swung high in the air, with a lead-pencil grasped in the clinched brown fist. His big feet were planted squarely, with the heels together and the toes turned out. His voice range out clear and true, and he paused impressively as he made each point. Within ten minutes the multitude was in an uproar of enthusiasm—handkerchiefs were waved, canes were flourished, hats were tossed in the air. The fairest women of Georgia stood up and cheered. It was as if the orator had bewitched them.
There was an impressive figure: tall, thin, upright like a Sioux chief, with a high forehead, straight nose, strong jaws, and a firm, determined mouth featuring big white teeth, piercing eyes, and an authoritative presence. The muscles stood out on his sun-tanned neck, and his muscular right arm was raised high in the air, holding a pencil tightly in his clenched brown fist. His large feet were firmly planted, heels together and toes pointed out. His voice rang out clearly and distinctly, pausing dramatically as he made each point. Within ten minutes, the crowd was in an uproar of excitement—handkerchiefs were waved, canes were brandished, and hats were tossed into the air. The most beautiful women of Georgia stood up and cheered. It was as if the speaker had enchanted them.
And when he held his dusky hand high above his head, with the fingers stretched wide apart, and said to the white people of the South on behalf of his race, "In all things that are purely social we can be as separate as the fingers, yet one as the hand in all things essential to mutual progress," the great wave of sound dashed itself against the walls, and the whole audience was on its feet in a delirium of applause, and I thought at that moment of the night when Henry Grady stood among the curling wreaths of tobacco-smoke in Delmonico's banquet-hall and said, "I am a Cavalier among Roundheads."
And when he raised his dark hand high above his head, fingers spread wide apart, and spoke to the white people of the South on behalf of his race, "In all things that are purely social, we can be as separate as the fingers, yet united as the hand in everything essential for our mutual progress," a huge wave of sound crashed against the walls, and the entire audience jumped to their feet in a frenzy of applause. I couldn’t help but think of that night when Henry Grady stood among the swirling clouds of tobacco smoke in Delmonico's banquet hall and declared, "I am a Cavalier among Roundheads."
I have heard the great orators of many countries, but not even Gladstone himself could have pleased a cause with most consummate power than did this angular Negro, standing in a nimbus of sunshine, surrounded by the men who once fought to keep his race in bondage. The roar might swell ever so high, but the expression of his earnest face never changed.
I have listened to the amazing speakers from many countries, but not even Gladstone himself could have impressed a cause with more skill than this tall Black man, standing in a beam of sunlight, surrounded by the men who once fought to keep his race enslaved. The crowd could roar as loud as they wanted, but the look on his serious face never wavered.
A ragged, ebony giant, squatted on the floor in one of the aisles, watched the orator with burning eyes and tremulous face until the supreme burst of applause came, and then the tears ran down his face. Most of the Negroes in the audience were crying, perhaps without knowing just why.
A scruffy, black giant sat on the floor in one of the aisles, watching the speaker with intense eyes and a shaky face until the loud applause erupted, and then tears streamed down his face. Most of the Black audience members were crying, maybe not even knowing why.
At the close of the speech Governor Bullock rushed across the stage and seized the orator's hand. Another shout greeted this demonstration, and for a few minutes the two men stood facing each other, hand in hand.
At the end of the speech, Governor Bullock dashed across the stage and grabbed the orator's hand. Another cheer welcomed this gesture, and for a few minutes, the two men stood facing each other, holding hands.
So far as I could spare the time from the immediate work at Tuskegee, after my Atlanta address, I accepted some of the invitations to speak in public which came to me, especially those that would take me into territory where I thought it would pay to plead the cause of my race, but I always did this with the understanding that I was to be free to talk about my life-work and the needs of my people. I also had it understood that I was not to speak in the capacity of a professional lecturer, or for mere commercial gain.
As much as I could fit it into my schedule while working at Tuskegee, after my Atlanta speech, I took some invitations to speak publicly, particularly those that brought me to places where I believed it would be beneficial to advocate for my race. However, I made it clear that I wanted to talk about my life’s work and the needs of my community. I also made sure it was understood that I wasn’t there as a professional lecturer or for just commercial profit.
In my efforts on the public platform I never have been able to understand why people come to hear me speak. This question I never can rid myself of. Time and time again, as I have stood in the street in front of a building and have seen men and women passing in large numbers into the audience room where I was to speak, I have felt ashamed that I should be the cause of people—as it seemed to me—wasting a valuable hour of their time. Some years ago I was to deliver an address before a literary society in Madison, Wis. An hour before the time set for me to speak, a fierce snow-storm began, and continued for several hours. I made up my mind that there would be no audience, and that I should not have to speak, but, as a matter of duty, I went to the church, and found it packed with people. The surprise gave me a shock that I did not recover from during the whole evening.
In my efforts on the public platform, I’ve never understood why people come to hear me speak. This question always hangs over me. Time after time, as I’ve stood in front of a building and watched men and women streaming into the audience room where I was about to speak, I’ve felt ashamed that I could be the reason people—at least in my mind—were wasting a valuable hour of their time. Several years ago, I was set to give a speech at a literary society in Madison, Wis. An hour before I was supposed to speak, a fierce snowstorm hit and lasted for several hours. I figured there would be no audience and that I wouldn’t have to speak, but out of a sense of duty, I went to the church and found it packed with people. The surprise was such a shock that I didn’t recover from it the entire evening.
People often ask me if I feel nervous before speaking, or else they suggest that, since I speak often, they suppose that I get used to it. In answer to this question I have to say that I always suffer intensely from nervousness before speaking. More than once, just before I was to make an important address, this nervous strain has been so great that I have resolved never again to speak in public. I not only feel nervous before speaking, but after I have finished I usually feel a sense of regret, because it seems to me as if I had left out of my address the main thing and the best thing that I had meant to say.
People often ask me if I get nervous before speaking, or they assume that since I speak often, I must have gotten used to it. In response to this question, I have to say that I always feel intense nervousness before speaking. More than once, right before I was set to give an important speech, the nervous pressure has been so overwhelming that I’ve decided never to speak in public again. I not only feel anxious before I talk, but after I finish, I usually feel a sense of regret because it seems like I’ve left out the most important and best points I meant to make.
There is a great compensation, though, for this preliminary nervous suffering, that comes to me after I have been speaking for about ten minutes, and have come to feel that I have really mastered my audience, and that we have gotten into full and complete sympathy with each other. It seems to me that there is rarely such a combination of mental and physical delight in any effort as that which comes to a public speaker when he feels that he has a great audience completely within his control. There is a thread of sympathy and oneness that connects a public speaker with his audience, that is just as strong as though it was something tangible and visible. If in an audience of a thousand people there is one person who is not in sympathy with my views, or is inclined to be doubtful, cold, or critical, I can pick him out. When I have found him I usually go straight at him, and it is a great satisfaction to watch the process of his thawing out. I find that the most effective medicine for such individuals is administered at first in the form of a story, although I never tell an anecdote simply for the sake of telling one. That kind of thing, I think, is empty and hollow, and an audience soon finds it out.
There is a great payoff, though, for this initial nervousness I experience. After about ten minutes of speaking, I start to feel that I really have my audience engaged, and we are in sync with each other. It seems to me that there’s rarely such a combination of mental and physical pleasure in any effort as when a public speaker feels a strong connection with a large audience. There’s a thread of empathy and unity that links a speaker to the audience, as strong as if it were something you could see and touch. If I'm in a crowd of a thousand people and there's one person who disagrees with me or seems skeptical, cold, or critical, I can spot them. Once I identify them, I usually address them directly, and it's very satisfying to see them open up. I’ve found that the best way to reach such individuals is to start with a story, even though I never share an anecdote just for the sake of it. That approach feels empty and superficial, and the audience picks up on it quickly.
I believe that one always does himself and his audience an injustice when he speaks merely for the sake of speaking. I do not believe that one should speak unless, deep down in his heart, he feels convinced that he has a message to deliver. When one feels, from the bottom of his feet to the top of his head, that he has something to say that is going to help some individual or some cause, then let him say it; and in delivering his message I do not believe that many of the artificial rules of elocution can, under such circumstances, help him very much. Although there are certain things, such as pauses, breathing, and pitch of voice, that are very important, none of these can take the place of soul in an address. When I have an address to deliver, I like to forget all about the rules for the proper use of the English language, and all about rhetoric and that sort of thing, and I like to make the audience forget all about these things, too.
I think it’s unfair to yourself and your audience to talk just for the sake of talking. You really shouldn’t speak unless you genuinely feel you have something important to share. When you truly believe, from head to toe, that you have something worthwhile to say that will benefit someone or some cause, then go ahead and say it; in those moments, I don’t think many of the formal rules of speaking will be very helpful. While things like pauses, breathing, and tone of voice are definitely important, none of these can replace the passion in a speech. When I’m about to give a talk, I prefer to ignore all the rules about proper English and rhetoric, and I want the audience to forget about all that, too.
Nothing tends to throw me off my balance so quickly, when I am speaking, as to have some one leave the room. To prevent this, I make up my mind, as a rule, that I will try to make my address so interesting, will try to state so many interesting facts one after another, that no one can leave. The average audience, I have come to believe, wants facts rather than generalities or sermonizing. Most people, I think, are able to draw proper conclusions if they are given the facts in an interesting form on which to base them.
Nothing throws me off my game faster when I'm speaking than someone leaving the room. To prevent this, I usually decide to make my talk so engaging and to share so many interesting facts one after another that no one wants to walk out. I've come to believe that the average audience prefers facts over vague statements or preaching. I think most people can make the right conclusions if they are presented with the facts in an engaging way to base them on.
As to the kind of audience that I like best to talk to, I would put at the top of the list an organization of strong, wide-awake, business men, such, for example, as is found in Boston, New York, Chicago, and Buffalo. I have found no other audience so quick to see a point, and so responsive. Within the last few years I have had the privilege of speaking before most of the leading organizations of this kind in the large cities of the United States. The best time to get hold of an organization of business men is after a good dinner, although I think that one of the worst instruments of torture that was ever invented is the custom which makes it necessary for a speaker to sit through a fourteen-course dinner, every minute of the time feeling sure that his speech is going to prove a dismal failure and disappointment.
When it comes to the type of audience I prefer to speak to, I’d rank at the top a group of sharp, engaged businesspeople, like those you find in cities such as Boston, New York, Chicago, and Buffalo. I haven’t encountered any other audience that is so quick to understand a point and so reactive. In recent years, I’ve had the opportunity to speak to many of the leading organizations of this kind in major cities across the United States. The best time to connect with a group of businesspeople is after a nice dinner, although I think one of the worst ideas ever is the custom that forces a speaker to sit through a fourteen-course meal, constantly worrying that their speech is going to turn out to be a total flop.
I rarely take part in one of these long dinners that I do not wish that I could put myself back in the little cabin where I was a slave boy, and again go through the experience there—one that I shall never forget—of getting molasses to eat once a week from the "big house." Our usual diet on the plantation was corn bread and pork, but on Sunday morning my mother was permitted to bring down a little molasses from the "big house" for her three children, and when it was received how I did wish that every day was Sunday! I would get my tin plate and hold it up for the sweet morsel, but I would always shut my eyes while the molasses was being poured out into the plate, with the hope that when I opened them I would be surprised to see how much I had got. When I opened my eyes I would tip the plate in one direction and another, so as to make the molasses spread all over it, in the full belief that there would be more of it and that it would last longer if spread out in this way. So strong are my childish impressions of those Sunday morning feasts that it would be pretty hard for any one to convince me that there is not more molasses on a plate when it is spread all over the plate than when it occupies a little corner—if there is a corner in a plate. At any rate, I have never believed in "cornering" syrup. My share of the syrup was usually about two tablespoonfuls, and those two spoonfuls of molasses were much more enjoyable to me than is a fourteen-course dinner after which I am to speak.
I rarely join one of these long dinners without wishing I could go back to the little cabin where I was a slave boy and relive the unforgettable experience of getting molasses to eat once a week from the "big house." Our regular diet on the plantation was corn bread and pork, but on Sunday mornings, my mother was allowed to bring a little molasses from the "big house" for her three kids. When she got it, I wished every day could be Sunday! I'd grab my tin plate and hold it up for the sweet treat, but I always closed my eyes while the molasses was poured, hoping that when I opened them, I would be surprised by how much I had. When I did open my eyes, I’d tilt the plate this way and that, convinced that spreading out the molasses would make it seem like I had more and that it would last longer. My childhood memories of those Sunday morning feasts are so strong that it would be tough for anyone to convince me that there’s not more molasses on a plate when it’s spread out than when it’s in a small corner—if there is even a corner at all. At any rate, I've never believed in "cornering" syrup. My portion of syrup was usually about two tablespoons, and those two spoonfuls of molasses were way more enjoyable to me than a fourteen-course dinner that I have to speak after.
Next to a company of business men, I prefer to speak to an audience of Southern people, of either race, together or taken separately. Their enthusiasm and responsiveness are a constant delight. The "amens" and "dat's de truf" that come spontaneously from the coloured individuals are calculated to spur any speaker on to his best efforts. I think that next in order of preference I would place a college audience. It has been my privilege to deliver addresses at many of our leading colleges including Harvard, Yale, Williams, Amherst, Fisk University, the University of Pennsylvania, Wellesley, the University of Michigan, Trinity College in North Carolina, and many others.
Next to a group of business people, I prefer speaking to an audience of Southern folks, of either race, together or separately. Their enthusiasm and engagement are always a joy. The "amens" and "that’s the truth" that come naturally from the Black audience members are sure to motivate any speaker to give their best. I think I would place a college audience next in my preference. I've had the privilege of giving talks at many of our top colleges, including Harvard, Yale, Williams, Amherst, Fisk University, the University of Pennsylvania, Wellesley, the University of Michigan, Trinity College in North Carolina, and many others.
It has been a matter of deep interest to me to note the number of people who have come to shake hands with me after an address, who say that this is the first time they have ever called a Negro "Mister."
It has really interested me to see how many people have come up to shake my hand after a speech and said that this is the first time they have ever called a Black man "Mister."
When speaking directly in the interests of the Tuskegee Institute, I usually arrange, some time in advance, a series of meetings in important centres. This takes me before churches, Sunday-schools, Christian Endeavour Societies, and men's and women's clubs. When doing this I sometimes speak before as many as four organizations in a single day.
When I talk directly about the Tuskegee Institute, I usually plan a series of meetings in key locations well in advance. This allows me to address churches, Sunday schools, Christian Endeavour Societies, and men's and women's clubs. Sometimes, I even speak to as many as four different organizations in a single day.
Three years ago, at the suggestion of Mr. Morris K. Jessup, of New York, and Dr. J.L.M. Curry, the general agent of the fund, the trustees of the John F. Slater Fund voted a sum of money to be used in paying the expenses of Mrs. Washington and myself while holding a series of meetings among the coloured people in the large centres of Negro population, especially in the large cities of the ex-slaveholding states. Each year during the last three years we have devoted some weeks to this work. The plan that we have followed has been for me to speak in the morning to the ministers, teachers, and professional men. In the afternoon Mrs. Washington would speak to the women alone, and in the evening I spoke to a large mass-meeting. In almost every case the meetings have been attended not only by the coloured people in large numbers, but by the white people. In Chattanooga, Tenn., for example, there was present at the mass-meeting an audience of not less than three thousand persons, and I was informed that eight hundred of these were white. I have done no work that I really enjoyed more than this, or that I think has accomplished more good.
Three years ago, following the suggestion of Mr. Morris K. Jessup from New York, and Dr. J.L.M. Curry, the general agent of the fund, the trustees of the John F. Slater Fund approved a budget to cover the expenses for Mrs. Washington and me while we held a series of meetings among the Black community in major areas of Black population, especially in the big cities of the former slave-holding states. Each year for the last three years, we’ve spent several weeks doing this work. The plan we've followed involves me speaking in the morning to ministers, teachers, and professionals. In the afternoon, Mrs. Washington addresses the women, and in the evening, I speak at a large mass meeting. Almost every time, these meetings have been attended not only by a large number of Black people but also by white people. For instance, in Chattanooga, Tennessee, there were at least three thousand attendees at the mass meeting, and I was told that eight hundred of them were white. I’ve never done work that I’ve enjoyed more or that I believe has done more good.
These meetings have given Mrs. Washington and myself an opportunity to get first-hand, accurate information as to the real condition of the race, by seeing the people in their homes, their churches, their Sunday-schools, and their places of work, as well as in the prisons and dens of crime. These meetings also gave us an opportunity to see the relations that exist between the races. I never feel so hopeful about the race as I do after being engaged in a series of these meetings. I know that on such occasions there is much that comes to the surface that is superficial and deceptive, but I have had experience enough not to be deceived by mere signs and fleeting enthusiasms. I have taken pains to go to the bottom of things and get facts, in a cold, business-like manner.
These meetings have given Mrs. Washington and me a chance to obtain direct, accurate information about the real situation of the community by seeing people in their homes, churches, Sunday schools, and workplaces, as well as in prisons and crime-ridden areas. These meetings also allowed us to observe the relationships between different racial groups. I never feel as hopeful about the community as I do after participating in a series of these meetings. I know that on those occasions, a lot of superficial and misleading issues come to light, but I have enough experience not to be fooled by mere appearances and temporary excitement. I have made an effort to dig deep and uncover the facts in a straightforward, business-like way.
I have seen the statement made lately, by one who claims to know what he is talking about, that, taking the whole Negro race into account, ninety per cent of the Negro women are not virtuous. There never was a baser falsehood uttered concerning a race, or a statement made that was less capable of being proved by actual facts.
I recently heard someone who claims to be knowledgeable say that, when considering the entire Black community, ninety percent of Black women lack virtue. There has never been a more despicable falsehood said about a race, nor has there been a claim that could be less supported by actual evidence.
No one can come into contact with the race for twenty years, as I have done in the heart of the South, without being convinced that the race is constantly making slow but sure progress materially, educationally, and morally. One might take up the life of the worst element in New York City, for example, and prove almost anything he wanted to prove concerning the white man, but all will agree that this is not a fair test.
No one can engage with the race for twenty years, like I have in the heart of the South, without being convinced that the race is steadily making slow but sure progress in terms of material well-being, education, and morality. One could examine the lives of the most troubled individuals in New York City, for instance, and support almost any argument they wanted about white people, but everyone would agree that this isn't a fair assessment.
Early in the year 1897 I received a letter inviting me to deliver an address at the dedication of the Robert Gould Shaw monument in Boston. I accepted the invitation. It is not necessary for me, I am sure, to explain who Robert Gould Shaw was, and what he did. The monument to his memory stands near the head of the Boston Common, facing the State House. It is counted to be the most perfect piece of art of the kind to be found in the country.
Early in 1897, I got a letter inviting me to give a speech at the dedication of the Robert Gould Shaw monument in Boston. I accepted the invitation. I’m sure I don’t need to explain who Robert Gould Shaw was and what he accomplished. The monument in his honor is located near the head of Boston Common, facing the State House. It's considered the finest piece of art of its kind in the country.
The exercises connected with the dedication were held in Music Hall, in Boston, and the great hall was packed from top to bottom with one of the most distinguished audiences that ever assembled in the city. Among those present were more persons representing the famous old anti-slavery element that it is likely will ever be brought together in the country again. The late Hon. Roger Wolcott, then Governor of Massachusetts, was the presiding officer, and on the platform with him were many other officials and hundreds of distinguished men. A report of the meeting which appeared in the Boston Transcript will describe it better than any words of mine could do:—
The events related to the dedication took place in Music Hall, in Boston, and the venue was filled from top to bottom with one of the most notable audiences ever gathered in the city. Among those present were more representatives of the renowned anti-slavery movement than are likely to be assembled in the country again. The late Hon. Roger Wolcott, who was the Governor of Massachusetts at the time, served as the presiding officer, and on stage with him were many other officials and hundreds of distinguished individuals. A report of the meeting that appeared in the Boston Transcript will describe it better than I ever could:—
The core and kernel of yesterday's great noon meeting, in honour of the Brotherhood of Man, in Music Hall, was the superb address of the Negro President of Tuskegee. "Booker T. Washington received his Harvard A.M. last June, the first of his race," said Governor Wolcott, "to receive an honorary degree from the oldest university in the land, and this for the wise leadership of his people." When Mr. Washington rose in the flag-filled, enthusiasm-warmed, patriotic, and glowing atmosphere of Music Hall, people felt keenly that here was the civic justification of the old abolition spirit of Massachusetts; in his person the proof of her ancient and indomitable faith; in his strong thought and rich oratory, the crown and glory of the old war days of suffering and strife. The scene was full of historic beauty and deep significance. "Cold" Boston was alive with the fire that is always hot in her heart for righteousness and truth. Rows and rows of people who are seldom seen at any public function, whole families of those who are certain to be out of town on a holiday, crowded the place to overflowing. The city was at her birthright fête in the persons of hundreds of her best citizens, men and women whose names and lives stand for the virtues that make for honourable civic pride.
The heart of yesterday's big noon meeting, honoring the Brotherhood of Man at Music Hall, was the outstanding speech by the Black President of Tuskegee. "Booker T. Washington received his Harvard A.M. last June, the first of his race," said Governor Wolcott, "to receive an honorary degree from the oldest university in the country, and this for his wise leadership of his people." When Mr. Washington stood up in the flag-filled, enthusiastic, patriotic, and vibrant atmosphere of Music Hall, people strongly felt that he represented the civic spirit of Massachusetts's old abolition movement; in him, they saw proof of its historic and unwavering faith; in his powerful ideas and eloquent speech, the legacy and honor of the old war days filled with struggle and sacrifice. The scene was rich in historical beauty and deep meaning. "Cold" Boston was alive with the passion that always burns in its heart for righteousness and truth. Rows and rows of people who usually don’t attend public events, entire families who would typically be away on a holiday, filled the place to capacity. The city was celebrating its heritage through the presence of hundreds of its finest citizens, men and women whose names and lives embody the virtues that contribute to honorable civic pride.
Battle-music had filled the air. Ovation after ovation, applause warm and prolonged, had greeted the officers and friends of Colonel Shaw, the sculptor, St. Gaudens, the memorial Committee, the Governor and his staff, and the Negro soldiers of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts as they came upon the platform or entered the hall. Colonel Henry Lee, of Governor Andrew's old staff, had made a noble, simple presentation speech for the committee, paying tribute to Mr. John M. Forbes, in whose stead he served. Governor Wolcott had made his short, memorable speech, saying, "Fort Wagner marked an epoch in the history of a race, and called it into manhood." Mayor Quincy had received the monument for the city of Boston. The story of Colonel Shaw and his black regiment had been told in gallant words, and then, after the singing of
Battle music filled the air. Cheers after cheers, warm and long-lasting applause, welcomed the officers and friends of Colonel Shaw, the sculptor St. Gaudens, the memorial committee, the Governor and his staff, and the Black soldiers of the Fifty-fourth Massachusetts as they stepped onto the platform or entered the hall. Colonel Henry Lee, from Governor Andrew's former staff, gave a noble and straightforward presentation speech for the committee, honoring Mr. John M. Forbes, for whom he was standing in. Governor Wolcott delivered his brief but memorable speech, stating, "Fort Wagner marked a turning point in the history of a race and called it into manhood." Mayor Quincy accepted the monument on behalf of the city of Boston. The story of Colonel Shaw and his Black regiment was recounted with brave words, and then, after the singing of
Mine eyes have seen the glory Of the coming of the Lord,
I have witnessed the glory Of the Lord's arrival,
Booker Washington arose. It was, of course, just the moment for him. The multitude, shaken out of its usual symphony-concert calm, quivered with an excitement that was not suppressed. A dozen times it had sprung to its feet to cheer and wave and hurrah, as one person. When this man of culture and voice and power, as well as a dark skin, began, and uttered the names of Stearns and of Andrew, feeling began to mount. You could see tears glisten in the eyes of soldiers and civilians. When the orator turned to the coloured soldiers on the platform, to the colour-bearer of Fort Wagner, who smilingly bore still the flag he had never lowered even when wounded, and said, "To you, to the scarred and scattered remnants of the Fifty-fourth, who, with empty sleeve and wanting leg, have honoured this occasion with your presence, to you, your commander is not dead. Though Boston erected no monument and history recorded no story, in you and in the loyal race which you represent, Robert Gould Shaw would have a monument which time could not wear away," then came the climax of the emotion of the day and the hour. It was Roger Wolcott, as well as the Governor of Massachusetts, the individual representative of the people's sympathy as well as the chief magistrate, who had sprung first to his feet and cried, "Three cheers to Booker T. Washington!"
Booker Washington stood up. It was clearly his moment. The crowd, jolted from its usual concert-like calm, buzzed with a raw excitement that couldn't be contained. A dozen times, they jumped to their feet to cheer and wave, united as one. When this cultured man with a powerful voice and dark skin began speaking and mentioned the names Stearns and Andrew, the emotions started to rise. You could see tears shining in the eyes of both soldiers and civilians. When the speaker turned to the Black soldiers on the platform, specifically to the color-bearer from Fort Wagner, who proudly held the flag he had never lowered even when injured, and said, "To you, the scarred and scattered remnants of the Fifty-fourth, who, with missing sleeves and legs, have honored this occasion with your presence, to you, your commander is not dead. Even though Boston built no monument and history wrote no story, in you and in the loyal race you represent, Robert Gould Shaw would have a monument that time could never erode," that was the peak of the day's emotions. It was Roger Wolcott, along with the Governor of Massachusetts, the representative of the people's sympathy and chief magistrate, who was the first to leap to his feet and shout, "Three cheers for Booker T. Washington!"
Among those on the platform was Sergeant William H. Carney, of New Bedford, Mass., the brave coloured officer who was the colour-bearer at Fort Wagner and held the American flag. In spite of the fact that a large part of his regiment was killed, he escaped, and exclaimed, after the battle was over, "The old flag never touched the ground."
Among those on the platform was Sergeant William H. Carney from New Bedford, Mass., the courageous Black officer who carried the American flag at Fort Wagner. Despite many members of his regiment being killed, he survived and declared after the battle was over, "The old flag never touched the ground."
This flag Sergeant Carney held in his hands as he sat on the platform, and when I turned to address the survivors of the coloured regiment who were present, and referred to Sergeant Carney, he rose, as if by instinct, and raised the flag. It has been my privilege to witness a good many satisfactory and rather sensational demonstrations in connection with some of my public addresses, but in dramatic effect I have never seen or experienced anything which equalled this. For a number of minutes the audience seemed to entirely lose control of itself.
This flag was held by Sergeant Carney as he sat on the platform, and when I turned to speak to the survivors of the colored regiment who were there and mentioned Sergeant Carney, he stood up, almost instinctively, and raised the flag. I've had the privilege of seeing many impressive and quite sensational reactions during some of my public speeches, but in terms of dramatic impact, I've never seen or felt anything that matched this. For several minutes, the audience seemed to completely lose control.
In the general rejoicing throughout the country which followed the close of the Spanish-American war, peace celebrations were arranged in several of the large cities. I was asked by President William R. Harper, of the University of Chicago, who was chairman of the committee of invitations for the celebration to be held in the city of Chicago, to deliver one of the addresses at the celebration there. I accepted the invitation, and delivered two addresses there during the Jubilee week. The first of these, and the principal one, was given in the Auditorium, on the evening of Sunday, October 16. This was the largest audience that I have ever addressed, in any part of the country; and besides speaking in the main Auditorium, I also addressed, that same evening, two overflow audiences in other parts of the city.
After the Spanish-American War ended, there was widespread celebration across the country. In several major cities, peace celebrations were organized. President William R. Harper of the University of Chicago, who was in charge of sending out invitations for the Chicago celebration, asked me to give one of the speeches. I accepted and delivered two speeches during Jubilee week. The main one took place in the Auditorium on the evening of Sunday, October 16. It was the largest audience I’ve ever spoken to anywhere in the country. In addition to speaking in the main Auditorium, I also addressed two overflow audiences that same evening in other parts of the city.
It was said that there were sixteen thousand persons in the Auditorium, and it seemed to me as if there were as many more on the outside trying to get in. It was impossible for any one to get near the entrance without the aid of a policeman. President William McKinley attended this meeting, as did also the members of his Cabinet, many foreign ministers, and a large number of army and navy officers, many of whom had distinguished themselves in the war which had just closed. The speakers, besides myself, on Sunday evening, were Rabbi Emil G. Hirsch, Father Thomas P. Hodnett, and Dr. John H. Barrows.
There were about sixteen thousand people in the Auditorium, and it felt like just as many were outside trying to get in. No one could approach the entrance without help from a police officer. President William McKinley was at this meeting, along with his Cabinet members, several foreign ministers, and a sizable number of army and navy officers, many of whom had made a name for themselves in the recently finished war. The speakers, besides me, on Sunday evening included Rabbi Emil G. Hirsch, Father Thomas P. Hodnett, and Dr. John H. Barrows.
The Chicago Times-Herald, in describing the meeting, said of my address:—
The Chicago Times-Herald, while discussing the meeting, commented on my speech:—
He pictured the Negro choosing slavery rather than extinction; recalled Crispus Attucks shedding his blood at the beginning of the American Revolution, that white Americans might be free, while black Americans remained in slavery; rehearsed the conduct of the Negroes with Jackson at New Orleans; drew a vivid and pathetic picture of the Southern slaves protecting and supporting the families of their masters while the latter were fighting to perpetuate black slavery; recounted the bravery of coloured troops at Port Hudson and Forts Wagner and Pillow, and praised the heroism of the black regiments that stormed El Caney and Santiago to give freedom to the enslaved people of Cuba, forgetting, for the time being, the unjust discrimination that law and custom make against them in their own country.
He imagined Black people choosing slavery over dying out; remembered Crispus Attucks giving his life at the start of the American Revolution so that white Americans could be free while Black Americans stayed enslaved; thought about how Black people fought alongside Jackson at New Orleans; painted a vivid and touching picture of Southern slaves who protected and supported their masters' families while those masters fought to keep Black people enslaved; recalled the courage of Black soldiers at Port Hudson and Forts Wagner and Pillow, and celebrated the bravery of the Black regiments that charged El Caney and Santiago to free the enslaved people of Cuba, temporarily forgetting the unfair discrimination that laws and societal norms imposed on them in their own country.
In all of these things, the speaker declared, his race had chosen the better part. And then he made his eloquent appeal to the consciences of the white Americans: "When you have gotten the full story of the heroic conduct of the Negro in the Spanish-American war, have heard it from the lips of Northern soldier and Southern soldier, from ex-abolitionist and ex-masters, then decide within yourselves whether a race that is thus willing to die for its country should not be given the highest opportunity to live for its country."
In all of this, the speaker stated that his race had chosen the better path. Then he passionately appealed to the consciences of white Americans: "After you’ve heard the full story of the brave actions of Black soldiers in the Spanish-American War, from both Northern and Southern soldiers, from former abolitionists and former masters, ask yourselves if a race that’s willing to die for its country shouldn’t be given the greatest chance to live for it."
The part of the speech which seems to arouse the wildest and most sensational enthusiasm was that in which I thanked the President for his recognition of the Negro in his appointments during the Spanish-American war. The President was sitting in a box at the right of the stage. When I addressed him I turned toward the box, and as I finished the sentence thanking him for his generosity, the whole audience rose and cheered again and again, waving handkerchiefs and hats and canes, until the President arose in the box and bowed his acknowledgements. At that the enthusiasm broke out again, and the demonstration was almost indescribable.
The part of the speech that seemed to spark the most excitement was when I thanked the President for recognizing Black individuals in his appointments during the Spanish-American War. The President was sitting in a box to the right of the stage. When I spoke to him, I turned towards the box, and as I wrapped up my sentence thanking him for his generosity, the entire audience stood up and cheered repeatedly, waving handkerchiefs, hats, and canes, until the President stood up in the box and bowed in response. At that point, the excitement erupted again, and the scene was almost beyond words.
One portion of my address at Chicago seemed to have been misunderstood by the Southern press, and some of the Southern papers took occasion to criticise me rather strongly. These criticisms continued for several weeks, until I finally received a letter from the editor of the Age-Herald, published in Birmingham, Ala., asking me if I would say just what I meant by this part of the address. I replied to him in a letter which seemed to satisfy my critics. In this letter I said that I had made it a rule never to say before a Northern audience anything that I would not say before an audience in the South. I said that I did not think it was necessary for me to go into extended explanations; if my seventeen years of work in the heart of the South had not been explanation enough, I did not see how words could explain. I said that I made the same plea that I had made in my address at Atlanta, for the blotting out of race prejudice in "commercial and civil relations." I said that what is termed social recognition was a question which I never discussed, and then I quoted from my Atlanta address what I had said there in regard to that subject.
A part of my speech in Chicago seemed to be misinterpreted by the Southern press, and some Southern newspapers criticized me quite harshly. These criticisms went on for several weeks until I eventually received a letter from the editor of the Age-Herald, published in Birmingham, Alabama, asking if I could clarify what I meant by that part of the speech. I responded with a letter that seemed to satisfy my critics. In this letter, I stated that I had a rule to never say anything in front of a Northern audience that I wouldn’t say in front of a Southern audience. I mentioned that I didn’t think I needed to provide lengthy explanations; if my seventeen years of work in the Southern heartland hadn’t already explained my position, then I didn't see how words could clarify it further. I reiterated the same plea I had made in my speech in Atlanta, calling for the elimination of racial prejudice in "commercial and civil relations." I also noted that the issue of social recognition was not something I ever discussed and quoted my comments from my Atlanta speech on that topic.
In meeting crowds of people at public gatherings, there is one type of individual that I dread. I mean the crank. I have become so accustomed to these people now that I can pick them out at a distance when I see them elbowing their way up to me. The average crank has a long beard, poorly cared for, a lean, narrow face, and wears a black coat. The front of his vest and coat are slick with grease, and his trousers bag at the knees.
In crowds at public events, there's one type of person I really can’t stand. I mean the complainer. I've gotten so used to these people that I can spot them from afar when I see them pushing their way toward me. The typical complainer has a scraggly beard, a thin, narrow face, and wears a black coat. The front of his vest and coat is greasy, and his pants sag at the knees.
In Chicago, after I had spoken at a meeting, I met one of these fellows. They usually have some process for curing all of the ills of the world at once. This Chicago specimen had a patent process by which he said Indian corn could be kept through a period of three or four years, and he felt sure that if the Negro race in the South would, as a whole, adopt his process, it would settle the whole race question. It mattered nothing that I tried to convince him that our present problem was to teach the Negroes how to produce enough corn to last them through one year. Another Chicago crank had a scheme by which he wanted me to join him in an effort to close up all the National banks in the country. If that was done, he felt sure it would put the Negro on his feet.
In Chicago, after I spoke at a meeting, I met one of these guys. They typically have some plan for fixing all the world's problems at once. This guy from Chicago had a patented method that he claimed could preserve Indian corn for three or four years, and he was convinced that if the Black community in the South as a whole adopted his method, it would resolve the entire race issue. It didn’t matter that I tried to explain to him that our current challenge was teaching Black people how to grow enough corn to last them through just one year. Another Chicago enthusiast had a plan where he wanted me to join him in trying to shut down all the National banks in the country. He believed that doing so would help uplift the Black community.
The number of people who stand ready to consume one's time, to no purpose, is almost countless. At one time I spoke before a large audience in Boston in the evening. The next morning I was awakened by having a card brought to my room, and with it a message that some one was anxious to see me. Thinking that it must be something very important, I dressed hastily and went down. When I reached the hotel office I found a blank and innocent-looking individual waiting for me, who coolly remarked: "I heard you talk at a meeting last night. I rather liked your talk, and so I came in this morning to hear you talk some more."
The number of people ready to waste your time seems endless. One time, I gave a speech to a large crowd in Boston in the evening. The next morning, I was woken up by someone bringing a card to my room, along with a message that someone wanted to see me. Thinking it must be really important, I quickly got dressed and went downstairs. When I got to the hotel lobby, I found a plain-looking person waiting for me, who casually said, "I heard you speak at a meeting last night. I really liked what you said, so I came in this morning to hear you talk some more."
I am often asked how it is possible for me to superintend the work at Tuskegee and at the same time be so much away from the school. In partial answer to this I would say that I think I have learned, in some degree at least, to disregard the old maxim which says, "Do not get others to do that which you can do yourself." My motto, on the other hand, is, "Do not do that which others can do as well."
I often get asked how I can oversee the work at Tuskegee while being away from the school so much. In part, I would say that I’ve learned, to some extent at least, to ignore the old saying that goes, "Don’t get others to do what you can do yourself." In contrast, my motto is, "Don't do what others can do just as well."
One of the most encouraging signs in connection with the Tuskegee school is found in the fact that the organization is so thorough that the daily work of the school is not dependent upon the presence of any one individual. The whole executive force, including instructors and clerks, now numbers eighty-six. This force is so organized and subdivided that the machinery of the school goes on day by day like clockwork. Most of our teachers have been connected with the institutions for a number of years, and are as much interested in it as I am. In my absence, Mr. Warren Logan, the treasurer, who has been at the school seventeen years, is the executive. He is efficiently supported by Mrs. Washington, and by my faithful secretary, Mr. Emmett J. Scott, who handles the bulk of my correspondence and keeps me in daily touch with the life of the school, and who also keeps me informed of whatever takes place in the South that concerns the race. I owe more to his tact, wisdom, and hard work than I can describe.
One of the most encouraging aspects of the Tuskegee school is that the organization is so well-structured that daily operations don’t rely on any single person. The entire team, including teachers and staff, now consists of eighty-six people. This team is so organized and divided that the school runs smoothly every day like clockwork. Most of our teachers have been with the institution for several years and are as invested in it as I am. When I'm not there, Mr. Warren Logan, the treasurer, who has been at the school for seventeen years, steps in as the executive. He is effectively supported by Mrs. Washington and my dedicated secretary, Mr. Emmett J. Scott, who manages most of my correspondence and keeps me updated on the day-to-day life of the school, as well as current events in the South that affect our community. I can’t express how much I rely on his insight, wisdom, and hard work.
The main executive work of the school, whether I am at Tuskegee or not, centres in what we call the executive council. This council meets twice a week, and is composed of the nine persons who are at the head of the nine departments of the school. For example: Mrs. B.K. Bruce, the Lady Principal, the widow of the late ex-senator Bruce, is a member of the council, and represents in it all that pertains to the life of the girls at the school. In addition to the executive council there is a financial committee of six, that meets every week and decides upon the expenditures for the week. Once a month, and sometimes oftener, there is a general meeting of all the instructors. Aside from these there are innumerable smaller meetings, such as that of the instructors in the Phelps Hall Bible Training School, or of the instructors in the agricultural department.
The main executive work of the school, whether I'm at Tuskegee or not, focuses on what we call the executive council. This council meets twice a week and is made up of the nine leaders of the school's departments. For example, Mrs. B.K. Bruce, the Lady Principal and widow of the former senator Bruce, is a council member and represents everything related to the girls' lives at the school. In addition to the executive council, there's a financial committee of six that meets every week to decide on that week’s expenditures. Once a month, and sometimes more often, there’s a general meeting of all the instructors. Besides these, there are countless smaller meetings, like those of the instructors in the Phelps Hall Bible Training School or in the agricultural department.
In order that I may keep in constant touch with the life of the institution, I have a system of reports so arranged that a record of the school's work reaches me every day of the year, no matter in what part of the country I am. I know by these reports even what students are excused from school, and why they are excused—whether for reasons of ill health or otherwise. Through the medium of these reports I know each day what the income of the school in money is; I know how many gallons of milk and how many pounds of butter come from the dairy; what the bill of fare for the teachers and students is; whether a certain kind of meat was boiled or baked, and whether certain vegetables served in the dining room were bought from a store or procured from our own farm. Human nature I find to be very much the same the world over, and it is sometimes not hard to yield to the temptation to go to a barrel of rice that has come from the store—with the grain all prepared to go in the pot—rather than to take the time and trouble to go to the field and dig and wash one's own sweet potatoes, which might be prepared in a manner to take the place of the rice.
To stay connected with the daily life of the institution, I have set up a reporting system that ensures I receive a record of the school's activities every day of the year, regardless of where I am in the country. These reports keep me informed about which students are excused from school and the reasons for their absences—whether due to illness or other reasons. Thanks to these reports, I know each day the school's income; how many gallons of milk and pounds of butter are produced by the dairy; the menu for teachers and students; whether a specific type of meat was boiled or baked, and whether certain vegetables served in the dining hall were bought at a store or sourced from our own farm. I find that human nature is pretty much the same everywhere, and it's sometimes tempting to choose convenience, like grabbing a bag of store-bought rice ready for cooking, instead of taking the time and effort to go out to the field to dig up and wash sweet potatoes, which could easily serve as an alternative to rice.
I am often asked how, in the midst of so much work, a large part of which is for the public, I can find time for any rest or recreation, and what kind of recreation or sports I am fond of. This is rather a difficult question to answer. I have a strong feeling that every individual owes it to himself, and to the cause which he is serving, to keep a vigorous, healthy body, with the nerves steady and strong, prepared for great efforts and prepared for disappointments and trying positions. As far as I can, I make it a rule to plan for each day's work—not merely to go through with the same routine of daily duties, but to get rid of the routine work as early in the day as possible, and then to enter upon some new or advance work. I make it a rule to clear my desk every day, before leaving my office, of all correspondence and memoranda, so that on the morrow I can begin a new day of work. I make it a rule never to let my work drive me, but to so master it, and keep it in such complete control, and to keep so far ahead of it, that I will be the master instead of the servant. There is a physical and mental and spiritual enjoyment that comes from a consciousness of being the absolute master of one's work, in all its details, that is very satisfactory and inspiring. My experience teaches me that, if one learns to follow this plan, he gets a freshness of body and vigour of mind out of work that goes a long way toward keeping him strong and healthy. I believe that when one can grow to the point where he loves his work, this gives him a kind of strength that is most valuable.
I often get asked how, with so much work, much of it public service, I manage to find time for rest or fun, and what kinds of activities I enjoy. It's a tough question to answer. I truly believe that everyone owes it to themselves and the cause they're dedicated to, to maintain a strong, healthy body with steady and resilient nerves, ready for big challenges and for dealing with setbacks. As much as I can, I try to plan for each day's tasks—not just to get through the routine but to tackle the routine work as early in the day as possible, so I can focus on new or more advanced projects afterward. I make it a habit to clear my desk every day before leaving the office, getting rid of all correspondence and notes, so I can start fresh the next morning. I ensure that my work doesn't control me; instead, I strive to manage it completely, staying ahead of it, so that I'm in charge rather than being its servant. There's a physical, mental, and spiritual satisfaction that comes from being fully in control of every detail of your work, and it’s both rewarding and motivating. My experience shows that if you learn to follow this approach, you'll gain a sense of physical freshness and mental vigor from your work that contributes significantly to staying strong and healthy. I believe that when someone reaches a point where they genuinely enjoy their work, it provides a unique kind of strength that's incredibly valuable.
When I begin my work in the morning, I expect to have a successful and pleasant day of it, but at the same time I prepare myself for unpleasant and unexpected hard places. I prepared myself to hear that one of our school buildings is on fire, or has burned, or that some disagreeable accident has occurred, or that some one has abused me in a public address or printed article, for something that I have done or omitted to do, or for something that he had heard that I had said—probably something that I had never thought of saying.
When I start my work in the morning, I hope for a successful and enjoyable day, but I also get ready for difficult and unexpected challenges. I brace myself to hear that one of our school buildings is on fire or has burned down, or that some unfortunate accident has happened, or that someone has criticized me in a public speech or article for something I did or didn't do, or for something they think I said—probably something I never even considered saying.
In nineteen years of continuous work I have taken but one vacation. That was two years ago, when some of my friends put the money into my hands and forced Mrs. Washington and myself to spend three months in Europe. I have said that I believe it is the duty of every one to keep his body in good condition. I try to look after the little ills, with the idea that if I take care of the little ills the big ones will not come. When I find myself unable to sleep well, I know that something is wrong. If I find any part of my system the least weak, and not performing its duty, I consult a good physician. The ability to sleep well, at any time and in any place, I find of great advantage. I have so trained myself that I can lie down for a nap of fifteen or twenty minutes, and get up refreshed in body and mind.
In nineteen years of continuous work, I've taken just one vacation. That was two years ago when some friends forced Mrs. Washington and me to spend three months in Europe. I've always believed it's everyone's duty to keep their body in good shape. I try to take care of minor issues so that bigger problems won't arise. When I struggle to sleep well, I know something isn't right. If I notice any part of my body feeling weak or not doing its job, I consult a good doctor. I've found that being able to sleep well, anytime and anywhere, is a great advantage. I've trained myself to take short naps of fifteen or twenty minutes and wake up feeling refreshed, both physically and mentally.
I have said that I make it a rule to finish up each day's work before leaving it. There is, perhaps, one exception to this. When I have an unusually difficult question to decide—one that appeals strongly to the emotions—I find it a safe rule to sleep over it for a night, or to wait until I have had an opportunity to talk it over with my wife and friends.
I’ve mentioned that I always try to wrap up each day's tasks before calling it a day. There’s maybe one exception to that. When I’m faced with a particularly tough decision—one that really hits me emotionally—I find it’s best to sleep on it for a night or wait until I can discuss it with my wife and friends.
As to my reading; the most time I get for solid reading is when I am on the cars. Newspapers are to me a constant source of delight and recreation. The only trouble is that I read too many of them. Fiction I care little for. Frequently I have to almost force myself to read a novel that is on every one's lips. The kind of reading that I have the greatest fondness for is biography. I like to be sure that I am reading about a real man or a real thing. I think I do not go too far when I say that I have read nearly every book and magazine article that has been written about Abraham Lincoln. In literature he is my patron saint.
As for my reading, I usually find the most time for it when I'm on the train. Newspapers are a constant source of enjoyment and relaxation for me. The only problem is that I read too many of them. I'm not really into fiction. I often have to almost force myself to read a novel that's popular. The type of reading I love the most is biography. I prefer knowing that I'm reading about a real person or event. I don't think I'm exaggerating when I say that I've read almost every book and magazine article that's been written about Abraham Lincoln. In literature, he's my guiding light.
Out of the twelve months in a year I suppose that, on an average, I spend six months away from Tuskegee. While my being absent from the school so much unquestionably has its disadvantages, yet there are at the same time some compensations. The change of work brings a certain kind of rest. I enjoy a ride of a long distance on the cars, when I am permitted to ride where I can be comfortable. I get rest on the cars, except when the inevitable individual who seems to be on every train approaches me with the now familiar phrase: "Isn't this Booker Washington? I want to introduce myself to you." Absence from the school enables me to lose sight of the unimportant details of the work, and study it in a broader and more comprehensive manner than I could do on the grounds. This absence also brings me into contact with the best work being done in educational lines, and into contact with the best educators in the land.
Out of the twelve months in a year, I estimate that I spend about six months away from Tuskegee. While being away from the school so often definitely has its drawbacks, there are also some perks. The change in work brings a kind of rest. I enjoy taking long train rides, especially when I can find a comfortable seat. I manage to relax on the train, except when that one person who seems to be on every train approaches me with the all-too-familiar line: "Aren't you Booker Washington? I’d like to introduce myself." Being away from the school allows me to step back from the trivial details of the work and look at it from a broader and more comprehensive perspective than I can when I'm on campus. This time away also connects me with the best advancements in education and puts me in touch with the most outstanding educators in the country.
But, after all this is said, the time when I get the most solid rest and recreation is when I can be at Tuskegee, and, after our evening meal is over, can sit down, as is our custom, with my wife and Portia and Baker and Davidson, my three children, and read a story, or each take turns in telling a story. To me there is nothing on earth equal to that, although what is nearly equal to it is to go with them for an hour or more, as we like to do on Sunday afternoons, into the woods, where we can live for a while near the heart of nature, where no one can disturb or vex us, surrounded by pure air, the trees, the shrubbery, the flowers, and the sweet fragrance that springs from a hundred plants, enjoying the chirp of the crickets and the songs of the birds. This is solid rest.
But after everything has been said, the time when I get the best rest and relaxation is when I’m at Tuskegee. After we finish our evening meal, I sit down, just like we always do, with my wife and our kids, Portia, Baker, and Davidson, and we read a story or take turns telling one. For me, nothing compares to that, although what comes close is spending an hour or more with them on Sunday afternoons in the woods, where we can connect with nature and be free from disturbances, surrounded by fresh air, trees, shrubs, flowers, and the sweet scent of countless plants, enjoying the sounds of crickets and birds. This is true rest.
My garden, also, what little time I can be at Tuskegee, is another source of rest and enjoyment. Somehow I like, as often as possible, to touch nature, not something that is artificial or an imitation, but the real thing. When I can leave my office in time so that I can spend thirty or forty minutes in spading the ground, in planting seeds, in digging about the plants, I feel that I am coming into contact with something that is giving me strength for the many duties and hard places that await me out in the big world. I pity the man or woman who has never learned to enjoy nature and to get strength and inspiration out of it.
My garden, whenever I get the chance to be at Tuskegee, is another source of relaxation and enjoyment. I really value the time I can spend with nature, not something fake or artificial, but the real deal. When I can finish my work early enough to spend thirty or forty minutes digging in the dirt, planting seeds, or tending to the plants, I feel like I’m connecting with something that gives me strength for the many responsibilities and challenges waiting for me out in the world. I feel sorry for anyone who has never learned to appreciate nature and draw strength and inspiration from it.
Aside from the large number of fowls and animals kept by the school, I keep individually a number of pigs and fowls of the best grades, and in raising these I take a great deal of pleasure. I think the pig is my favourite animal. Few things are more satisfactory to me than a high-grade Berkshire or Poland China pig.
Besides the many birds and animals at the school, I personally have several high-quality pigs and birds, and I take a lot of joy in raising them. I think pigs are my favorite animals. There’s nothing more satisfying to me than a top-grade Berkshire or Poland China pig.
Games I care little for. I have never seen a game of football. In cards I do not know one card from another. A game of old-fashioned marbles with my two boys, once in a while, is all I care for in this direction. I suppose I would care for games now if I had had any time in my youth to give to them, but that was not possible.
I don't really care about games. I've never watched a football match. When it comes to cards, I can't tell one card from another. The only game I enjoy occasionally is a classic game of marbles with my two boys. I guess I might have liked games if I had had time for them when I was younger, but that just wasn't an option.
Chapter XVI. Europe
In 1893 I was married to Miss Margaret James Murray, a native of Mississippi, and a graduate of Fisk University, in Nashville, Tenn., who had come to Tuskegee as a teacher several years before, and at the time we were married was filling the position of Lady Principal. Not only is Mrs. Washington completely one with me in the work directly connected with the school, relieving me of many burdens and perplexities, but aside from her work on the school grounds, she carries on a mothers' meeting in the town of Tuskegee, and a plantation work among the women, children, and men who live in a settlement connected with a large plantation about eight miles from Tuskegee. Both the mothers' meeting and the plantation work are carried on, not only with a view to helping those who are directly reached, but also for the purpose of furnishing object-lessons in these two kinds of work that may be followed by our students when they go out into the world for their own life-work.
In 1893, I married Miss Margaret James Murray, who was from Mississippi and graduated from Fisk University in Nashville, Tennessee. She came to Tuskegee as a teacher several years earlier and was serving as the Lady Principal at the time of our marriage. Not only does Mrs. Washington fully support me in our work at the school, taking on many of my responsibilities and challenges, but she also runs a mothers' meeting in Tuskegee and manages outreach programs for women, children, and men living in a settlement tied to a large plantation about eight miles from Tuskegee. Both the mothers' meeting and the plantation outreach are designed not only to help those directly involved but also to provide practical examples of these types of work that our students can replicate when they enter the world to pursue their own careers.
Aside from these two enterprises, Mrs. Washington is also largely responsible for a woman's club at the school which brings together, twice a month, the women who live on the school grounds and those who live near, for the discussion of some important topic. She is also the President of what is known as the Federation of Southern Coloured Women's Clubs, and is Chairman of the Executive Committee of the National Federation of Coloured Women's Clubs.
Aside from these two ventures, Mrs. Washington is also primarily in charge of a women's club at the school that meets twice a month. This club gathers the women living on the school grounds and those nearby to discuss important topics. She is also the President of the Federation of Southern Colored Women's Clubs and serves as the Chair of the Executive Committee of the National Federation of Colored Women's Clubs.
Portia, the oldest of my three children, has learned dressmaking. She has unusual ability in instrumental music. Aside from her studies at Tuskegee, she has already begun to teach there.
Portia, the oldest of my three kids, has learned how to sew. She has a unique talent for playing instruments. Besides her studies at Tuskegee, she has already started teaching there.
Booker Taliaferro is my next oldest child. Young as he is, he has already nearly mastered the brickmason's trade. He began working at this trade when he was quite small, dividing his time between this and class work; and he has developed great skill in the trade and a fondness for it. He says that he is going to be an architect and brickmason. One of the most satisfactory letters that I have ever received from any one came to me from Booker last summer. When I left home for the summer, I told him that he must work at his trade half of each day, and that the other half of the day he could spend as he pleased. When I had been away from home two weeks, I received the following letter from him:
Booker Taliaferro is my next oldest child. Despite his youth, he has already nearly mastered the brickmasonry trade. He started working in this field when he was quite young, balancing it with schoolwork; and he has developed exceptional skill and a real passion for it. He says he wants to be both an architect and a brickmason. One of the most satisfying letters I’ve ever received came from Booker last summer. Before I left home for the summer, I told him he had to work at his trade for half the day and could spend the other half however he wanted. After I had been away for two weeks, I received this letter from him:
Tuskegee, Alabama.
Tuskegee, AL.
My dear Papa: Before you left home you told me to work at my trade half of each day. I like my work so much that I want to work at my trade all day. Besides, I want to earn all the money I can, so that when I go to another school I shall have money to pay my expenses.
My dear Dad: Before you left home, you told me to work at my job half of each day. I enjoy my work so much that I want to do it all day. Plus, I want to earn as much money as I can, so when I go to another school, I'll have money to cover my expenses.
Your son,
Your kid,
Booker.
Booker T.
My youngest child, Ernest Davidson Washington, says that he is going to be a physician. In addition to going to school, where he studies books and has manual training, he regularly spends a portion of his time in the office of our resident physician, and has already learned to do many of the duties which pertain to a doctor's office.
My youngest child, Ernest Davidson Washington, says he wants to be a doctor. Besides going to school, where he studies various subjects and has hands-on training, he regularly spends some of his time in the office of our family doctor and has already learned to handle many of the tasks that come with a doctor's office.
The thing in my life which brings me the keenest regret is that my work in connection with public affairs keeps me for so much of the time away from my family, where, of all places in the world, I delight to be. I always envy the individual whose life-work is so laid that he can spend his evenings at home. I have sometimes thought that people who have this rare privilege do not appreciate it as they should. It is such a rest and relief to get away from crowds of people, and handshaking, and travelling, to get home, even if it be for but a very brief while.
The thing I regret most in my life is that my job related to public affairs keeps me away from my family so much of the time, where I love to be more than anywhere else. I often envy those whose work allows them to spend their evenings at home. I've thought that people who have this rare privilege might not appreciate it as they should. It's such a break and relief to escape from crowds, handshakes, and travel, and finally get home, even if it's just for a short time.
Another thing at Tuskegee out of which I get a great deal of pleasure and satisfaction is in the meeting with our students, and teachers, and their families, in the chapel for devotional exercises every evening at half-past eight, the last thing before retiring for the night. It is an inspiring sight when one stands on the platform there and sees before him eleven or twelve hundred earnest young men and women; and one cannot but feel that it is a privilege to help to guide them to a higher and more useful life.
Another thing at Tuskegee that brings me a lot of joy and satisfaction is meeting with our students, teachers, and their families in the chapel for devotional exercises every evening at 8:30, right before we head to bed. It's an inspiring sight when you stand on the platform and see eleven or twelve hundred dedicated young men and women in front of you; it truly feels like a privilege to help guide them toward a higher and more meaningful life.
In the spring of 1899 there came to me what I might describe as almost the greatest surprise of my life. Some good ladies in Boston arranged a public meeting in the interests of Tuskegee, to be held in the Hollis Street Theatre. This meeting was attended by large numbers of the best people of Boston, of both races. Bishop Lawrence presided. In addition to an address made by myself, Mr. Paul Lawrence Dunbar read from his poems, and Dr. W.E.B. Du Bois read an original sketch.
In the spring of 1899, I experienced what I can only call one of the biggest surprises of my life. Some wonderful women in Boston organized a public meeting to support Tuskegee, which took place at the Hollis Street Theatre. Many of Boston's finest people from both races attended. Bishop Lawrence presided over the event. Along with my own speech, Mr. Paul Lawrence Dunbar read from his poems, and Dr. W.E.B. Du Bois shared an original piece.
Some of those who attended this meeting noticed that I seemed unusually tired, and some little time after the close of the meeting, one of the ladies who had been interested in it asked me in a casual way if I had ever been to Europe. I replied that I never had. She asked me if I had ever thought of going, and I told her no; that it was something entirely beyond me. This conversation soon passed out of my mind, but a few days afterward I was informed that some friends in Boston, including Mr. Francis J. Garrison, had raised a sum of money sufficient to pay all the expenses of Mrs. Washington and myself during a three or four months' trip to Europe. It was added with emphasis that we must go. A year previous to this Mr. Garrison had attempted to get me to promise to go to Europe for a summer's rest, with the understanding that he would be responsible for raising the money among his friends for the expenses of the trip. At that time such a journey seemed so entirely foreign to anything that I should ever be able to undertake that I did confess I did not give the matter very serious attention; but later Mr. Garrison joined his efforts to those of the ladies whom I have mentioned, and when their plans were made known to me Mr. Garrison not only had the route mapped out, but had, I believe, selected the steamer upon which we were to sail.
Some of the people at this meeting noticed that I looked unusually tired, and shortly after it ended, one of the women who had been interested in it casually asked me if I had ever been to Europe. I replied that I hadn't. She asked if I had ever thought about going, and I told her no; it was something completely out of reach for me. I soon forgot about the conversation, but a few days later, I was informed that some friends in Boston, including Mr. Francis J. Garrison, had gathered enough money to cover all the expenses for Mrs. Washington and me to take a three or four-month trip to Europe. It was emphasized that we *must* go. A year earlier, Mr. Garrison had tried to get me to promise to go to Europe for a summer getaway, with the understanding that he would raise the money from his friends for the trip. At the time, such a journey seemed so entirely foreign to anything I could ever undertake that I admitted I didn't give it much serious thought; but later, Mr. Garrison teamed up with the women I mentioned, and when their plans were explained to me, Mr. Garrison not only had the route planned out but had also, I believe, chosen the steamer we were to sail on.
The whole thing was so sudden and so unexpected that I was completely taken off my feet. I had been at work steadily for eighteen years in connection with Tuskegee, and I had never thought of anything else but ending my life in that way. Each day the school seemed to depend upon me more largely for its daily expenses, and I told these Boston friends that, while I thanked them sincerely for their thoughtfulness and generosity, I could not go to Europe, for the reason that the school could not live financially while I was absent. They then informed me that Mr. Henry L. Higginson, and some other good friends who I know do not want their names made public, were then raising a sum of money which would be sufficient to keep the school in operation while I was away. At this point I was compelled to surrender. Every avenue of escape had been closed.
The whole thing was so sudden and unexpected that I was completely thrown off balance. I had been working steadily for eighteen years at Tuskegee, and I never imagined anything else but finishing my life there. Every day, the school seemed to rely on me more and more for its daily expenses, and I told my friends from Boston that, while I truly appreciated their thoughtfulness and generosity, I couldn’t go to Europe because the school couldn’t survive financially while I was gone. They then told me that Mr. Henry L. Higginson, along with some other generous friends who prefer to remain anonymous, were raising enough money to keep the school running while I was away. At that point, I had no choice but to give in. Every escape route had been blocked.
Deep down in my heart the whole thing seemed more like a dream than like reality, and for a long time it was difficult for me to make myself believe that I was actually going to Europe. I had been born and largely reared in the lowest depths of slavery, ignorance, and poverty. In my childhood I had suffered for want of a place to sleep, for lack of food, clothing, and shelter. I had not had the privilege of sitting down to a dining-table until I was quite well grown. Luxuries had always seemed to me to be something meant for white people, not for my race. I had always regarded Europe, and London, and Paris, much as I regarded heaven. And now could it be that I was actually going to Europe? Such thoughts as these were constantly with me.
Deep down in my heart, it all felt more like a dream than reality, and for a long time, I found it hard to believe that I was actually going to Europe. I had been born and mostly raised in the lowest depths of slavery, ignorance, and poverty. In my childhood, I suffered from not having a place to sleep, food, clothing, and shelter. I didn’t get the chance to sit down at a dining table until I was quite grown. Luxuries had always seemed like they were meant for white people, not for my race. I always viewed Europe, and London, and Paris much like I viewed heaven. And now, could it really be that I was actually going to Europe? Thoughts like these were constantly on my mind.
Two other thoughts troubled me a good deal. I feared that people who heard that Mrs. Washington and I were going to Europe might not know all the circumstances, and might get the idea that we had become, as some might say, "stuck up," and were trying to "show off." I recalled that from my youth I had heard it said that too often, when people of my race reached any degree of success, they were inclined to unduly exalt themselves; to try and ape the wealthy, and in so doing to lose their heads. The fear that people might think this of us haunted me a good deal. Then, too, I could not see how my conscience would permit me to spare the time from my work and be happy. It seemed mean and selfish in me to be taking a vacation while others were at work, and while there was so much that needed to be done. From the time I could remember, I had always been at work, and I did not see how I could spend three or four months in doing nothing. The fact was that I did not know how to take a vacation.
Two other thoughts worried me a lot. I was afraid that people who heard that Mrs. Washington and I were going to Europe might not know all the details and might think we had become, as some would say, "stuck up" and were trying to "show off." I remembered hearing from my youth that too often, when people of my race achieved any level of success, they tended to overly promote themselves; to try to mimic the wealthy, and in doing so, lose their humility. The fear that people might think this about us troubled me quite a bit. Also, I couldn't understand how my conscience would allow me to take time off from my work and be happy. It felt unkind and selfish to take a vacation while others were working, especially when there was so much that needed to be done. As far back as I could remember, I had always been working, and I didn't see how I could spend three or four months doing nothing. The truth was that I just didn't know how to take a vacation.
Mrs. Washington had much the same difficulty in getting away, but she was anxious to go because she thought that I needed the rest. There were many important National questions bearing upon the life of the race which were being agitated at that time, and this made it all the harder for us to decide to go. We finally gave our Boston friends our promise that we would go, and then they insisted that the date of our departure be set as soon as possible. So we decided upon May 10. My good friend Mr. Garrison kindly took charge of all the details necessary for the success of the trip, and he, as well as other friends, gave us a great number of letters of introduction to people in France and England, and made other arrangements for our comfort and convenience abroad. Good-bys were said at Tuskegee, and we were in New York May 9, ready to sail the next day. Our daughter Portia, who was then studying in South Framingham, Mass., came to New York to see us off. Mr. Scott, my secretary, came with me to New York, in order that I might clear up the last bit of business before I left. Other friends also came to New York to see us off. Just before we went on board the steamer another pleasant surprise came to us in the form of a letter from two generous ladies, stating that they had decided to give us the money with which to erect a new building to be used in properly housing all our industries for girls at Tuskegee.
Mrs. Washington had a similar struggle to leave, but she really wanted to go because she thought I needed a break. There were many important national issues affecting the lives of our people being discussed at that time, which made it even harder for us to decide to leave. We eventually promised our friends in Boston that we would go, and they insisted that we set our departure date as soon as possible. So we settled on May 10. My good friend Mr. Garrison kindly took care of all the details needed for the trip’s success, and he, along with other friends, provided us with many letters of introduction to folks in France and England and made other arrangements for our comfort while we were abroad. We said our goodbyes at Tuskegee and arrived in New York on May 9, ready to set sail the next day. Our daughter Portia, who was studying in South Framingham, Mass., came to New York to see us off. Mr. Scott, my secretary, traveled with me to New York so I could wrap up the last bit of business before I left. Other friends also came to New York to send us off. Just before we boarded the steamer, we received another nice surprise in the form of a letter from two generous women, saying they decided to give us the funds to build a new facility for housing all our industries for girls at Tuskegee.
We were to sail on the Friesland, of the Red Star Line, and a beautiful vessel she was. We went on board just before noon, the hour of sailing. I had never before been on board a large ocean steamer, and the feeling which took possession of me when I found myself there is rather hard to describe. It was a feeling, I think, of awe mingled with delight. We were agreeably surprised to find that the captain, as well as several of the other officers, not only knew who we were, but was expecting us and gave us a pleasant greeting. There were several passengers whom we knew, including Senator Sewell, of New Jersey, and Edward Marshall, the newspaper correspondent. I had just a little fear that we would not be treated civilly by some of the passengers. This fear was based upon what I had heard other people of my race, who had crossed the ocean, say about unpleasant experiences in crossing the ocean in American vessels. But in our case, from the captain down to the most humble servant, we were treated with the greatest kindness. Nor was this kindness confined to those who were connected with the steamer; it was shown by all the passengers also. There were not a few Southern men and women on board, and they were as cordial as those from other parts of the country.
We were set to sail on the Friesland, from the Red Star Line, and it was a beautiful ship. We boarded just before noon, the scheduled departure time. I had never been on a large ocean liner before, and the feeling I had when I found myself there is hard to describe. It was a mix of awe and delight. We were pleasantly surprised to discover that the captain, along with several other officers, not only recognized us but had been expecting us and greeted us warmly. There were also several passengers we knew, including Senator Sewell from New Jersey and Edward Marshall, the newspaper correspondent. I was a bit worried that some of the passengers might not treat us well. This concern came from what I had heard other people of my race say about their unpleasant experiences crossing the ocean on American ships. But in our case, from the captain to the most junior staff, we were treated with great kindness. And this kindness wasn’t just from the crew; it extended to all the passengers as well. There were quite a few men and women from the South on board, and they were just as friendly as those from other parts of the country.
As soon as the last good-bys were said, and the steamer had cut loose from the wharf, the load of care, anxiety, and responsibility which I had carried for eighteen years began to lift itself from my shoulders at the rate, it seemed to me, of a pound a minute. It was the first time in all those years that I had felt, even in a measure, free from care; and my feeling of relief it is hard to describe on paper. Added to this was the delightful anticipation of being in Europe soon. It all seemed more like a dream than like a reality.
As soon as the last goodbyes were said, and the steamer had pulled away from the dock, the burden of worry, anxiety, and responsibility that I had carried for eighteen years started to lift from my shoulders at what felt like a pound a minute. It was the first time in all those years that I felt, even slightly, free from worry; and my sense of relief is hard to put into words. On top of that was the exciting prospect of being in Europe soon. It all felt more like a dream than reality.
Mr. Garrison had thoughtfully arranged to have us have one of the most comfortable rooms on the ship. The second or third day out I began to sleep, and I think that I slept at the rate of fifteen hours a day during the remainder of the ten days' passage. Then it was that I began to understand how tired I really was. These long sleeps I kept up for a month after we landed on the other side. It was such an unusual feeling to wake up in the morning and realize that I had no engagements; did not have to take a train at a certain hour; did not have an appointment to meet some one, or to make an address, at a certain hour. How different all this was from the experiences that I have been through when travelling, when I have sometimes slept in three different beds in a single night!
Mr. Garrison had thoughtfully arranged for us to have one of the most comfortable rooms on the ship. By the second or third day out, I started to sleep, and I think I was sleeping about fifteen hours a day for the rest of the ten-day journey. That’s when I began to realize just how tired I really was. I kept up these long sleeps for a month after we landed on the other side. It felt so unusual to wake up in the morning and realize that I had no commitments; I didn’t have to catch a train at a specific time; I didn’t have an appointment to meet someone or give a speech at a certain hour. How different this was from my travel experiences, when I’d sometimes sleep in three different beds in a single night!
When Sunday came, the captain invited me to conduct the religious services, but, not being a minister, I declined. The passengers, however, began making requests that I deliver an address to them in the dining-saloon some time during the voyage, and this I consented to do. Senator Sewell presided at this meeting. After ten days of delightful weather, during which I was not seasick for a day, we landed at the interesting old city of Antwerp, in Belgium.
When Sunday arrived, the captain asked me to lead the religious services, but since I wasn't a minister, I said no. However, the passengers started asking me to give a speech in the dining hall at some point during the trip, and I agreed to do it. Senator Sewell chaired the meeting. After ten days of lovely weather, during which I didn't feel seasick at all, we arrived at the fascinating old city of Antwerp, in Belgium.
The next day after we landed happened to be one of those numberless holidays which the people of those countries are in the habit of observing. It was a bright, beautiful day. Our room in the hotel faced the main public square, and the sights there—the people coming in from the country with all kinds of beautiful flowers to sell, the women coming in with their dogs drawing large, brightly polished cans filled with milk, the people streaming into the cathedral—filled me with a sense of newness that I had never before experienced.
The next day after we landed was one of those countless holidays that people in those countries typically celebrate. It was a bright, beautiful day. Our hotel room overlooked the main public square, and the sights there—the people arriving from the countryside with all kinds of gorgeous flowers to sell, the women coming in with their dogs pulling large, shiny cans filled with milk, the crowd flowing into the cathedral—gave me a sense of freshness that I had never felt before.
After spending some time in Antwerp, we were invited to go with a part of a half-dozen persons on a trip through Holland. This party included Edward Marshall and some American artists who had come over on the same steamer with us. We accepted the invitation, and enjoyed the trip greatly. I think it was all the more interesting and instructive because we went for most of the way on one of the slow, old-fashioned canal-boats. This gave us an opportunity of seeing and studying the real life of the people in the country districts. We went in this way as far as Rotterdam, and later went to The Hague, where the Peace Conference was then in session, and where we were kindly received by the American representatives.
After spending some time in Antwerp, we were invited to join a small group of about six people on a trip through Holland. This group included Edward Marshall and some American artists who had traveled on the same steamer as us. We accepted the invitation and really enjoyed the trip. I think it was even more interesting and educational because we spent most of the journey on a slow, old-fashioned canal boat. This allowed us to see and learn about the everyday life of the people in the rural areas. We traveled this way as far as Rotterdam, and later headed to The Hague, where the Peace Conference was happening at the time, and we were warmly welcomed by the American representatives.
The thing that impressed itself most on me in Holland was the thoroughness of the agriculture and the excellence of the Holstein cattle. I never knew, before visiting Holland, how much it was possible for people to get out of a small plot of ground. It seemed to me that absolutely no land was wasted. It was worth a trip to Holland, too, just to get a sight of three or four hundred fine Holstein cows grazing in one of those intensely green fields.
The thing that stood out to me the most in Holland was the efficiency of the agriculture and the quality of the Holstein cattle. Before visiting Holland, I had no idea how much people could produce from a small piece of land. It seemed like no space was wasted at all. It was definitely worth the trip to Holland just to see three or four hundred beautiful Holstein cows grazing in one of those vibrant green fields.
From Holland we went to Belgium, and made a hasty trip through that country, stopping at Brussels, where we visited the battlefield of Waterloo. From Belgium we went direct to Paris, where we found that Mr. Theodore Stanton, the son of Mrs. Elizabeth Cady Stanton, had kindly provided accommodations for us. We had barely got settled in Paris before an invitation came to me from the University Club of Paris to be its guest at a banquet which was soon to be given. The other guests were ex-President Benjamin Harrison and Archbishop Ireland, who were in Paris at the time. The American Ambassador, General Horace Porter, presided at the banquet. My address on this occasion seemed to give satisfaction to those who heard it. General Harrison kindly devoted a large portion of his remarks at dinner to myself and to the influence of the work at Tuskegee on the American race question. After my address at this banquet other invitations came to me, but I declined the most of them, knowing that if I accepted them all, the object of my visit would be defeated. I did, however, consent to deliver an address in the American chapel the following Sunday morning, and at this meeting General Harrison, General Porter, and other distinguished Americans were present.
From Holland, we headed to Belgium and quickly toured the country, stopping in Brussels, where we visited the battlefield of Waterloo. From Belgium, we went straight to Paris, where Mr. Theodore Stanton, the son of Mrs. Elizabeth Cady Stanton, had generously arranged accommodations for us. We had hardly settled in Paris when I received an invitation from the University Club of Paris to be their guest at an upcoming banquet. The other guests included ex-President Benjamin Harrison and Archbishop Ireland, who were in Paris at the time. The American Ambassador, General Horace Porter, presided over the banquet. My speech that night seemed to please those in attendance. General Harrison graciously dedicated a significant part of his remarks at dinner to me and the impact of the work at Tuskegee on the American race issue. After my speech at this banquet, I received more invitations, but I declined most of them, knowing that accepting all would undermine the purpose of my visit. However, I did agree to give a talk at the American chapel the following Sunday morning, where General Harrison, General Porter, and other notable Americans were present.
Later we received a formal call from the American Ambassador, and were invited to attend a reception at his residence. At this reception we met many Americans, among them Justices Fuller and Harlan, of the United States Supreme Court. During our entire stay of a month in Paris, both the American Ambassador and his wife, as well as several other Americans, were very kind to us.
Later, we got a formal invitation from the American Ambassador to attend a reception at his home. At this reception, we met many Americans, including Justices Fuller and Harlan from the United States Supreme Court. Throughout our month-long stay in Paris, both the American Ambassador and his wife, along with several other Americans, were very kind to us.
While in Paris we saw a good deal of the now famous American Negro painter, Mr. Henry O. Tanner, whom we had formerly known in America. It was very satisfactory to find how well known Mr. Tanner was in the field of art, and to note the high standing which all classes accorded to him. When we told some Americans that we were going to the Luxembourg Palace to see a painting by an American Negro, it was hard to convince them that a Negro had been thus honoured. I do not believe that they were really convinced of the fact until they saw the picture for themselves. My acquaintance with Mr. Tanner reenforced in my mind the truth which I am constantly trying to impress upon our students at Tuskegee—and on our people throughout the country, as far as I can reach them with my voice—that any man, regardless of colour, will be recognized and rewarded just in proportion as he learns to do something well—learns to do it better than some one else—however humble the thing may be. As I have said, I believe that my race will succeed in proportion as it learns to do a common thing in an uncommon manner; learns to do a thing so thoroughly that no one can improve upon what it has done; learns to make its services of indispensable value. This was the spirit that inspired me in my first effort at Hampton, when I was given the opportunity to sweep and dust that schoolroom. In a degree I felt that my whole future life depended upon the thoroughness with which I cleaned that room, and I was determined to do it so well that no one could find any fault with the job. Few people ever stopped, I found, when looking at his pictures, to inquire whether Mr. Tanner was a Negro painter, a French painter, or a German painter. They simply knew that he was able to produce something which the world wanted—a great painting—and the matter of his colour did not enter into their minds. When a Negro girl learns to cook, to wash dishes, to sew, or write a book, or a Negro boy learns to groom horses, or to grow sweet potatoes, or to produce butter, or to build a house, or to be able to practise medicine, as well or better than some one else, they will be rewarded regardless of race or colour. In the long run, the world is going to have the best, and any difference in race, religion, or previous history will not long keep the world from what it wants.
While we were in Paris, we spent a lot of time with the now-famous American Black painter, Mr. Henry O. Tanner, who we had previously known in America. It was really satisfying to see how well-regarded Mr. Tanner was in the art world and to notice the high respect he received from all classes. When we told some Americans that we were going to the Luxembourg Palace to see a painting by an American Black artist, it was hard to convince them that a Black man had been honored in this way. I don't think they truly believed it until they saw the painting for themselves. My experience with Mr. Tanner reinforced the idea that I always try to communicate to our students at Tuskegee and to people across the country as far as I can reach—that any person, no matter their color, will be recognized and rewarded based on how well they learn to do something—especially if they do it better than others—no matter how modest the task may be. As I've said, I believe my race will succeed in direct proportion to how well it learns to approach ordinary tasks in an extraordinary way; that is, learns to perform so exceptionally that no one can improve on what it has accomplished; learns to make its contributions invaluable. This was the motivation behind my first effort at Hampton when I had the chance to sweep and dust the classroom. In a way, I felt that my entire future depended on how thoroughly I cleaned that room, and I was determined to do it so well that no one could find fault with my work. I found that few people ever stopped, when looking at his paintings, to ask whether Mr. Tanner was a Black painter, a French painter, or a German painter. They simply recognized that he could create something that the world wanted—a great painting—and his color didn't matter to them. When a Black girl learns to cook, wash dishes, sew, or write a book, or a Black boy learns to groom horses, grow sweet potatoes, produce butter, build a house, or practice medicine as well or better than anyone else, they will be rewarded regardless of race. In the long run, the world is going to seek out the best, and any differences in race, religion, or past history won’t keep the world from getting what it wants.
I think that the whole future of my race hinges on the question as to whether or not it can make itself of such indispensable value that the people in the town and the state where we reside will feel that our presence is necessary to the happiness and well-being of the community. No man who continues to add something to the material, intellectual, and moral well-being of the place in which he lives is long left without proper reward. This is a great human law which cannot be permanently nullified.
I believe that the entire future of my race depends on whether we can prove ourselves to be so essential that the people in our town and state see our presence as vital to the happiness and well-being of the community. Anyone who contributes to the material, intellectual, and moral betterment of their community won’t go unrecognized for long. This is a fundamental human truth that can’t be permanently ignored.
The love of pleasure and excitement which seems in a large measure to possess the French people impressed itself upon me. I think they are more noted in this respect than is true of the people of my own race. In point of morality and moral earnestness I do not believe that the French are ahead of my own race in America. Severe competition and the great stress of life have led them to learn to do things more thoroughly and to exercise greater economy; but time, I think, will bring my race to the same point. In the matter of truth and high honour I do not believe that the average Frenchman is ahead of the American Negro; while so far as mercy and kindness to dumb animals go, I believe that my race is far ahead. In fact, when I left France, I had more faith in the future of the black man in America than I had ever possessed.
The French people’s love for pleasure and excitement really stood out to me. I think they’re more known for it compared to my own race. When it comes to morality and genuine moral concern, I don’t believe the French are ahead of my own race in America. Intense competition and the pressures of life have pushed them to do things more thoroughly and be more economical; however, I believe time will bring my race to the same level. Regarding truth and integrity, I don’t think the average Frenchman is superior to the American Black man; and when it comes to compassion and kindness towards animals, I believe my race is far more advanced. In fact, when I left France, I had more faith in the future of Black Americans than I had ever had before.
From Paris we went to London, and reached there early in July, just about the height of the London social season. Parliament was in session, and there was a great deal of gaiety. Mr. Garrison and other friends had provided us with a large number of letters of introduction, and they had also sent letters to other persons in different parts of the United Kingdom, apprising these people of our coming. Very soon after reaching London we were flooded with invitations to attend all manner of social functions, and a great many invitations came to me asking that I deliver public addresses. The most of these invitations I declined, for the reason that I wanted to rest. Neither were we able to accept more than a small proportion of the other invitations. The Rev. Dr. Brooke Herford and Mrs. Herford, whom I had known in Boston, consulted with the American Ambassador, the Hon. Joseph Choate, and arranged for me to speak at a public meeting to be held in Essex Hall. Mr. Choate kindly consented to preside. The meeting was largely attended. There were many distinguished persons present, among them several members of Parliament, including Mr. James Bryce, who spoke at the meeting. What the American Ambassador said in introducing me, as well as a synopsis of what I said, was widely published in England and in the American papers at the time. Dr. and Mrs. Herford gave Mrs. Washington and myself a reception, at which we had the privilege of meeting some of the best people in England. Throughout our stay in London Ambassador Choate was most kind and attentive to us. At the Ambassador's reception I met, for the first time, Mark Twain.
From Paris, we traveled to London, arriving early in July, right at the peak of the London social season. Parliament was in session, and there was a lot of excitement. Mr. Garrison and other friends had given us many letters of introduction and had also sent notifications to people in different parts of the UK, letting them know we were coming. Shortly after we arrived in London, we were overwhelmed with invitations to various social events, and I received a lot of requests to give public speeches. I declined most of these invitations because I wanted to take a break. We could only accept a small fraction of the other invitations. The Rev. Dr. Brooke Herford and Mrs. Herford, whom I had known in Boston, consulted with the American Ambassador, the Hon. Joseph Choate, and arranged for me to speak at a public meeting at Essex Hall. Mr. Choate kindly agreed to preside over the event. The meeting was well-attended, with many distinguished individuals present, including several members of Parliament, like Mr. James Bryce, who also spoke at the meeting. What the American Ambassador said while introducing me, as well as a summary of my speech, was widely reported in England and in American newspapers at the time. Dr. and Mrs. Herford hosted a reception for Mrs. Washington and me, where we had the privilege of meeting some of the finest people in England. Throughout our time in London, Ambassador Choate was incredibly kind and attentive to us. At the Ambassador's reception, I met Mark Twain for the first time.
We were the guests several times of Mrs. T. Fisher Unwin, the daughter of the English statesman, Richard Cobden. It seemed as if both Mr. and Mrs. Unwin could not do enough for our comfort and happiness. Later, for nearly a week, we were the guests of the daughter of John Bright, now Mrs. Clark, of Street, England. Both Mr. and Mrs. Clark, with their daughter, visited us at Tuskegee the next year. In Birmingham, England, we were the guests for several days of Mr. Joseph Sturge, whose father was a great abolitionist and friend of Whittier and Garrison. It was a great privilege to meet throughout England those who had known and honoured the late William Lloyd Garrison, the Hon. Frederick Douglass, and other abolitionists. The English abolitionists with whom we came in contact never seemed to tire of talking about these two Americans. Before going to England I had had no proper conception of the deep interest displayed by the abolitionists of England in the cause of freedom, nor did I realize the amount of substantial help given by them.
We were welcomed several times by Mrs. T. Fisher Unwin, the daughter of the English statesman Richard Cobden. It felt like both Mr. and Mrs. Unwin went out of their way to ensure our comfort and happiness. Later, we spent nearly a week as guests of John Bright's daughter, now Mrs. Clark, who lives in Street, England. The Clarks, along with their daughter, visited us at Tuskegee the following year. In Birmingham, England, we were guests for several days at the home of Mr. Joseph Sturge, whose father was a prominent abolitionist and a friend of Whittier and Garrison. It was a wonderful opportunity to meet people across England who had known and respected the late William Lloyd Garrison, the Hon. Frederick Douglass, and other abolitionists. The English abolitionists we met never seemed to tire of discussing these two Americans. Before traveling to England, I had no real understanding of the profound interest the abolitionists in England showed for the cause of freedom, nor did I grasp the significant support they provided.
In Bristol, England, both Mrs. Washington and I spoke at the Women's Liberal Club. I was also the principal speaker at the Commencement exercises of the Royal College for the Blind. These exercises were held in the Crystal Palace, and the presiding officer was the late Duke of Westminster, who was said to be, I believe, the richest man in England, if not in the world. The Duke, as well as his wife and their daughter, seemed to be pleased with what I said, and thanked me heartily. Through the kindness of Lady Aberdeen, my wife and I were enabled to go with a party of those who were attending the International Congress of Women, then in session in London, to see Queen Victoria, at Windsor Castle, where, afterward, we were all the guests of her Majesty at tea. In our party was Miss Susan B. Anthony, and I was deeply impressed with the fact that one did not often get an opportunity to see, during the same hour, two women so remarkable in different ways as Susan B. Anthony and Queen Victoria.
In Bristol, England, both Mrs. Washington and I spoke at the Women's Liberal Club. I was also the main speaker at the graduation ceremony of the Royal College for the Blind. This event took place in the Crystal Palace, and the presiding officer was the late Duke of Westminster, who was said to be, as far as I know, the richest man in England, if not the world. The Duke, along with his wife and daughter, seemed happy with what I said and thanked me warmly. Thanks to the generosity of Lady Aberdeen, my wife and I were able to join a group attending the International Congress of Women, which was happening in London, to meet Queen Victoria at Windsor Castle, where we were later all guests of her Majesty for tea. Our group included Miss Susan B. Anthony, and I was struck by how rare it is to meet two such extraordinary women in different ways as Susan B. Anthony and Queen Victoria within the same hour.
In the House of Commons, which we visited several times, we met Sir Henry M. Stanley. I talked with him about Africa and its relation to the American Negro, and after my interview with him I became more convinced than ever that there was no hope of the American Negro's improving his condition by emigrating to Africa.
In the House of Commons, which we visited a few times, we met Sir Henry M. Stanley. I spoke with him about Africa and its connection to African Americans, and after my conversation with him, I became more convinced than ever that there was no chance for African Americans to better their situation by moving to Africa.
On various occasions Mrs. Washington and I were the guests of Englishmen in their country homes, where, I think, one sees the Englishman at his best. In one thing, at least, I feel sure that the English are ahead of Americans, and that is, that they have learned how to get more out of life. The home life of the English seems to me to be about as perfect as anything can be. Everything moves like clockwork. I was impressed, too, with the deference that the servants show to their "masters" and "mistresses,"—terms which I suppose would not be tolerated in America. The English servant expects, as a rule, to be nothing but a servant, and so he perfects himself in the art to a degree that no class of servants in America has yet reached. In our country the servant expects to become, in a few years, a "master" himself. Which system is preferable? I will not venture an answer.
On several occasions, Mrs. Washington and I were guests of English people in their country homes, where I believe you see the English at their best. One thing I’m sure of is that the English have figured out how to enjoy life more than Americans. To me, the home life of the English is about as perfect as it gets. Everything runs like a well-oiled machine. I was also struck by the respect that the servants show their "masters" and "mistresses"—terms that I assume wouldn’t be accepted in America. English servants generally expect to be just that, and as a result, they have mastered their roles in a way that no group of servants in America has achieved yet. In our country, servants often hope to become "masters" themselves within a few years. Which system is better? I won’t take a position on that.
Another thing that impressed itself upon me throughout England was the high regard that all classes have for law and order, and the ease and thoroughness with which everything is done. The Englishmen, I found, took plenty of time for eating, as for everything else. I am not sure if, in the long run, they do not accomplish as much or more than rushing, nervous Americans do.
Another thing that stood out to me during my time in England was the strong appreciation that people of all backgrounds have for law and order, as well as the ease and efficiency with which everything is done. I noticed that the English take their time when it comes to meals, just like they do with everything else. I'm not sure if, in the long run, they don't achieve as much, if not more, than the fast-paced, anxious Americans.
My visit to England gave me a higher regard for the nobility than I had had. I had no idea that they were so generally loved and respected by the classes, nor had I any correct conception of how much time and money they spent in works of philanthropy, and how much real heart they put into this work. My impression had been that they merely spent money freely and had a "good time."
My trip to England gave me a greater appreciation for the nobility than I had before. I had no idea they were so widely loved and respected by the public, nor did I realize how much time and money they dedicated to charity, or how genuinely invested they were in this work. I thought they just spent money without a care and enjoyed a "good time."
It was hard for me to get accustomed to speaking to English audiences. The average Englishman is so serious, and is so tremendously in earnest about everything, that when I told a story that would have made an American audience roar with laughter, the Englishmen simply looked me straight in the face without even cracking a smile.
It was tough for me to get used to speaking to English audiences. The average Englishman is so serious and incredibly earnest about everything that when I told a story that would have made an American audience burst out laughing, the Englishmen just looked me in the eye without even smiling.
When the Englishman takes you into his heart and friendship, he binds you there as with cords of steel, and I do not believe that there are many other friendships that are so lasting or so satisfactory. Perhaps I can illustrate this point in no better way than by relating the following incident. Mrs. Washington and I were invited to attend a reception given by the Duke and Duchess of Sutherland, at Stafford House—said to be the finest house in London; I may add that I believe the Duchess of Sutherland is said to be the most beautiful woman in England. There must have been at least three hundred persons at this reception. Twice during the evening the Duchess sought us out for a conversation, and she asked me to write her when we got home, and tell her more about the work at Tuskegee. This I did. When Christmas came we were surprised and delighted to receive her photograph with her autograph on it. The correspondence has continued, and we now feel that in the Duchess of Sutherland we have one of our warmest friends.
When an Englishman opens his heart and offers his friendship, he ties you to him with cords of steel, and I don't think many friendships are as enduring or fulfilling. I can illustrate this better by sharing a story. Mrs. Washington and I were invited to a reception hosted by the Duke and Duchess of Sutherland at Stafford House—arguably the most beautiful house in London. I should mention that the Duchess of Sutherland is often considered the most lovely woman in England. There must have been at least three hundred guests at the reception. Twice during the evening, the Duchess came over to talk to us, and she asked me to write to her when we got home to share more about the work at Tuskegee. I did just that. When Christmas arrived, we were pleasantly surprised to receive her photograph with her autograph. Our correspondence has continued, and we now feel that the Duchess of Sutherland is one of our closest friends.
After three months in Europe we sailed from Southampton in the steamship St. Louis. On this steamer there was a fine library that had been presented to the ship by the citizens of St. Louis, Mo. In this library I found a life of Frederick Douglass, which I began reading. I became especially interested in Mr. Douglass's description of the way he was treated on shipboard during his first or second visit to England. In this description he told how he was not permitted to enter the cabin, but had to confine himself to the deck of the ship. A few minutes after I had finished reading this description I was waited on by a committee of ladies and gentlemen with the request that I deliver an address at a concert which was to begin the following evening. And yet there are people who are bold enough to say that race feeling in America is not growing less intense! At this concert the Hon. Benjamin B. Odell, Jr., the present governor of New York, presided. I was never given a more cordial hearing anywhere. A large proportion of the passengers were Southern people. After the concert some of the passengers proposed that a subscription be raised to help the work at Tuskegee, and the money to support several scholarships was the result.
After three months in Europe, we sailed from Southampton on the steamship St. Louis. This ship had a great library that the people of St. Louis, Mo., had donated. In this library, I found a biography of Frederick Douglass, which I started reading. I became particularly interested in Douglass's account of how he was treated on board during his first or second visit to England. He described how he wasn’t allowed to enter the cabin and had to stay on the deck of the ship. Just a few minutes after I finished reading this account, a group of ladies and gentlemen approached me with a request to give a speech at a concert that was set for the following evening. And yet, some people still bravely claim that racial tensions in America aren’t becoming any less intense! At this concert, the Honorable Benjamin B. Odell, Jr., the current governor of New York, was in charge. I’ve never received a warmer welcome anywhere. A large number of the passengers were from the South. After the concert, some passengers suggested raising funds to support efforts at Tuskegee, resulting in donations for several scholarships.
While we were in Paris I was very pleasantly surprised to receive the following invitation from the citizens of West Virginia and of the city near which I had spent my boyhood days:—
While we were in Paris, I was really surprised and pleased to receive the following invitation from the people of West Virginia and the city where I spent my childhood:—
Charleston, W. Va., May 16, 1899.
Charleston, WV, May 16, 1899.
Professor Booker T. Washington, Paris, France:
Professor Booker T. Washington, Paris, France:
Dear Sir: Many of the best citizens of West Virginia have united in liberal expressions of admiration and praise of your worth and work, and desire that on your return from Europe you should favour them with your presence and with the inspiration of your words. We must sincerely indorse this move, and on behalf of the citizens of Charleston extend to your our most cordial invitation to have you come to us, that we may honour you who have done so much by your life and work to honour us.
Dear Sir: Many of the best citizens of West Virginia have come together to express their admiration and praise for your worth and work, and they hope that upon your return from Europe, you will honor us with your presence and inspiring words. We wholeheartedly support this initiative and, on behalf of the citizens of Charleston, extend our warmest invitation for you to come to us, so we can honor you for all you have done with your life and work to honor us.
We are,
We are
Very truly yours,
Sincerely,
The Common Council of the City of Charleston,
The Common Council of the City of Charleston,
By W. Herman Smith, Mayor.
By W. Herman Smith, Mayor.
This invitation from the City Council of Charleston was accompanied by the following:—
This invitation from the City Council of Charleston came with the following:—
Professor Booker T. Washington, Paris, France:
Professor Booker T. Washington, Paris, France:
Dear Sir: We, the citizens of Charleston and West Virginia, desire to express our pride in you and the splendid career that you have thus far accomplished, and ask that we be permitted to show our pride and interest in a substantial way.
Dear Sir: We, the people of Charleston and West Virginia, want to express our pride in you and the impressive career you've built so far, and we ask for the opportunity to show our pride and support in a meaningful way.
Your recent visit to your old home in our midst awoke within us the keenest regret that we were not permitted to hear you and render some substantial aid to your work, before you left for Europe.
Your recent visit to your old home among us filled us with the deepest regret that we weren't able to listen to you and offer some meaningful help with your work before you left for Europe.
In view of the foregoing, we earnestly invite you to share the hospitality of our city upon your return from Europe, and give us the opportunity to hear you and put ourselves in touch with your work in a way that will be most gratifying to yourself, and that we may receive the inspiration of your words and presence.
In light of all this, we sincerely invite you to enjoy the hospitality of our city when you return from Europe. We hope to hear from you and connect with your work in a way that will be truly fulfilling for you, and so that we can be inspired by your words and presence.
An early reply to this invitation, with an indication of the time you may reach our city, will greatly oblige,
An early response to this invitation, including the time you expect to arrive in our city, would be greatly appreciated.
Yours very respectfully,
Yours respectfully,
The Charleston Daily Gazette, The Daily Mail-Tribune; G.W. Atkinson, Governor; E.L. Boggs, Secretary to Governor; Wm. M.O. Dawson, Secretary of State; L.M. La Follette, Auditor; J.R. Trotter, Superintendent of Schools; E.W. Wilson, ex-Governor; W.A. MacCorkle, ex-Governor; John Q. Dickinson, President Kanawha Valley Bank; L. Prichard, President Charleston National Bank; Geo. S. Couch, President Kanawha National Bank; Ed. Reid, Cashier Kanawha National Bank; Geo. S. Laidley, Superintended City Schools; L.E. McWhorter, President Board of Education; Chas. K. Payne, wholesale merchant; and many others.
The Charleston Daily Gazette, The Daily Mail-Tribune; G.W. Atkinson, Governor; E.L. Boggs, Secretary to the Governor; Wm. M.O. Dawson, Secretary of State; L.M. La Follette, Auditor; J.R. Trotter, Superintendent of Schools; E.W. Wilson, former Governor; W.A. MacCorkle, former Governor; John Q. Dickinson, President of Kanawha Valley Bank; L. Prichard, President of Charleston National Bank; Geo. S. Couch, President of Kanawha National Bank; Ed. Reid, Cashier of Kanawha National Bank; Geo. S. Laidley, Superintendent of City Schools; L.E. McWhorter, President of the Board of Education; Chas. K. Payne, wholesale merchant; and many others.
This invitation, coming as it did from the City Council, the state officers, and all the substantial citizens of both races of the community where I had spent my boyhood, and from which I had gone a few years before, unknown, in poverty and ignorance, in quest of an education, not only surprised me, but almost unmanned me. I could not understand what I had done to deserve it all.
This invitation, coming from the City Council, the state officials, and all the prominent citizens of both races in the community where I had spent my childhood, and from which I had left a few years earlier, unnoticed and in poverty and ignorance, in search of an education, not only shocked me but nearly left me speechless. I couldn’t grasp what I had done to deserve all of this.
I accepted the invitation, and at the appointed day was met at the railway station at Charleston by a committee headed by ex-Governor W.A. MacCorkle, and composed of men of both races. The public reception was held in the Opera-House at Charleston. The Governor of the state, the Hon. George W. Atkinson, presided, and an address of welcome was made by ex-Governor MacCorkle. A prominent part in the reception was taken by the coloured citizens. The Opera-House was filled with citizens of both races, and among the white people were many for whom I had worked when I was a boy. The next day Governor and Mrs. Atkinson gave me a public reception at the State House, which was attended by all classes.
I accepted the invitation and on the scheduled day, I was
Not long after this the coloured people in Atlanta, Georgia, gave me a reception at which the Governor of the state presided, and a similar reception was given me in New Orleans, which was presided over by the Mayor of the city. Invitations came from many other places which I was not able to accept.
Not long after this, the people of color in Atlanta, Georgia, hosted a reception for me, with the Governor of the state in attendance, and a similar reception took place in New Orleans, led by the Mayor of the city. I received invitations from many other places that I couldn’t accept.
Chapter XVII. Last Words
Before going to Europe some events came into my life which were great surprises to me. In fact, my whole life has largely been one of surprises. I believe that any man's life will be filled with constant, unexpected encouragements of this kind if he makes up his mind to do his level best each day of his life—that is, tries to make each day reach as nearly as possible the high-water mark of pure, unselfish, useful living. I pity the man, black or white, who has never experienced the joy and satisfaction that come to one by reason of an effort to assist in making some one else more useful and more happy.
Before I went to Europe, some surprising events happened in my life. Actually, my entire life has mostly been a series of surprises. I believe that anyone’s life will be filled with constant, unexpected encouragement like this if they commit to doing their best every day—that is, trying to make each day come as close as possible to the peak of pure, selfless, and meaningful living. I feel sorry for anyone, regardless of race, who has never felt the joy and satisfaction that come from trying to help someone else become more useful and happy.
Six months before he died, and nearly a year after he had been stricken with paralysis, General Armstrong expressed a wish to visit Tuskegee again before he passed away. Notwithstanding the fact that he had lost the use of his limbs to such an extent that he was practically helpless, his wish was gratified, and he was brought to Tuskegee. The owners of the Tuskegee Railroad, white men living in the town, offered to run a special train, without cost, out of the main station—Chehaw, five miles away—to meet him. He arrived on the school grounds about nine o'clock in the evening. Some one had suggested that we give the General a "pine-knot torchlight reception." This plan was carried out, and the moment that his carriage entered the school grounds he began passing between two lines of lighted and waving "fat pine" wood knots held by over a thousand students and teachers. The whole thing was so novel and surprising that the General was completely overcome with happiness. He remained a guest in my home for nearly two months, and, although almost wholly without the use of voice or limb, he spent nearly every hour in devising ways and means to help the South. Time and time again he said to me, during this visit, that it was not only the duty of the country to assist in elevating the Negro of the South, but the poor white man as well. At the end of his visit I resolved anew to devote myself more earnestly than ever to the cause which was so near his heart. I said that if a man in his condition was willing to think, work, and act, I should not be wanting in furthering in every possible way the wish of his heart.
Six months before he died, and almost a year after he had been hit with paralysis, General Armstrong expressed a desire to visit Tuskegee again before he passed away. Despite the fact that he had lost the use of his limbs to the point of being practically helpless, his wish was granted, and he was brought to Tuskegee. The owners of the Tuskegee Railroad, white men from the town, offered to run a special train at no cost from the main station—Chehaw, five miles away—to meet him. He arrived on the school grounds around nine o'clock in the evening. Someone suggested that we give the General a "pine-knot torchlight reception." This plan was carried out, and as soon as his carriage entered the school grounds, he began passing between two lines of lighted and waving "fat pine" wood knots held by over a thousand students and teachers. The whole experience was so unique and surprising that the General was completely overwhelmed with happiness. He stayed as a guest in my home for nearly two months, and although he could hardly use his voice or limbs, he spent nearly every hour thinking of ways to help the South. Time and time again during this visit, he told me that it was not only the duty of the country to help elevate the Black population of the South, but the poor white man as well. At the end of his visit, I resolved once again to dedicate myself more earnestly than ever to the cause that was so dear to his heart. I said that if a man in his condition was willing to think, work, and take action, I should not hold back in supporting his wishes in every possible way.
The death of General Armstrong, a few weeks later, gave me the privilege of getting acquainted with one of the finest, most unselfish, and most attractive men that I have ever come in contact with. I refer to the Rev. Dr. Hollis B. Frissell, now the Principal of the Hampton Institute, and General Armstrong's successor. Under the clear, strong, and almost perfect leadership of Dr. Frissell, Hampton has had a career of prosperity and usefulness that is all that the General could have wished for. It seems to be the constant effort of Dr. Frissell to hide his own great personality behind that of General Armstrong—to make himself of "no reputation" for the sake of the cause.
The death of General Armstrong, a few weeks later, allowed me to meet one of the finest, most selfless, and most appealing people I've ever encountered. I'm talking about Rev. Dr. Hollis B. Frissell, who is now the Principal of the Hampton Institute and General Armstrong's successor. Under Dr. Frissell's clear, strong, and almost perfect leadership, Hampton has thrived and served its purpose in a way that would have made the General proud. Dr. Frissell seems to constantly work to downplay his own impressive personality in favor of General Armstrong's legacy—to make himself "no reputation" for the sake of the cause.
More than once I have been asked what was the greatest surprise that ever came to me. I have little hesitation in answering that question. It was the following letter, which came to me one Sunday morning when I was sitting on the veranda of my home at Tuskegee, surrounded by my wife and three children:—
More than once I've been asked what my biggest surprise ever was. I can confidently answer that question. It was this letter that arrived one Sunday morning while I was sitting on the porch of my home in Tuskegee, surrounded by my wife and three kids:—
Harvard University, Cambridge, May 28, 1896.
Harvard University, Cambridge, May 28, 1896.
President Booker T. Washington,
President Booker T. Washington,
My Dear Sir: Harvard University desired to confer on you at the approaching Commencement an honorary degree; but it is our custom to confer degrees only on gentlemen who are present. Our Commencement occurs this year on June 24, and your presence would be desirable from about noon till about five o'clock in the afternoon. Would it be possible for you to be in Cambridge on that day?
My Dear Sir: Harvard University wants to give you an honorary degree at the upcoming Commencement; however, we typically only award degrees to individuals who are present. This year's Commencement is on June 24, and we would like you to be there from around noon until about five o'clock in the afternoon. Would it be possible for you to be in Cambridge on that day?
Believe me, with great regard,
Trust me, with high regard,
Very truly yours,
Sincerely,
Charles W. Eliot.
Charles W. Eliot.
This was a recognition that had never in the slightest manner entered into my mind, and it was hard for me to realize that I was to be honoured by a degree from the oldest and most renowned university in America. As I sat upon my veranda, with this letter in my hand, tears came into my eyes. My whole former life—my life as a slave on the plantation, my work in the coal-mine, the times when I was without food and clothing, when I made my bed under a sidewalk, my struggles for an education, the trying days I had had at Tuskegee, days when I did not know where to turn for a dollar to continue the work there, the ostracism and sometimes oppression of my race,—all this passed before me and nearly overcame me.
This was a recognition that had never even crossed my mind, and it was hard for me to grasp that I was being honored with a degree from the oldest and most prestigious university in America. As I sat on my porch, holding this letter, tears filled my eyes. My entire past—my life as a slave on the plantation, my work in the coal mine, the times I went without food and clothing, when I made my bed on the sidewalk, my struggles for an education, the tough days I had at Tuskegee, days when I didn’t know where to find a dollar to keep going there, the exclusion and sometimes oppression of my race—rushed over me and nearly overwhelmed me.
I had never sought or cared for what the world calls fame. I have always looked upon fame as something to be used in accomplishing good. I have often said to my friends that if I can use whatever prominence may have come to me as an instrument with which to do good, I am content to have it. I care for it only as a means to be used for doing good, just as wealth may be used. The more I come into contact with wealthy people, the more I believe that they are growing in the direction of looking upon their money simply as an instrument which God has placed in their hand for doing good with. I never go to the office of Mr. John D. Rockefeller, who more than once has been generous to Tuskegee, without being reminded of this. The close, careful, and minute investigation that he always makes in order to be sure that every dollar that he gives will do the most good—an investigation that is just as searching as if he were investing money in a business enterprise—convinces me that the growth in this direction is most encouraging.
I’ve never wanted or cared about what people call fame. I’ve always seen fame as something to be used to achieve good. I often tell my friends that if I can use any recognition I might have to do something positive, then I’m happy to have it. I value it only as a tool for doing good, just like wealth can be used. The more I interact with wealthy individuals, the more I believe they’re starting to see their money just as a tool that God has given them for doing good. I never visit Mr. John D. Rockefeller’s office, who has been generous to Tuskegee more than once, without being reminded of this. The careful and thorough research he always conducts to ensure that every dollar he gives will be used effectively—research that is just as detailed as if he were investing in a business—convinces me that this trend is very encouraging.
At nine o'clock, on the morning of June 24, I met President Eliot, the Board of Overseers of Harvard University, and the other guests, at the designated place on the university grounds, for the purpose of being escorted to Sanders Theatre, where the Commencement exercises were to be held and degrees conferred. Among others invited to be present for the purpose of receiving a degree at this time were General Nelson A. Miles, Dr. Bell, the inventor of the Bell telephone, Bishop Vincent, and the Rev. Minot J. Savage. We were placed in line immediately behind the President and the Board of Overseers, and directly afterward the Governor of Massachusetts, escorted by the Lancers, arrived and took his place in the line of march by the side of President Eliot. In the line there were also various other officers and professors, clad in cap and gown. In this order we marched to Sanders Theatre, where, after the usual Commencement exercises, came the conferring of the honorary degrees. This, it seems, is always considered the most interesting feature at Harvard. It is not known, until the individuals appear, upon whom the honorary degrees are to be conferred, and those receiving these honours are cheered by the students and others in proportion to their popularity. During the conferring of the degrees excitement and enthusiasm are at the highest pitch.
At 9:00 AM on June 24, I met President Eliot, the Board of Overseers of Harvard University, and the other guests at the designated location on campus to be escorted to Sanders Theatre, where the Commencement exercises were taking place and degrees would be awarded. Among those invited to receive a degree were General Nelson A. Miles, Dr. Bell, the inventor of the Bell telephone, Bishop Vincent, and the Rev. Minot J. Savage. We were lined up right behind the President and the Board of Overseers, and soon after, the Governor of Massachusetts arrived with the Lancers and took his place in the march next to President Eliot. The line included various other officers and professors dressed in cap and gown. We marched to Sanders Theatre, where, after the usual Commencement activities, the honorary degrees were awarded. This is typically considered the most exciting part at Harvard. The names of those receiving honorary degrees are not announced until they appear, and the recipients are cheered by students and others based on their popularity. During the degree conferral, excitement and enthusiasm reach their peak.
When my name was called, I rose, and President Eliot, in beautiful and strong English, conferred upon me the degree of Master of Arts. After these exercises were over, those who had received honorary degrees were invited to lunch with the President. After the lunch we were formed in line again, and were escorted by the Marshal of the day, who that year happened to be Bishop William Lawrence, through the grounds, where, at different points, those who had been honoured were called by name and received the Harvard yell. This march ended at Memorial Hall, where the alumni dinner was served. To see over a thousand strong men, representing all that is best in State, Church, business, and education, with the glow and enthusiasm of college loyalty and college pride,—which has, I think, a peculiar Harvard flavour,—is a sight that does not easily fade from memory.
When my name was called, I stood up, and President Eliot, in eloquent and powerful English, awarded me the degree of Master of Arts. After the ceremonies concluded, those who received honorary degrees were invited to join the President for lunch. After lunch, we lined up again and were led by the day's Marshal, Bishop William Lawrence, through the grounds, where at various points, the honorees were called by name and received the Harvard cheer. This procession ended at Memorial Hall, where we had the alumni dinner. Seeing over a thousand strong men, representing the best in government, religion, business, and education, filled with the spirit and pride of college loyalty—which, I believe, has a unique Harvard essence—is a sight that stays with you for a long time.
Among the speakers after dinner were President Eliot, Governor Roger Wolcott, General Miles, Dr. Minot J. Savage, the Hon. Henry Cabot Lodge, and myself. When I was called upon, I said, among other things:—
Among the speakers after dinner were President Eliot, Governor Roger Wolcott, General Miles, Dr. Minot J. Savage, the Hon. Henry Cabot Lodge, and me. When it was my turn to speak, I said, among other things:—
It would in some measure relieve my embarrassment if I could, even in a slight degree, feel myself worthy of the great honour which you do me to-day. Why you have called me from the Black Belt of the South, from among my humble people, to share in the honours of this occasion, is not for me to explain; and yet it may not be inappropriate for me to suggest that it seems to me that one of the most vital questions that touch our American life is how to bring the strong, wealthy, and learned into helpful touch with the poorest, most ignorant, and humblest, and at the same time make one appreciate the vitalizing, strengthening influence of the other. How shall we make the mansion on yon Beacon Street feel and see the need of the spirits in the lowliest cabin in Alabama cotton-fields or Louisiana sugar-bottoms? This problem Harvard University is solving, not by bringing itself down, but by bringing the masses up.
It would somewhat ease my discomfort if I could, even a little, feel worthy of the great honor you’re giving me today. Why you’ve invited me from the Black Belt of the South, from among my humble community, to share in this occasion’s honors is something I can’t explain; however, I think it’s worth suggesting that one of the most important issues facing American life is figuring out how to connect the strong, wealthy, and educated with the poorest, most ignorant, and humblest, while also helping each side appreciate the vital, strengthening influence of the other. How can we make the mansion on Beacon Street recognize and understand the needs of the spirits in the simplest cabin in the cotton fields of Alabama or the sugar-bottoms of Louisiana? This is a challenge that Harvard University is addressing, not by lowering itself, but by uplifting the masses.
If my life in the past has meant anything in the lifting up of my people and the bringing about of better relations between your race and mine, I assure you from this day it will mean doubly more. In the economy of God there is but one standard by which an individual can succeed—there is but one for a race. This country demands that every race shall measure itself by the American standard. By it a race must rise or fall, succeed or fail, and in the last analysis mere sentiment counts for little. During the next half-century and more, my race must continue passing through the severe American crucible. We are to be tested in our patience, our forbearance, our perseverance, our power to endure wrong, to withstand temptations, to economize, to acquire and use skill; in our ability to compete, to succeed in commerce, to disregard the superficial for the real, the appearance for the substance, to be great and yet small, learned and yet simple, high and yet the servant of all.
If my life in the past has meant anything in uplifting my people and improving relations between our races, I promise you that from this day forward, it will mean even more. In God's economy, there is only one standard for an individual to succeed—and only one for a race. This country expects every race to measure itself by the American standard. By this standard, a race must rise or fall, succeed or fail, and ultimately, mere sentiment counts for very little. Over the next fifty years and beyond, my race must continue to endure the tough American test. We will be evaluated on our patience, our ability to persevere, our capacity to endure hardships, resist temptations, manage our resources, and acquire and apply skills. We need to compete, succeed in business, look beyond the superficial for what is real, focus on substance over appearance, strive for greatness while embracing humility, seek knowledge while remaining approachable, and lift ourselves high while serving everyone.
As this was the first time that a New England university had conferred an honorary degree upon a Negro, it was the occasion of much newspaper comment throughout the country. A correspondent of a New York paper said:—
As this was the first time a New England university awarded an honorary degree to a Black person, it generated a lot of newspaper coverage across the country. A reporter from a New York paper stated:—
When the name of Booker T. Washington was called, and he arose to acknowledge and accept, there was such an outburst of applause as greeted no other name except that of the popular soldier patriot, General Miles. The applause was not studied and stiff, sympathetic and condoling; it was enthusiasm and admiration. Every part of the audience from pit to gallery joined in, and a glow covered the cheeks of those around me, proving sincere appreciation of the rising struggle of an ex-slave and the work he has accomplished for his race.
When Booker T. Washington's name was called, and he stood up to acknowledge and accept, there was an eruption of applause that welcomed no other name except that of the beloved soldier, General Miles. The applause wasn’t forced or stiff; it was filled with genuine enthusiasm and admiration. Every section of the audience, from the front rows to the back, joined in, and many around me flushed with pride, showing their sincere appreciation for the rising journey of an ex-slave and the work he has done for his people.
A Boston paper said, editorially:—
A Boston newspaper stated editorially:—
In conferring the honorary degree of Master of Arts upon the Principal of Tuskegee Institute, Harvard University has honoured itself as well as the object of this distinction. The work which Professor Booker T. Washington has accomplished for the education, good citizenship, and popular enlightenment in his chosen field of labour in the South entitles him to rank with our national benefactors. The university which can claim him on its list of sons, whether in regular course or honoris causa, may be proud.
By awarding the honorary degree of Master of Arts to the Principal of Tuskegee Institute, Harvard University has honored both itself and the recipient of this distinction. The work that Professor Booker T. Washington has done for education, good citizenship, and public awareness in his dedicated efforts in the South places him among our national benefactors. The university that can include him among its alumni, whether through traditional graduation or honoris causa, has every reason to be proud.
It has been mentioned that Mr. Washington is the first of his race to receive an honorary degree from a New England university. This, in itself, is a distinction. But the degree was not conferred because Mr. Washington is a coloured man, or because he was born in slavery, but because he has shown, by his work for the elevation of the people of the Black Belt of the South, a genius and a broad humanity which count for greatness in any man, whether his skin be white or black.
It has been noted that Mr. Washington is the first person of his race to receive an honorary degree from a New England university. This, by itself, is a significant achievement. However, the degree was not awarded because Mr. Washington is a Black man or because he was born into slavery, but because he has demonstrated, through his efforts to uplift the people of the Black Belt in the South, a talent and a broad compassion that are marks of greatness in any individual, regardless of whether their skin is white or black.
Another Boston paper said:—
Another Boston newspaper said:—
It is Harvard which, first among New England colleges, confers an honorary degree upon a black man. No one who has followed the history of Tuskegee and its work can fail to admire the courage, persistence, and splendid common sense of Booker T. Washington. Well may Harvard honour the ex-slave, the value of whose services, alike to his race and country, only the future can estimate.
It is Harvard that, first among New England colleges, awards an honorary degree to a black man. Anyone who has followed the history of Tuskegee and its work can’t help but admire the courage, persistence, and remarkable common sense of Booker T. Washington. Harvard rightly honors the former slave, whose contributions to both his race and country can only be measured by the future.
The correspondent of the New York Times wrote:—
The reporter for the New York Times wrote:—
All the speeches were enthusiastically received, but the coloured man carried off the oratorical honours, and the applause which broke out when he had finished was vociferous and long-continued.
All the speeches were warmly received, but the man of color took home the oratorical honors, and the applause that erupted when he finished was loud and lasted a long time.
Soon after I began work at Tuskegee I formed a resolution, in the secret of my heart, that I would try to build up a school that would be of so much service to the country that the President of the United States would one day come to see it. This was, I confess, rather a bold resolution, and for a number of years I kept it hidden in my own thoughts, not daring to share it with any one.
Soon after I started working at Tuskegee, I made a promise to myself that I would try to create a school that would be so beneficial to the country that the President of the United States would eventually come to see it. I admit this was a pretty ambitious goal, and for many years, I kept it to myself, not daring to share it with anyone.
In November, 1897, I made the first move in this direction, and that was in securing a visit from a member of President McKinley's Cabinet, the Hon. James Wilson, Secretary of Agriculture. He came to deliver an address at the formal opening of the Slater-Armstrong Agricultural Building, our first large building to be used for the purpose of giving training to our students in agriculture and kindred branches.
In November 1897, I took the first step in this direction by arranging a visit from a member of President McKinley's Cabinet, the Hon. James Wilson, Secretary of Agriculture. He came to give a speech at the official opening of the Slater-Armstrong Agricultural Building, which was our first large facility dedicated to training our students in agriculture and related fields.
In the fall of 1898 I heard that President McKinley was likely to visit Atlanta, Georgia, for the purpose of taking part in the Peace Jubilee exercises to be held there to commemorate the successful close of the Spanish-American war. At this time I had been hard at work, together with our teachers, for eighteen years, trying to build up a school that we thought would be of service to the Nation, and I determined to make a direct effort to secure a visit from the President and his Cabinet. I went to Washington, and I was not long in the city before I found my way to the White House. When I got there I found the waiting rooms full of people, and my heart began to sink, for I feared there would not be much chance of my seeing the President that day, if at all. But, at any rate, I got an opportunity to see Mr. J. Addison Porter, the secretary to the President, and explained to him my mission. Mr. Porter kindly sent my card directly to the President, and in a few minutes word came from Mr. McKinley that he would see me.
In the fall of 1898, I heard that President McKinley was likely to visit Atlanta, Georgia, to participate in the Peace Jubilee events celebrating the successful end of the Spanish-American War. At that time, I had been working hard with our teachers for eighteen years to build a school that we believed would benefit the Nation, and I decided to make a direct effort to secure a visit from the President and his Cabinet. I went to Washington, and it wasn't long before I found my way to the White House. When I arrived, I saw the waiting rooms filled with people, and my heart sank, as I feared there wouldn’t be much chance of seeing the President that day, if at all. However, I did get a chance to speak with Mr. J. Addison Porter, the President's secretary, and explained my mission to him. Mr. Porter kindly sent my card directly to the President, and a few minutes later, I received word from Mr. McKinley that he would see me.
How any man can see so many people of all kinds, with all kinds of errands, and do so much hard work, and still keep himself calm, patient, and fresh for each visitor in the way that President McKinley does, I cannot understand. When I saw the President he kindly thanked me for the work which we were doing at Tuskegee for the interests of the country. I then told him, briefly, the object of my visit. I impressed upon him the fact that a visit from the Chief Executive of the Nation would not only encourage our students and teachers, but would help the entire race. He seemed interested, but did not make a promise to go to Tuskegee, for the reason that his plans about going to Atlanta were not then fully made; but he asked me to call the matter to his attention a few weeks later.
I can’t understand how a person can meet so many different people with various tasks, handle so much hard work, and still remain calm, patient, and energized for each visitor like President McKinley does. When I met the President, he graciously thanked me for the work we were doing at Tuskegee for the country’s benefit. I briefly explained the purpose of my visit. I emphasized that a visit from the nation’s Chief Executive would not only uplift our students and teachers but would also benefit the entire race. He seemed interested but didn’t make any promises to visit Tuskegee since his plans for going to Atlanta weren’t fully set at that moment; however, he asked me to remind him about it in a few weeks.
By the middle of the following month the President had definitely decided to attend the Peace Jubilee at Atlanta. I went to Washington again and saw him, with a view of getting him to extend his trip to Tuskegee. On this second visit Mr. Charles W. Hare, a prominent white citizen of Tuskegee, kindly volunteered to accompany me, to reenforce my invitation with one from the white people of Tuskegee and the vicinity.
By the middle of the following month, the President had made a firm decision to attend the Peace Jubilee in Atlanta. I traveled to Washington again to see him, hoping to persuade him to extend his trip to Tuskegee. On this second visit, Mr. Charles W. Hare, a prominent white resident of Tuskegee, kindly offered to join me to support my invitation with one from the white community of Tuskegee and the surrounding area.
Just previous to my going to Washington the second time, the country had been excited, and the coloured people greatly depressed, because of several severe race riots which had occurred at different points in the South. As soon as I saw the President, I perceived that his heart was greatly burdened by reason of these race disturbances. Although there were many people waiting to see him, he detained me for some time, discussing the condition and prospects of the race. He remarked several times that he was determined to show his interest and faith in the race, not merely in words, but by acts. When I told him that I thought that at that time scarcely anything would go farther in giving hope and encouragement to the race than the fact that the President of the Nation would be willing to travel one hundred and forty miles out of his way to spend a day at a Negro institution, he seemed deeply impressed.
Just before I went to Washington for the second time, the country was in an uproar, and people of color were feeling very down due to several intense race riots that had happened in different parts of the South. As soon as I met the President, I could see that he was weighed down by these racial issues. Even though many people were waiting to see him, he took some time to talk with me about the state and future of the Black community. He said several times that he was committed to showing his support and belief in the race, not just through words, but through actions. When I told him that I thought nothing would provide more hope and encouragement to the community than the fact that the President would go out of his way to spend a day at a Black institution, he seemed really moved.
While I was with the President, a white citizen of Atlanta, a Democrat and an ex-slaveholder, came into the room, and the President asked his opinion as to the wisdom of his going to Tuskegee. Without hesitation the Atlanta man replied that it was the proper thing for him to do. This opinion was reenforced by that friend of the race, Dr. J.L.M. Curry. The President promised that he would visit our school on the 16th of December.
While I was with the President, a white man from Atlanta, a Democrat and a former slave owner, walked into the room, and the President asked for his thoughts on whether he should go to Tuskegee. Without any hesitation, the Atlanta man said it was the right decision for him. This view was supported by Dr. J.L.M. Curry, a friend of the race. The President promised that he would visit our school on December 16th.
When it became known that the President was going to visit our school, the white citizens of the town of Tuskegee—a mile distant from the school—were as much pleased as were our students and teachers. The white people of this town, including both men and women, began arranging to decorate the town, and to form themselves into committees for the purpose of cooperating with the officers of our school in order that the distinguished visitor might have a fitting reception. I think I never realized before this how much the white people of Tuskegee and vicinity thought of our institution. During the days when we were preparing for the President's reception, dozens of these people came to me and said that, while they did not want to push themselves into prominence, if there was anything they could do to help, or to relieve me personally, I had but to intimate it and they would be only too glad to assist. In fact, the thing that touched me almost as deeply as the visit of the President itself was the deep pride which all classes of citizens in Alabama seemed to take in our work.
When it became known that the President was going to visit our school, the white citizens of Tuskegee—a mile away—were just as excited as our students and teachers. The people in town, both men and women, started making plans to decorate the area and set up committees to work with our school staff to ensure that the distinguished visitor received a proper welcome. I don’t think I fully grasped how much the white community in Tuskegee and the surrounding areas valued our institution until this moment. During the days we prepared for the President's visit, numerous people approached me, saying that although they didn’t want to draw attention to themselves, if there was anything they could do to help or make my job easier, all I had to do was ask, and they'd be more than happy to pitch in. In fact, what moved me almost as much as the President's visit itself was the deep pride that people from all backgrounds in Alabama seemed to have in our work.
The morning of December 16th brought to the little city of Tuskegee such a crowd as it had never seen before. With the President came Mrs. McKinley and all of the Cabinet officers but one; and most of them brought their wives or some members of their families. Several prominent generals came, including General Shafter and General Joseph Wheeler, who were recently returned from the Spanish-American war. There was also a host of newspaper correspondents. The Alabama Legislature was in session in Montgomery at this time. This body passed a resolution to adjourn for the purpose of visiting Tuskegee. Just before the arrival of the President's party the Legislature arrived, headed by the governor and other state officials.
The morning of December 16th brought an unprecedented crowd to the small city of Tuskegee. With the President came Mrs. McKinley and nearly all of the Cabinet members, along with most of their wives or some family members. Several notable generals were there, including General Shafter and General Joseph Wheeler, who had just returned from the Spanish-American War. A large number of newspaper reporters were also present. The Alabama Legislature was in session in Montgomery at the time and passed a resolution to adjourn in order to visit Tuskegee. Just before the President's group arrived, the Legislature showed up, led by the governor and other state officials.
The citizens of Tuskegee had decorated the town from the station to the school in a generous manner. In order to economize in the matter of time, we arranged to have the whole school pass in review before the President. Each student carried a stalk of sugar-cane with some open bolls of cotton fastened to the end of it. Following the students the work of all departments of the school passed in review, displayed on "floats" drawn by horses, mules, and oxen. On these floats we tried to exhibit not only the present work of the school, but to show the contrasts between the old methods of doing things and the new. As an example, we showed the old method of dairying in contrast with the improved methods, the old methods of tilling the soil in contrast with the new, the old methods of cooking and housekeeping in contrast with the new. These floats consumed an hour and a half of time in passing.
The people of Tuskegee had beautifully decorated the town from the train station to the school. To save time, we decided to have the entire school march past the President. Each student carried a stalk of sugar cane with some open cotton bolls attached to the end. Following the students, different departments of the school showcased their work on "floats" pulled by horses, mules, and oxen. On these floats, we aimed to highlight not just the current work of the school, but also to contrast the old ways of doing things with the new. For instance, we demonstrated the outdated methods of dairying compared to the improved techniques, the old ways of farming versus the new approaches, and the traditional methods of cooking and housekeeping in contrast with modern practices. The floats took an hour and a half to pass by.
In his address in our large, new chapel, which the students had recently completed, the President said, among other things:—
In his speech in our spacious, new chapel, which the students had just finished, the President mentioned, among other things:—
To meet you under such pleasant auspices and to have the opportunity of a personal observation of your work is indeed most gratifying. The Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute is ideal in its conception, and has already a large and growing reputation in the country, and is not unknown abroad. I congratulate all who are associated in this undertaking for the good work which it is doing in the education of its students to lead lives of honour and usefulness, thus exalting the race for which it was established.
Meeting you under such positive circumstances and having the chance to personally observe your work is truly satisfying. The Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute is a fantastic concept and has already built a strong and increasing reputation both nationally and internationally. I congratulate everyone involved in this initiative for the great work it's doing in educating its students to lead honorable and useful lives, thereby uplifting the race for which it was founded.
Nowhere, I think, could a more delightful location have been chosen for this unique educational experiment, which has attracted the attention and won the support even of conservative philanthropists in all sections of the country.
Nowhere, I think, could a more wonderful place have been chosen for this unique educational experiment, which has drawn attention and gained support even from conservative philanthropists across the country.
To speak of Tuskegee without paying special tribute to Booker T. Washington's genius and perseverance would be impossible. The inception of this noble enterprise was his, and he deserves high credit for it. His was the enthusiasm and enterprise which made its steady progress possible and established in the institution its present high standard of accomplishment. He has won a worthy reputation as one of the great leaders of his race, widely known and much respected at home and abroad as an accomplished educator, a great orator, and a true philanthropist.
It's impossible to talk about Tuskegee without giving special recognition to Booker T. Washington's intelligence and determination. He was the one who started this remarkable institution, and he deserves a lot of credit for that. His enthusiasm and initiative made its consistent growth possible and helped set the high standards of achievement that the school has today. He has built a well-deserved reputation as one of the prominent leaders of his community, widely recognized and respected both nationally and internationally as a skilled educator, an excellent speaker, and a genuine philanthropist.
The Hon. John D. Long, the Secretary of the Navy, said in part:—
The Hon. John D. Long, the Secretary of the Navy, said in part:—
I cannot make a speech to-day. My heart is too full—full of hope, admiration, and pride for my countrymen of both sections and both colours. I am filled with gratitude and admiration for your work, and from this time forward I shall have absolute confidence in your progress and in the solution of the problem in which you are engaged.
I can't give a speech today. My heart is too full—full of hope, admiration, and pride for my fellow citizens from all backgrounds. I'm grateful and impressed by your efforts, and from now on, I will have complete confidence in your progress and in solving the challenge you're facing.
The problem, I say, has been solved. A picture has been presented to-day which should be put upon canvas with the pictures of Washington and Lincoln, and transmitted to future time and generations—a picture which the press of the country should spread broadcast over the land, a most dramatic picture, and that picture is this: The President of the United States standing on this platform; on one side the Governor of Alabama, on the other, completing the trinity, a representative of a race only a few years ago in bondage, the coloured President of the Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute.
The issue, I believe, has been resolved. A moment has been presented today that deserves to be captured on canvas alongside the images of Washington and Lincoln, and passed down to future generations—a moment that the media should share widely across the country, a truly dramatic moment, and that moment is this: The President of the United States standing on this platform; on one side, the Governor of Alabama, and on the other, completing the trio, a representative of a race that was only a few years ago in bondage, the Black President of the Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute.
God bless the President under whose majesty such a scene as that is presented to the American people. God bless the state of Alabama, which is showing that it can deal with this problem for itself. God bless the orator, philanthropist, and disciple of the Great Master—who, if he were on earth, would be doing the same work—Booker T. Washington.
God bless the President under whose leadership such a scene is presented to the American people. God bless the state of Alabama for showing that it can handle this issue on its own. God bless the speaker, philanthropist, and follower of the Great Master—who, if he were alive today, would be doing the same work—Booker T. Washington.
Postmaster General Smith closed the address which he made with these words:—
Postmaster General Smith wrapped up his speech with these words:—
We have witnessed many spectacles within the last few days. We have seen the magnificent grandeur and the magnificent achievements of one of the great metropolitan cities of the South. We have seen heroes of the war pass by in procession. We have seen floral parades. But I am sure my colleagues will agree with me in saying that we have witnessed no spectacle more impressive and more encouraging, more inspiring for our future, than that which we have witnessed here this morning.
We’ve seen a lot of amazing things in the past few days. We’ve admired the incredible beauty and the significant accomplishments of one of the great cities in the South. We’ve watched war heroes during their parade. We’ve enjoyed floral parades. But I’m confident my colleagues will agree that we haven’t seen anything more impressive, uplifting, or inspiring for our future than what we witnessed here this morning.
Some days after the President returned to Washington I received the letter which follows:—
Some days after the President got back to Washington, I received the following letter:—
Executive Mansion, Washington, Dec. 23, 1899.
Executive Mansion, Washington, Dec. 23, 1899.
Dear Sir: By this mail I take pleasure in sending you engrossed copies of the souvenir of the visit of the President to your institution. These sheets bear the autographs of the President and the members of the Cabinet who accompanied him on the trip. Let me take this opportunity of congratulating you most heartily and sincerely upon the great success of the exercises provided for and entertainment furnished us under your auspices during our visit to Tuskegee. Every feature of the programme was perfectly executed and was viewed or participated in with the heartiest satisfaction by every visitor present. The unique exhibition which you gave of your pupils engaged in their industrial vocations was not only artistic but thoroughly impressive. The tribute paid by the President and his Cabinet to your work was none too high, and forms a most encouraging augury, I think, for the future prosperity of your institution. I cannot close without assuring you that the modesty shown by yourself in the exercises was most favourably commented upon by all the members of our party.
Dear Sir: I’m excited to send you the signed copies of the souvenir from the President's visit to your institution. These sheets include the signatures of the President and the members of the Cabinet who were with him on the trip. I want to take this chance to warmly and sincerely congratulate you on the great success of the events and entertainment you organized for us during our visit to Tuskegee. Every part of the program was flawlessly executed and was thoroughly enjoyed by every visitor present. The unique exhibition you presented of your students engaged in their industrial work was not only artistic but also truly impressive. The praise given by the President and his Cabinet for your work was well-deserved and I believe it bodes well for the future success of your institution. I must also mention that your modesty during the events was highly appreciated by all members of our party.
With best wishes for the continued advance of your most useful and patriotic undertaking, kind personal regards, and the compliments of the season, believe me, always,
With my best wishes for the ongoing success of your valuable and patriotic efforts, kind personal regards, and seasonal greetings, you can always count on my support.
Very sincerely yours,
Sincerely yours,
John Addison Porter,
John Addison Porter,
Secretary to the President.
President's Secretary.
To President Booker T. Washington, Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute, Tuskegee, Ala.
To President Booker T. Washington, Tuskegee Normal and Industrial Institute, Tuskegee, Ala.
Twenty years have now passed since I made the first humble effort at Tuskegee, in a broken-down shanty and an old hen-house, without owning a dollar's worth of property, and with but one teacher and thirty students. At the present time the institution owns twenty-three hundred acres of land, one thousand of which are under cultivation each year, entirely by student labour. There are now upon the grounds, counting large and small, sixty-six buildings; and all except four of these have been almost wholly erected by the labour of our students. While the students are at work upon the land and in erecting buildings, they are taught, by competent instructors, the latest methods of agriculture and the trades connected with building.
Twenty years have passed since I made my first humble attempt at Tuskegee in a rundown shack and an old henhouse, without owning a dime worth of property, just one teacher, and thirty students. Now, the institution owns twenty-three hundred acres of land, with a thousand of those cultivated each year entirely by student labor. Currently, there are sixty-six buildings on the grounds, counting both large and small structures; all but four of these have been primarily built by our students. While the students work the land and construct buildings, they receive instruction from qualified teachers on the latest agricultural methods and trades related to construction.
There are in constant operation at the school, in connection with thorough academic and religious training, thirty industrial departments. All of these teach industries at which our men and women can find immediate employment as soon as they leave the institution. The only difficulty now is that the demand for our graduates from both white and black people in the South is so great that we cannot supply more than one-half the persons for whom applications come to us. Neither have we the buildings nor the money for current expenses to enable us to admit to the school more than one-half the young men and women who apply to us for admission.
There are always thirty industrial departments running at the school, alongside comprehensive academic and religious training. All of these teach skills that our men and women can use to get jobs right after they leave the institution. The only issue we face right now is that the demand for our graduates from both white and black communities in the South is so high that we can only accommodate about half of those who apply. We also lack the buildings and funds to cover ongoing expenses to allow us to accept more than half of the young men and women who reach out to us for admission.
In our industrial teaching we keep three things in mind: first, that the student shall be so educated that he shall be enabled to meet conditions as they exist now, in the part of the South where he lives—in a word, to be able to do the thing which the world wants done; second, that every student who graduates from the school shall have enough skill, coupled with intelligence and moral character, to enable him to make a living for himself and others; third, to send every graduate out feeling and knowing that labour is dignified and beautiful—to make each one love labour instead of trying to escape it. In addition to the agricultural training which we give to young men, and the training given to our girls in all the usual domestic employments, we now train a number of girls in agriculture each year. These girls are taught gardening, fruit-growing, dairying, bee-culture, and poultry-raising.
In our vocational education program, we focus on three main goals: first, to ensure that students are educated in a way that equips them to face current conditions in their region of the South—essentially, to be capable of doing what the world needs; second, to ensure that every graduate has the skills, along with intelligence and strong moral character, to support themselves and others; third, to instill in every graduate a sense of pride in their work, conveying that labor is both dignified and valuable, so they come to appreciate work rather than seek to avoid it. Along with the agricultural training we provide for young men and the skills training we offer our girls in traditional domestic roles, we now also train a number of girls in agriculture every year. These girls learn about gardening, fruit cultivation, dairy farming, beekeeping, and poultry raising.
While the institution is in no sense denominational, we have a department known as the Phelps Hall Bible Training School, in which a number of students are prepared for the ministry and other forms of Christian work, especially work in the country districts. What is equally important, each one of the students works half of each day at some industry, in order to get skill and the love of work, so that when he goes out from the institution he is prepared to set the people with whom he goes to labour a proper example in the matter of industry.
While the institution isn't aligned with any specific denomination, we have a department called the Phelps Hall Bible Training School, where several students are trained for ministry and other types of Christian work, particularly in rural areas. Just as importantly, each student spends half of each day working in some form of industry to gain skills and an appreciation for hard work. This way, when they leave the institution, they are ready to set a good example of work ethic for the people they will serve.
The value of our property is now over $700,000. If we add to this our endowment fund, which at present is $1,000,000, the value of the total property is now $1,700,000. Aside from the need for more buildings and for money for current expenses, the endowment fund should be increased to at least $3,000,000. The annual current expenses are now about $150,000. The greater part of this I collect each year by going from door to door and from house to house. All of our property is free from mortgage, and is deeded to an undenominational board of trustees who have the control of the institution.
The value of our property is now over $700,000. If we add our endowment fund, which is currently $1,000,000, the total property value comes to $1,700,000. Besides needing more buildings and funds for ongoing expenses, the endowment fund should be increased to at least $3,000,000. The annual expenses are about $150,000 now. Most of this I gather each year by going door to door. All our property is mortgage-free and is owned by a non-denominational board of trustees who manage the institution.
From thirty students the number has grown to fourteen hundred, coming from twenty-seven states and territories, from Africa, Cuba, Porto Rico, Jamaica, and other foreign countries. In our departments there are one hundred and ten officers and instructors; and if we add the families of our instructors, we have a constant population upon our grounds of not far from seventeen hundred people.
From thirty students, the number has increased to fourteen hundred, representing twenty-seven states and territories, along with students from Africa, Cuba, Puerto Rico, Jamaica, and other countries. In our departments, there are one hundred and ten officers and instructors; and if we include the families of our instructors, we have a steady population on our campus of nearly seventeen hundred people.
I have often been asked how we keep so large a body of people together, and at the same time keep them out of mischief. There are two answers: that the men and women who come to us for an education are in earnest; and that everybody is kept busy. The following outline of our daily work will testify to this:—
I often get asked how we manage to keep such a large group of people together while also preventing them from getting into trouble. There are two reasons: the men and women who come to us for an education are serious about it, and everyone stays occupied. The outline of our daily work below will show this:—
5 a.m., rising bell; 5.50 a.m., warning breakfast bell; 6 a.m., breakfast bell; 6.20 a.m., breakfast over; 6.20 to 6.50 a.m., rooms are cleaned; 6.50, work bell; 7.30, morning study hours; 8.20, morning school bell; 8.25, inspection of young men's toilet in ranks; 8.40, devotional exercises in chapel; 8.55, "five minutes with the daily news;" 9 a.m., class work begins; 12, class work closes; 12.15 p.m., dinner; 1 p.m., work bell; 1.30 p.m., class work begins; 3.30 p.m., class work ends; 5.30 p.m., bell to "knock off" work; 6 p.m., supper; 7.10 p.m., evening prayers; 7.30 p.m., evening study hours; 8.45 p.m., evening study hour closes; 9.20 p.m., warning retiring bell; 9.30 p.m., retiring bell.
5 a.m., wake-up bell; 5:50 a.m., breakfast warning bell; 6 a.m., breakfast bell; 6:20 a.m., breakfast over; 6:20 to 6:50 a.m., rooms are cleaned; 6:50 a.m., work bell; 7:30 a.m., morning study hours; 8:20 a.m., morning school bell; 8:25 a.m., inspection of young men's hygiene in lines; 8:40 a.m., devotional exercises in chapel; 8:55 a.m., "five minutes with the daily news;" 9 a.m., class work begins; 12 p.m., class work ends; 12:15 p.m., lunch; 1 p.m., work bell; 1:30 p.m., class work resumes; 3:30 p.m., class work ends; 5:30 p.m., bell to end work; 6 p.m., dinner; 7:10 p.m., evening prayers; 7:30 p.m., evening study hours; 8:45 p.m., evening study hour ends; 9:20 p.m., warning bell for bed; 9:30 p.m., lights out bell.
We try to keep constantly in mind the fact that the worth of the school is to be judged by its graduates. Counting those who have finished the full course, together with those who have taken enough training to enable them to do reasonably good work, we can safely say that at least six thousand men and women from Tuskegee are now at work in different parts of the South; men and women who, by their own example or by direct efforts, are showing the masses of our race now to improve their material, educational, and moral and religious life. What is equally important, they are exhibiting a degree of common sense and self-control which is causing better relations to exist between the races, and is causing the Southern white man to learn to believe in the value of educating the men and women of my race. Aside from this, there is the influence that is constantly being exerted through the mothers' meeting and the plantation work conducted by Mrs. Washington.
We always keep in mind that a school's value is judged by its graduates. When we count those who have completed the full program, along with those who have received enough training to do reasonably good work, we can confidently say that at least six thousand men and women from Tuskegee are now working across different parts of the South. These individuals are either demonstrating by their own example or actively encouraging our community to improve their material, educational, and moral and religious lives. What's equally important is that they are displaying a level of common sense and self-control that is fostering better relationships between races and helping Southern white people recognize the importance of educating my race's men and women. Additionally, there is the ongoing influence from the mothers' meetings and the plantation work led by Mrs. Washington.
Wherever our graduates go, the changes which soon begin to appear in the buying of land, improving homes, saving money, in education, and in high moral characters are remarkable. Whole communities are fast being revolutionized through the instrumentality of these men and women.
Wherever our graduates go, the changes that quickly start to show in buying land, renovating homes, saving money, in education, and in strong moral character are impressive. Entire communities are rapidly being transformed by the efforts of these men and women.
Ten years ago I organized at Tuskegee the first Negro Conference. This is an annual gathering which now brings to the school eight or nine hundred representative men and women of the race, who come to spend a day in finding out what the actual industrial, mental, and moral conditions of the people are, and in forming plans for improvement. Out from this central Negro Conference at Tuskegee have grown numerous state and local conferences which are doing the same kind of work. As a result of the influence of these gatherings, one delegate reported at the last annual meeting that ten families in his community had bought and paid for homes. On the day following the annual Negro Conference, there is the "Workers' Conference." This is composed of officers and teachers who are engaged in educational work in the larger institutions in the South. The Negro Conference furnishes a rare opportunity for these workers to study the real condition of the rank and file of the people.
Ten years ago, I organized the first Black Conference at Tuskegee. This is now an annual event that attracts around eight to nine hundred representatives from the community, who come together to spend a day learning about the actual industrial, mental, and moral conditions of our people and to develop plans for improvement. From this central Black Conference at Tuskegee, many state and local conferences have emerged that do similar work. As a result of the influence of these gatherings, one delegate reported at the last annual meeting that ten families in his community had bought and fully paid for their homes. The day after the annual Black Conference, there is the "Workers' Conference." This consists of officers and teachers involved in educational work in larger institutions across the South. The Black Conference provides a unique opportunity for these educators to understand the real conditions faced by the general population.
In the summer of 1900, with the assistance of such prominent coloured men as Mr. T. Thomas Fortune, who has always upheld my hands in every effort, I organized the National Negro Business League, which held its first meeting in Boston, and brought together for the first time a large number of the coloured men who are engaged in various lines of trade or business in different parts of the United States. Thirty states were represented at our first meeting. Out of this national meeting grew state and local business leagues.
In the summer of 1900, with the help of notable Black leaders like Mr. T. Thomas Fortune, who has always supported my efforts, I established the National Negro Business League. We held our first meeting in Boston, bringing together a significant number of Black men involved in various trades and businesses from different parts of the United States. Thirty states were represented at our first gathering. From this national meeting, state and local business leagues emerged.
In addition to looking after the executive side of the work at Tuskegee, and raising the greater part of the money for the support of the school, I cannot seem to escape the duty of answering at least a part of the calls which come to me unsought to address Southern white audiences and audiences of my own race, as well as frequent gatherings in the North. As to how much of my time is spent in this way, the following clipping from a Buffalo (N.Y.) paper will tell. This has reference to an occasion when I spoke before the National Educational Association in that city.
Besides managing the executive side of the work at Tuskegee and raising most of the funds to support the school, I find myself unable to avoid the responsibility of responding to many unsolicited requests to speak to Southern white audiences, my own race, and often to gatherings in the North. To give you an idea of how much time I spend on this, here’s a clipping from a Buffalo (N.Y.) newspaper about when I spoke at the National Educational Association in that city.
Booker T. Washington, the foremost educator among the coloured people of the world, was a very busy man from the time he arrived in the city the other night from the West and registered at the Iroquois. He had hardly removed the stains of travel when it was time to partake of supper. Then he held a public levee in the parlours of the Iroquois until eight o'clock. During that time he was greeted by over two hundred eminent teachers and educators from all parts of the United States. Shortly after eight o'clock he was driven in a carriage to Music Hall, and in one hour and a half he made two ringing addresses, to as many as five thousand people, on Negro education. Then Mr. Washington was taken in charge by a delegation of coloured citizens, headed by the Rev. Mr. Watkins, and hustled off to a small informal reception, arranged in honour of the visitor by the people of his race.
Booker T. Washington, the leading educator among Black people worldwide, was extremely busy from the moment he arrived in the city the other night from the West and checked in at the Iroquois. He barely had time to shake off the travel weariness before it was time for dinner. Then he hosted a public gathering in the Iroquois parlors until eight o'clock. During this time, he was greeted by over two hundred prominent teachers and educators from across the United States. Shortly after eight, he was driven in a carriage to Music Hall, where he delivered two powerful speeches to about five thousand people on the topic of Black education over the course of an hour and a half. Afterward, Mr. Washington was taken by a group of local Black citizens, led by Rev. Mr. Watkins, to a small informal reception organized in his honor by the community.
Nor can I, in addition to making these addresses, escape the duty of calling the attention of the South and of the country in general, through the medium of the press, to matters that pertain to the interests of both races. This, for example, I have done in regard to the evil habit of lynching. When the Louisiana State Constitutional Convention was in session, I wrote an open letter to that body pleading for justice for the race. In all such efforts I have received warm and hearty support from the Southern newspapers, as well as from those in all other parts of the country.
I also can’t avoid the responsibility of highlighting issues that affect both races to the South and the country as a whole through the media. For instance, I addressed the harmful practice of lynching. When the Louisiana State Constitutional Convention was meeting, I wrote an open letter to them advocating for justice for our people. In all these efforts, I have received strong and enthusiastic support from Southern newspapers as well as those from other regions of the country.
Despite superficial and temporary signs which might lead one to entertain a contrary opinion, there was never a time when I felt more hopeful for the race than I do at the present. The great human law that in the end recognizes and rewards merit is everlasting and universal. The outside world does not know, neither can it appreciate, the struggle that is constantly going on in the hearts of both the Southern white people and their former slaves to free themselves from racial prejudice; and while both races are thus struggling they should have the sympathy, the support, and the forbearance of the rest of the world.
Even though there are superficial and temporary signs that might make someone think otherwise, I’ve never felt more hopeful about humanity than I do right now. The fundamental truth that eventually recognizes and rewards talent is timeless and universal. The outside world is unaware and can't truly understand the ongoing struggle in the hearts of both Southern white people and their former slaves to overcome racial prejudice; and while both groups are fighting this battle, they deserve the sympathy, support, and patience of the rest of the world.
As I write the closing words of this autobiography I find myself—not by design—in the city of Richmond, Virginia: the city which only a few decades ago was the capital of the Southern Confederacy, and where, about twenty-five years ago, because of my poverty I slept night after night under a sidewalk.
As I write the final words of this autobiography, I find myself—not by choice—in Richmond, Virginia: the city that, just a few decades ago, was the capital of the Southern Confederacy, and where, about twenty-five years ago, due to my financial struggles, I spent night after night sleeping under a sidewalk.
This time I am in Richmond as the guest of the coloured people of the city; and came at their request to deliver an address last night to both races in the Academy of Music, the largest and finest audience room in the city. This was the first time that the coloured people had ever been permitted to use this hall. The day before I came, the City Council passed a vote to attend the meeting in a body to hear me speak. The state Legislature, including the House of Delegates and the Senate, also passed a unanimous vote to attend in a body. In the presence of hundreds of coloured people, many distinguished white citizens, the City Council, the state Legislature, and state officials, I delivered my message, which was one of hope and cheer; and from the bottom of my heart I thanked both races for this welcome back to the state that gave me birth.
This time I’m in Richmond as a guest of the local Black community; I came at their request to give a speech last night to both races at the Academy of Music, the largest and finest auditorium in the city. This was the first time the Black community had ever been allowed to use this hall. The day before my arrival, the City Council voted to attend the meeting as a group to hear me speak. The state Legislature, including both the House of Delegates and the Senate, also voted unanimously to attend as a group. In front of hundreds of Black individuals, many notable white citizens, the City Council, the state Legislature, and state officials, I delivered my message, which was one of hope and encouragement; and I sincerely thanked both communities for this warm return to the state where I was born.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!